summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/67151-0.txt6732
-rw-r--r--old/67151-0.zipbin125252 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67151-h.zipbin267363 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67151-h/67151-h.htm8497
-rw-r--r--old/67151-h/images/cover.jpgbin120749 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67151-h/images/title.jpgbin7959 -> 0 bytes
9 files changed, 17 insertions, 15229 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..a3ff478
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #67151 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/67151)
diff --git a/old/67151-0.txt b/old/67151-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 0c50f18..0000000
--- a/old/67151-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,6732 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Proofs of Christ's Resurrection;
-from a Lawyer's Standpoint, by Charles R. Morrison
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: The Proofs of Christ's Resurrection; from a Lawyer's Standpoint
-
-Author: Charles R. Morrison
-
-Release Date: January 12, 2022 [eBook #67151]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: Stephen Hutcheson, Bryan Ness and the Online Distributed
- Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This book was
- produced from images made available by the HathiTrust
- Digital Library.)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE PROOFS OF CHRIST'S
-RESURRECTION; FROM A LAWYER'S STANDPOINT ***
-
-
-
-
-
-
- THE PROOFS
- OF
- CHRIST’S RESURRECTION;
-
- FROM A LAWYER’S STANDPOINT.
-
- BY
- CHARLES R. MORRISON.
-
- [Illustration]
-
- ANDOVER:
- WARREN F. DRAPER.
- 1882.
-
- Entered, according to Act of Congress, in the year 1882,
- BY WARREN F. DRAPER,
- In the Office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington.
-
- _All Rights Reserved._
-
-
-
-
-PREFACE.
-
-
-The present treatise is intended to give what the author has often felt
-the need of—a compact and thoroughly reliable statement of the principal
-historical facts to the authenticity and integrity of the New Testament
-writings concerning our Lord, and the presumptions from them which
-establish his claims as our Divine Redeemer and Saviour.
-
-The question of his Resurrection from the dead is selected as the pivot,
-because everything hinges upon it. This question, whichever way it is
-determined, is decisive. It is a question which greatly concerns every
-one. It is a question of evidence, and as such is especially deserving
-of careful inquiry by members of the legal profession. For, as Prof.
-Greenleaf observed in his work hereafter cited,—“If a close examination
-of the evidences of Christianity may be expected of one class of men more
-than another, it would seem incumbent on us, who make the law of evidence
-one of our peculiar studies.”
-
-As the question of Christ’s Resurrection is the objective point of our
-inquiries, all other questions are subordinated to it, and examined so
-far only as deemed material to the main question.
-
-The author has availed himself of a lawyer’s privilege, and made use
-of the researches, arguments, and conclusions of others who may justly
-be regarded as authority, and to whom he has given credit as far as
-practicable, but has endeavored to form an independent judgment in view
-of all accessible sources of information.
-
-The work is, in the main, as published in a series of articles in the
-_New Hampshire Journal_, and also in the _Vermont Chronicle_, from March
-5, 1881, to April 1, 1882, which will explain the use of the common
-version in the earlier chapters and the New Revision in the later ones.
-
-While the proofs have been marshalled around the principal fact, those
-to establish the subsidiary question of our Four Gospels and the Book
-of Acts have been largely centered upon the “Memoirs” mentioned in the
-confessedly genuine writings of Justin Martyr. Justin, in his First
-Apology, so called, written before the year one hundred and fifty of our
-era, and probably ten years earlier, has given a graphic account of the
-usages in the churches generally. In this account he says that, on the
-“day called Sunday,” Memoirs of Christ were read with the Prophets, in
-all their assemblies. Hence, when it is ascertained that these Memoirs
-were our Canonical Gospels, we make a long stride toward the conclusion
-of their undoubted authenticity and genuineness.
-
-To all questions of evidence which arise, the author applies legal
-principles and presumptions derived from experience and constantly acted
-upon in courts of justice. He asks of the reader a patient perusal to
-the end, for he confidently believes that the vital fact of Christ’s
-Resurrection, with all the grand consequences which necessarily follow
-it, is as susceptible of proof, from undoubted historical facts and solid
-argument, as any other event in history.
-
-The work is written for busy men in all the walks of life, and the writer
-has endeavored to make himself understood.
-
- CHARLES R. MORRISON.
-
-MANCHESTER, N. H., August, 1882.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS.
-
-
- CHAPTER PAGE
-
- I. SOURCES OF EVIDENCE 7
-
- II. ADMISSIONS AND PRESUMPTIONS 12
-
- III. PAPIAS AND JUSTIN MARTYR 14
-
- IV. THE MEMOIRS INTENDED BY JUSTIN MARTYR 18
-
- V. QUOTATIONS AND CITATIONS 23
-
- VI. JUSTIN’S USE OF THE FOURTH GOSPEL 30
-
- VII. NO OTHERS PROVED 34
-
- VIII. PRESUMPTION OF PERMANENCY 43
-
- IX. THE MEMOIRS OF THE YEAR ONE HUNDRED AND EIGHTY 45
-
- X. ASCENDING THE STREAM 50
-
- XI. STILL ASCENDING THE STREAM 57
-
- XII. IN THEIR PROPER REPOSITORIES 63
-
- XIII. INTEGRITY OF THE GOSPELS 67
-
- XIV. THE CREDIBILITY OF THE EVANGELISTS 74
-
- XV. THE APOCALYPSE AND THE FOUR EPISTLES 81
-
- XVI. HIS PREDICTIONS CONCERNING HIMSELF 89
-
- XVII. ORDER OF EVENTS 101
-
- XVIII. SUFFICIENCY OF THE PROOFS 110
- (_False Assumptions._)
-
- XIX. SUFFICIENCY OF THE PROOFS 120
- (_Affirmative Evidence._)
-
- XX. LOGICAL RESULTS 134
-
- INDEX 143
-
-
-
-
-THE PROOFS OF CHRIST’S RESURRECTION.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I.
-
-SOURCES OF EVIDENCE.
-
-
-It is a characteristic of all who deny this and all other miracles,
-that they beg the whole question to begin with. They assume as an axiom
-that a miracle is impossible, or impossible to be proved by human
-testimony. Or, to put it more mildly, in the language of one of their
-number (Renan[1]), “neither men of the people nor men of the world are
-competent to prove it. Great precaution and a long habit of scientific
-research are requisite.” If these are sound axioms, it should be a matter
-of indifference who were the witnesses, or what their credibility or
-means of knowledge, since at the best they were but human, and it is not
-claimed that they were experts or _savans_ after the modern skeptical
-school, although they might be expected to know whether one who walked
-with them, and to whose instructions they listened, and from whom they
-received their commission, were dead or alive.
-
-It is also a comfortable assumption on their part that no one is a
-scholar who does not agree with their opinion, and many young men who
-would not be thought to be behind the times are misled by their confident
-boasting. “No modern theologian,” says Strauss,[2] “who is also a
-scholar, now considers any of the four Gospels to be the work of its
-pretended author, or in fact to be by an Apostle or colleague of an
-Apostle.” The logic of this is, that if any one does so consider them,
-he is not a scholar. The same kind of scholarship and habit of thinking
-that induced this wise conclusion brought him at last to the denial of
-the existence of a personal God or a future life. His experience is
-instructive, and shows the inevitable tendency of all reasoning that
-denies the possibility of a miracle or a divine revelation. Mill’s hard
-logic cannot well be resisted. “Once admit a God, and the production, by
-his direct volition, of an effect which in any case owed its origin to
-his creative will, is no more a purely arbitrary hypothesis to account
-for the past, but must be reckoned with as a serious possibility.” If,
-then, a miracle may occur, it may be proved[A] by human testimony, for
-the very motive or reason for its occurrence, or, at least the principal
-reason, must be its value as an attestation.
-
-And the immense labor which the Tübingen school and every class of
-skeptics have bestowed in attempts to disprove the authorship of the
-Four Gospels, shows that they have not much confidence in their axioms
-after all. Why so anxious as to the witnesses, if it is immaterial who
-they are, or what they testify to? If a miracle cannot be proved by
-_any_ evidence, why have they multiplied books to prove or disprove the
-authorship of the gospels?
-
-
-THE BEST EVIDENCE.
-
-The best evidence of which the subject admits, is all that is required
-in courts; and it is sufficient in matters of the highest concern, even
-in cases of life and death, that a fact be proved beyond a reasonable
-doubt. The best evidence to Christ’s disciples of his resurrection, was
-that of their own senses. This evidence we cannot have. We are in the
-position, in some respects, of jurors, who must decide not from their
-own knowledge, but upon the testimony of others. We have not, however,
-the witnesses upon the stand, but only what may be regarded as their
-depositions, and it is made a question whether the writings produced are
-their depositions.
-
-The question, then, in this stage is, who were the writers of the Four
-Gospels and the book of Acts? As to the latter, the writer claims to
-have written a former treatise, and it seems to be taken by both parties
-to the controversy, that the same person (whoever he was) wrote both
-books, so that any evidence of Luke’s authorship of the third Gospel, is
-evidence of his authorship of Acts, and _vice versa_. And the same is
-true in respect to the Fourth Gospel and the First Epistle of John.
-
-The best evidence as to the authorship of any of these books which
-the nature of the subject admits of, is from history and tradition,
-including in these terms quotations, citations, harmonies, commentaries,
-translations, and manuscripts.
-
-There are two modes of presenting this evidence. One is to begin with
-their present acknowledged acceptance, and ascend the stream; the
-other is to strike tributaries, as near their source as we are able,
-and descend to the river. The latter will be adopted here in the first
-instance, and ultimately both modes of proof.
-
-
-LOST TRIBUTARIES.
-
-One hundred years from the crucifixion, churches had been established
-in all the cities and in many of the villages of the Roman Empire, from
-Cappadocia and Pontus on the east, to Gaul on the west, and Christians
-were very numerous. Tacitus describes those at Rome at the time of Nero’s
-barbarity, as “a great multitude,” and Pliny, in his letter to Trajan,
-_cir._ A.D. 110, affirms that the heathen temples were almost deserted,
-so that the sacred victims scarcely found any purchasers, and that the
-“superstition,” as he termed it, not only infected the cities, but had
-even spread into the villages, of Pontus and Bithynia (Gibbon, p. 576).
-Hence persons unacquainted with the subject might suppose that it would
-be easy to adduce abundant proof from writers of the first century, as to
-what memoirs of our Lord, if any, were in the churches at the time Pliny
-wrote his celebrated letter. Such, however, is not the fact.
-
-There is no _direct_ historical testimony known to be earlier than the
-first apology[3] of Justin Martyr to the Roman Emperor, _cir._ A.D. 139.
-There are certain fragments written by Papias, Bishop of Hierapolis,
-which may be of an earlier date, but this is uncertain. There are also
-quotations apparently from the third and fourth Gospels, by Basilides,[4]
-the Gnostic heretic who flourished at Alexandria as early as A.D. 125.
-There is an epistle to the Philippian church, attributed to Polycarp
-which Dean Stanley thinks dates about A.D. 130. Its genuineness is not
-universally admitted. There is an epistle, conceded to be genuine, from
-the church at Rome to the church at Corinth, of the probable date of
-A.D. 95. There are epistles attributed by some to Ignatius, who suffered
-martyrdom, _cir._ A.D. 107, but their genuineness is controverted. There
-are in addition three other writings known as the Epistle of Barnabas,
-the Letter to Diognetus, and the Pastor Hermas. They are by unknown
-authors, and of uncertain date, but were probably written in the latter
-part of the first or the first part of the second century.
-
-And these are all that have come down to us in any form from the first
-one hundred years after the crucifixion. That we have no more is
-easily explained. This period was one of intense activity and violent
-persecutions. Five (as some reckon them) of the ten general persecutions
-were within[5] this period. The first was under Nero, A.D. 64, the second
-under Domitian, A.D. 95, the third under Trajan, A.D. 100, the fourth
-under Antoninus the Philosopher, and the fifth under Severus, A.D. 127;
-and, as some of these continued several years, there was scarcely an
-intermission for three-quarters of a century. The horrible tortures and
-cruel deaths under Nero are well-known, and, under Domitian, forty
-thousand were supposed to have suffered martyrdom.
-
-It is no matter of surprise, therefore, that so little has reached us
-from this early period. Christians were making history, not writing
-it, and of their writings the most perished. There were hundreds and
-thousands who well knew what memoirs of our Lord were accepted by the
-churches in this period, from whose lips no voice comes except in the
-volume of universal tradition.
-
-[1] Renan’s Life of Jesus, p. 43.
-
-[2] The Old Faith and the New (1874), p. 45.
-
-[A] See also _post_, c. 18.
-
-[3] A.D. 138 or 139 is the date most usually assigned to this most
-important work, although some place it as late as A.D. 150. If his
-statement in it that “Christ was born 150 years ago” were to be taken
-strictly, it would make its date A.D. 146 or A.D. 144, according as
-we allow four or six years as the error for the beginning of the true
-Christian era; but he may have used the number in a general way. His
-martyrdom is variously stated at A.D. 165 and A.D. 167.
-
-[4] That the quotations were by Basilides himself Matthew Arnold’s
-reasoning seems entirely satisfactory, and “no one” he says, “who had
-not a theory to serve would ever dream of doubting it.” Perhaps it may
-be permitted to regard Matthew Arnold as a “scholar;” and see Abbot’s
-“Fourth Gospel,” Boston (1880), p. 86. See also _post_, c. 5.
-
-[5] Buck’s Theological Dictionary, and Vol. VII of M’Clintock and
-Strong’s Cyclopedia, p. 966.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II.
-
-ADMISSIONS AND PRESUMPTIONS.
-
-
-With the somewhat scanty and inconclusive evidence from writings of the
-first one hundred years from the crucifixion, are there any facts that
-are conceded, and any presumptions from them? There are concessions,
-and from what motives is immaterial, since there is no doubt of the
-existence of the facts that are admitted even by those who deny the
-authenticity of the Gospels. Says Renan[1]: “Not the slightest doubt has
-been raised by serious criticism against the authenticity of the Epistle
-to the Galatians, the two Epistles to the Corinthians, or the Epistle
-to the Romans; while the arguments on which are founded the attacks on
-the two Epistles to the Thessalonians, and that to the Philippians, are
-without value.” And it may be added that the genuineness of the Book of
-Revelations is conceded and insisted upon by most of his way of thinking.
-
-Now, from the four Epistles against whose authenticity “not the slightest
-doubt has been raised by serious criticism,” and the writings of
-Josephus, Tacitus and Pliny, these facts are as well established as any
-facts of history can possibly be established:—Jesus Christ was born in
-Judea in the days of Herod, and was crucified under Pontius Pilate. He
-was a most extraordinary character, and a wonderful teacher. He gathered
-disciples, of whom twelve were called Apostles. After his death, his
-followers were formed into numerous churches, which, in a few years,
-extended into all parts of the then known world, and of which there has
-been a continuous succession till now. If, from their disciples, we
-know something of the life and teachings of Confucius and Socrates, we
-should expect as much concerning him whose advent revolutionized the
-world, within three centuries overturned the old pagan superstitions
-throughout the Roman Empire, and is still the greatest moral power of the
-most enlightened nations of the earth. But, if there were any accepted
-memoirs of him in that first hundred years from his crucifixion, what has
-become of them? It is incredible that they should have dropped out of
-existence and there be no history or tradition of it. It is incredible
-that they should have been lost to churches having a continuous life,
-or that others should have been substituted for them, and there be no
-trace of their disappearance or of a substitution. In the churches
-in every period, the old and the young were together. How, then, was
-displacement and substitution possible without protest? How was the loss
-of accepted memoirs possible, so long as there was a continued succession
-of teachers? Yet none have reached our time other than those which have
-come to us through all the centuries as authentic writings of those whose
-names they bear.
-
-By the law of the “survival of the fittest,” all other productions making
-any pretensions to such a character perished long ago, only fragments
-of them remain, and our four Gospels are in the churches. There is,
-therefore, to begin with, the strongest presumption in their favor.
-“It is,” says Professor Greenleaf,[2] “for the objector to show them
-spurious; for on him, by the plainest rules of law, lies the burden of
-proof.” And from what has appeared it is plain that this “burden” is a
-very heavy one.[3]
-
-[1] Renan’s Life of Jesus, p. 35.
-
-[2] The Testimony of the Four Evangelists (p. 28, section 10), by Simon
-Greenleaf, LL.D., 1846. His standard work on evidence is in every
-lawyer’s library.
-
-[3] See also _post_, c. 8.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III.
-
-PAPIAS AND JUSTIN MARTYR.
-
-
-The fact of the early reception, by the churches, of Memoirs of Christ
-deemed authentic, probable in itself without any proof, is conclusively
-proved by writings and to which reference has been made, particularly
-those of Papias and Justin Martyr.
-
-Papias was bishop of Hierapolis, in Phrygia, in the first part of the
-second century of the Christian era. Though of moderate capacity, and
-entertaining extravagant ideas of the millennium, he was entirely honest,
-and there is no reason to question his testimony as to what he was told
-in respect to Matthew and Mark. He suffered martyrdom about A.D. 163.
-From fragments of his writings found in Eusebius and in the works of
-Irenæus, it appears that “John the Presbyter” gave him information in
-respect to the First and Second Gospels.
-
-There is a difference of opinion as to whether this John was John
-the Apostle. Eusebius held that he was not, and says that in his day
-(264-340) there were two tombs at Ephesus, both of which were called
-John’s. The question of identity is not very material. Papias gives,
-in explanation, that he imagined that “what was to be got from books”
-concerning the Lord, was not as profitable to him “as what came from
-the living and abiding voice.” For this reason, he says, “If, then, any
-one who had attended on the elders came, I asked minutely after their
-sayings, what Andrew or Peter said, or what was said by Philip, or by
-Thomas, or by James, or by John, or by Matthew, or by any other of the
-Lord’s disciples,[1] which things Aristion and the Presbyter John, the
-disciples of the Lord, say.”
-
-From this, it is plain there were then accredited “books” concerning
-our Lord. And two of these books are identified by his statement of
-what he was told by John the Presbyter, that “Mark, having become the
-interpreter of Peter, wrote down accurately whatever he remembered of
-Peter’s instructions,” whom he accompanied (it was not, however, in exact
-order that he related the sayings or deeds of Christ), “and Matthew put
-together the oracles in the Hebrew language, and each one interpreted
-them as best he could.” These extracts prove that the First and Second
-Gospels were extant, not only when Papias wrote, and when the Presbyter
-gave him the information, but also some time before. His informant, if
-_not_ John the Apostle, must have been one who had seen the Apostles or
-some of them, so that the testimony is very direct.
-
-That Papias does not mention Luke’s Gospel, or John’s Gospel, proves
-nothing except that he had no occasion to say anything about them, in
-that connection. The Fourth Gospel may not have been _written_ at the
-time of the interview with the Presbyter, for the Apostle John lived
-until about the year 100, and he wrote his Gospel very late in life. It
-is not quoted by Clement.
-
-And as to the Third Gospel, the occasion for the writing of it is
-distinctly stated by the author himself, who was well known. And so of
-the Fourth Gospel; its authorship modestly but clearly appears upon its
-face. We have mere fragments from Papias not exceeding two or three
-hundred lines all told. In some of his five books (almost the whole of
-which have been lost) there may have been references to both Luke and
-John. Eusebius[2] states that Papias made use of testimonials from the
-First Epistle of John; but as he does not say that Papias ascribed that
-Epistle to John, his use of it only proves that it was extant when he
-wrote. There is, however, a quotation in one of these fragments (v), “In
-my Father’s house are many mansions,” which is literally as in John xiv.
-2, and so, presumptively, was taken from it. It is an interesting fact
-that the only _quotations_ other than this, by Papias (if those in this
-fragment are indeed by him), are as in verses 25 to 28 of the 15th of
-First Corinthians, a chapter which will be found to have great weight in
-another part of this discussion.
-
-Papias, therefore, probably[3] quotes the Fourth Gospel. But, without
-such quotation, no inference could be drawn against Luke or John from
-mere silence. Papias would still prove the First and Second Gospels,
-leaving the Third and Fourth to stand upon the presumption in their favor
-stated in our last chapter, and upon positive evidence from other sources.
-
-[1] The quotations from Papias are from Vol. I, of the Ante-Nicene
-Christian Library, translated by Rev. Alexander Roberts, D.D., and James
-Donaldson, LL.D.; and so in respect to any of the Apostolic Fathers. The
-editors say the words, “Which things, _etc._,” are usually translated,
-“What Aristion and John say,” and that such translation is admissible,
-but that they more naturally mean that John and Aristion, even at the
-time of Justin’s writing, were telling him of the sayings of the Lord.
-
-[2] Eusebius B. III., c. 39.
-
-[3] The editors call it “mere guess-work” (Ante-Nicene Christian Library,
-Vol. I., p. 444, note). Eusebius makes no mention of it, though his
-silence is not conclusive against it.
-
-The question is of sufficient importance to warrant the giving of the
-entire passage from Irenæus in which the quotations appear. It is the
-last of five short chapters of his work on Heresies. Certain passages
-are printed in italics, which the reader is specially asked to consider:
-“As the _presbyters_ say, then those who were deemed worthy of an abode
-in heaven shall go there, others shall enjoy the delights of Paradise,
-and others shall possess the splendor of the city, for everywhere the
-Saviour will be seen, according as they shall be worthy who see Him. But
-there is this distinction between the habitation of those who produce
-an hundred-fold, and those who produce sixty-fold, and who produce
-thirty-fold; for the first will be taken up into the heavens, the second
-class will dwell in Paradise, and the last will inhabit the city; and
-that on this account the Lord said, ‘In my Father’s house are many
-mansions;’ for all things belong to God, who supplies all with a suitable
-dwelling-place, even as His word says, that a share is given to all by
-the Father, according as each one is or shall be worthy. And this is
-the couch in which they shall recline who feast, being invited to the
-wedding. _The Presbyters, the disciples of the Apostles_, say that this
-is the gradation and arrangement of those who are saved, and that they
-advance through steps of this nature; and that, moreover, they ascend
-through the Spirit to the Son, and through the Son to the Father; and
-that in due time the Son will yield up His work to the Father, even as it
-is said by the apostle, ‘For He must reign till He hath put all enemies
-under His feet. The last enemy that shall be destroyed is death.’ For in
-the times of the kingdom the just man who is on the earth shall forget to
-die. But when He saith all things are put under Him, it is manifest that
-He is excepted which did put all things under Him. And when all things
-shall be subdued unto Him, then shall the Son also Himself be subject
-unto Him that put all things under Him, that the Son may be all in all.”
-There being no question of the genuineness of this passage from Irenæus,
-by whom were the quotations, found in it? Now while it is possible they
-were by _Irenæus_, to illustrate what ‘the Presbyters, the disciples of
-the Apostles,’ maintained, the more obvious and natural interpretation
-is, that they were cited by those Presbyters themselves. This being so,
-it is not of much consequence whether Irenæus had this information of
-these views and citations, from Papias (from whom he had obtained like
-information upon other subjects as to the sayings of the Presbyters),
-or whether Irenæus had this information of their sayings from other
-sources. In either event the quotations were made _either_ by Papias,
-his contemporaries, or predecessors, “disciples of the Apostles.” And
-of this opinion are Charteris (Canonicity, c. 17, of the Introduction),
-and Routh, Tischendorf, Wescott, Dorner and Riggenback, as cited in
-“Supernatural Religion” p. 604.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV.
-
-THE MEMOIRS INTENDED BY JUSTIN MARTYR.[1]
-
-
-Great importance attaches to them in connection with other facts.
-
-The date of Justin’s birth is uncertain, being placed as early as A.D.
-85, and as late as A.D. 114; Rev. Mr. Wright says about A.D. 100. His
-martyrdom was about A.D. 165. His father and grandfather were probably
-of Roman origin. Before his conversion to Christianity, he studied in
-the schools of the philosophers, but after that he became an Evangelist,
-and a vigorous writer in defence of the Christian faith. It is probable
-that he travelled much. He was not the first that wrote an Apology for
-Christians, but his are the earliest extant. Besides these, he wrote
-a much larger work (the Dialogue with Trypho, a Jew), a work on the
-resurrection, and some others; and by some, he has been regarded as the
-author of the Pastor Hermas. His first and principal Apology, of the
-probable date of A.D. 138-9, was addressed as follows:
-
- “To the Emperor Titus Ælius Adrianus Antoninus Pius Augustus
- Cæsar, and to his son Verissimus, the philosopher, and to
- Lucius, the philosopher, the natural son of Cæsar, and the
- adopted son of Pius, a lover of learning, and to the Sacred
- Senate, with the whole people of the Romans, I, Justin, the son
- of Priscus and grandson of Bacchius, native of Flavia Neapolis
- in Palestine, present this address and petition in behalf
- of those of all nations who are unjustly hated and wantonly
- abused, myself being one of them.”
-
-Those to whom this formal address was made, would not be expected to know
-anything about Matthew, Mark, Luke, or John; but it was otherwise, in
-respect to the Old Testament, for Jewish synagogues were in every city,
-and the Septuagint had been known for three hundred years.
-
-In this Apology he explains some of the teachings of our Lord, and the
-usages of his disciples; and in respect to the last, are these passages:
-
- “For the Apostles, in the memoirs composed by them, which are
- called Gospels, have thus delivered unto us what was enjoined
- upon them; that Jesus took bread and when he had given thanks
- said, ‘This do ye in remembrance of me, this is my body;’ and
- that, after the same manner having taken the cup and given
- thanks, he said, ‘This is my blood;’ and he gave it to them
- alone.”... “And we afterwards continually remind each other
- of these things. And the wealthy among us help the needy; and
- we always keep together; and for all things wherewith we are
- supplied, we bless the Maker of all, through his Son Jesus
- Christ, and through the Holy Ghost. And on the day called
- Sunday, all who live in cities or in the country gather
- together to one place, and the Memoirs of the Apostles or the
- writings of the Prophets are read, as long as time permits;
- then when the reader has ceased, the president verbally
- instructs, and exhorts to the imitation of these good things.
- Then we all rise together and pray, and as we before said, when
- our prayer is ended, bread and wine and water are brought, and
- the president in like manner offers prayers and thanksgivings
- according to his ability, and the people assent, saying Amen;
- and there is a distribution to each, and a participation of
- that over which thanks have been given, and to those who are
- absent a portion is sent by the deacons. And they who are
- well-to-do, and willing, give what each thinks fit; and what
- is collected is deposited with the president, who succors the
- orphans and widows, and those who, through sickness or any
- other cause, are in want, and those who are in bonds, and the
- strangers sojourning among us, and in a word, takes care of
- all who are in need. But Sunday is the day on which we all
- hold our common assembly, because it is the first day on which
- God, having wrought a change in the darkness and matter, made
- the world; and Jesus Christ, our Saviour, on the same day rose
- from the dead. For he was crucified on the day before that of
- Saturn (Saturday): and on the day after that of Saturn, which
- is the day of the Sun, having appeared to his apostles and
- disciples, he taught them these things, which we have submitted
- to you also for your consideration.”
-
-This passage is a part of chapter sixty-six, and the whole of chapter
-sixty-seven.
-
-The great question is, What were these “Memoirs of the Apostles,” which
-were thus read with the writings of the Prophets? It is a question of
-interpretation.
-
-By the rule adopted in courts, these words are to be construed with the
-context, and in connection with other writings of Justin in relation
-to the same subject, and also in the light of all the surrounding
-circumstances.
-
-These precise terms are first used in chapter sixty-seven. The same
-Memoirs, evidently, in chapter sixty-six, are described as Memoirs
-“composed” by the Apostles. They are not again referred to in this
-Apology. They are referred to several times in the Dialogue, chapters one
-hundred to one hundred and eight, by the following terms: The Memoirs of
-His Apostles; The Memoirs of His Apostles; The Memoirs of His Apostles;
-The Memoirs of the Apostles; _For in the Memoirs which I say were drawn
-up by his Apostles and those who followed them_; The Memoirs of His
-Apostles; The Memoirs; The Memoirs; The Memoirs; The Memoirs of the
-Apostles; The Memoirs of Him; The Memoirs of His Apostles; The Memoirs.
-Four times he calls them The Memoirs; three times The Memoirs of the
-Apostles; five times The Memoirs of His Apostles; and once, The Memoirs
-of Him, _i. e._, Christ, as Roberts and Donaldson interpret it,[2] and as
-the context and the whole scope indicate.
-
-It is plain that the same “Memoirs” are intended throughout, under these
-various terms.
-
-In chapter eighty-eight of the Dialogue, in mentioning the descent of the
-Holy Ghost upon Jesus at his baptism, Justin says that when he came out
-of the water, the Holy Ghost lighted on him like a dove, as “the Apostle
-of this very Christ of ours wrote.” The incident is mentioned in all four
-of the Gospels.
-
-But for his explanation elsewhere, it would be inferred that _all_ the
-“Memoirs” were “composed” by the Apostles. But he carefully explains his
-meaning, so that the “Memoirs,” or some of them, may have been “drawn up”
-either by the Apostles, or by those who followed them.
-
-It is obvious that these Memoirs were not biographies or sketches by
-unknown or irresponsible persons, but writings well understood by the
-Churches to have been “composed” or “drawn up” by the Apostles, or with
-their approval.
-
-As Mark was understood to be Peter’s interpreter, so Luke was understood
-to have been Paul’s companion, and to have written under his sanction.
-And Paul was an Apostle, although not one of the twelve.
-
-Justin had informed the Roman Emperor[3] of the Apostles, and he gave
-like information to Trypho.[3] He meant that all who should read should
-know that what he gave of the life and teachings of Christ was not from
-irresponsible sources, but from writings expressly sanctioned, if not
-actually written, by those whom Christ had selected as witnesses.
-
-These Memoirs, therefore, were doubtless understood _by Justin, and by
-the church in general_, in city and country, to have been the productions
-of Apostles or their companions. They were read the same as the Prophets,
-and placed upon the same footing. Justin, in writing to Trypho, speaks of
-having believed GOD’S VOICE SPOKEN BY THE APOSTLES OF CHRIST.
-
-And since, in speaking of their actual composition, he uses the plural,
-“Apostles,” we should look for two or more Memoirs, “drawn up,” by
-Apostles.
-
-Now what were these Memoirs? What writings will answer the description?
-Matthew[4] and Mark will, according to what the Presbyter said of them.
-Were there any others? There should be one more at least, that was
-written by an Apostle, else wherefore, the _plural_? The four Gospels
-that have come down to us, answer the description in every particular. To
-use a legal phrase,—“From the time whereof the memory of man runneth not
-to the contrary,” two of them have been accepted in the Church as having
-been composed by Apostles, and two, by companions of Apostles.
-
-Unless it can be shown that when Justin wrote, there were _other_ Memoirs
-of Christ _that will answer to his description_, our four Gospels and no
-others were intended. _Were_ there any besides these?
-
-[1] The quotations from Justin Martyr are from Vol. II. of the
-Ante-Nicene Christian Library, edited by Roberts and Donaldson.
-
-[2] See _post_, c. 7, note 14.
-
-[3] “For from Jerusalem there went out into the world men, twelve in
-number, ... who proclaimed to every race of men that they were sent by
-Christ to teach all the word of God” (Ap. c. 39). “And by those things
-which were published in his name among all nations by the Apostles”
-(_ibid._ c. 42). “His Apostles going forth from Jerusalem preached
-everywhere” (_ibid._ c. 45.) “And further there was a certain man with us
-whose name was John, one of the Apostles of Christ” (Dia. c. 81). “For
-as he (Abraham) believed the voice of God, and it was imputed to him for
-righteousness, in like manner we, having believed God’s voice spoken
-by the Apostles of Christ, and promulgated to us by the prophets, have
-renounced even to death all the things of the world” (_ibid._ c. 119).
-
-[4] The writer of Barnabas, in quoting as in Matthew xx. 16, had used
-the authoritative Latin formula (_it is written_) for quotations from
-Scripture, as follows: “Let us beware lest we be found, as it is written,
-‘Many are called but few are chosen’” (_Ep. of Bar._ c. 4).
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V.
-
-QUOTATIONS AND CITATIONS.
-
-
-The _apparent_ or seeming use of our Gospels by Justin and his
-contemporaries is a fact of great weight in determining whether they are
-the “Memoirs” referred to by him.
-
-According to the Indexes of Texts by the learned editors of the
-Ante-Nicene Christian Library, John’s Gospel is quoted or cited, twice in
-Barnabas, once in Diognetus, twice in Hermas, once by Justin, and once
-by Papias. Mark is quoted or cited, once in Barnabas, twice by Clement,
-three times by Justin, and once by Polycarp: Acts is quoted or cited once
-in Barnabas, once by Clement, once by Justin, and four times by Polycarp:
-Luke is quoted or cited three times in Barnabas, three times by Clement,
-once in Hermas, fourteen times by Justin, and twice by Polycarp: and
-Matthew is quoted or cited six times in Barnabas, five times by Clement,
-twice in Diognetus, nine times in Hermas, forty-seven times by Justin,
-and seven times by Polycarp.
-
-As to _citations_, passages deemed such by one, may have been overlooked
-or regarded differently by another, so that there is not an entire
-agreement as to the number of citations, _i. e._ of allusions or
-references that are not quotations. And it should be understood that in
-the _quotations_, the books from which they are taken are not stated,
-except that Justin indicates that _his_, in general, are from the
-“Memoirs.” Their agreement with our Gospels is sometimes literally exact,
-quite often it is otherwise; and not unfrequently two or three passages
-are seemingly blended, as if the author were quoting from memory and
-giving the sense, merely.
-
-It will be sufficient for the purposes of the argument to give examples
-(except as to the Fourth Gospel) only from Justin, and to omit _his_
-quotations from Matthew and Mark, since they are so numerous and not a
-few of them of considerable length. Of his references, Rev. Mr. Wright
-says[1]: “Upon examination it is found that of the one hundred and twenty
-or more allusions which Justin makes to the Gospel history, nearly all
-coincide as to substance with the statements of either Matthew or Luke.
-Of the sixty or seventy apparently direct quotations, ten are exact,
-twenty-five are only slightly variant, while there are thirty-two in
-which the variation is considerable. But in respect to variations from
-the original in quotation, it should be remembered that familiarity often
-leads to carelessness with regard to minute points. Justin, himself, out
-of one hundred and sixty-two quotations from the Old Testament, has only
-sixty-four exact, while forty-four are slightly variant, and fifty-four
-decidedly so.”
-
-If the reader, with the New Testament in hand, will make a comparison in
-the examples which will be given, he can form his own judgment, which it
-is conceived, will be no doubtful one. The substantial agreement is very
-striking even when the language is not identical.
-
-JUSTIN FROM ACTS.
-
- “He was taken up into heaven while they beheld.” (Res., c. 9.)
- Acts i. 9.
-
-FROM MARK.
-
- “But is it not absurd to say that these members will exist
- after the resurrection from the dead, since the Saviour said,
- ‘They neither marry nor are given in marriage, but shall be as
- the angels in heaven.’” (Res., c. 2.) Mark xi. 25.
-
- “And that we ought to worship God alone, he thus persuadeth us:
- ‘The greatest commandment is, “Thou shalt worship the Lord thy
- God, and him only shalt thou serve with all thy heart, and with
- all thy strength the Lord God that made thee.”’” (Ap. c. 16.)
- Mark xii. 30.
-
- “He says, ‘I am not come to call the righteous, but sinners to
- repentance.’” (Res., c. 8.) Mark ii. 17.
-
-FROM LUKE.
-
- The first three are parts of long quotations from the Sermon on
- the Mount, principally as in Matthew (Ap. cc. 15, 16) Luke vi.:
- 28, 29, and Matthew vi.: 7, 8, 13.
-
- 4. “We are persuaded that every man ... will render account
- according to the power he has received from God, as Christ
- intimated when he said, ‘To whom God has given more, of him
- shall more be required.’” (Ap. c. 17.) Luke xv. 48.
-
- 5. “And the angel of God who was sent to the same virgin at
- that time brought her good news, saying, ‘Behold, thou shalt
- conceive of the Holy Ghost, and shall bear a son, and he shall
- be called the Son of the Highest. And thou shalt call his name
- Jesus, for he shall save his people from their sins,’ _as
- they who have recorded[2] all that concerns our Saviour Jesus
- Christ have taught_, whom we believe since by Isaiah also, whom
- we have now adduced, the Spirit of prophecy declared that he
- should be born as we intimated before.” (Ap. c. 33.) Luke i.
- 32, and Matthew i. 21.
-
- 6. “As our Lord himself says, ‘He that heareth me, heareth him
- that sent me.’” (Ap. c. 63.) Luke x. 16.
-
- 7. “And again in other words he said, ‘I give unto you power to
- tread on serpents, and on scorpions and on scolopendras, and on
- all the might of the enemy.’” (Dial. c. 76.) Luke x. 19.
-
- 8. “For he exclaimed before his crucifixion: ‘The Son of Man
- must suffer many things, and be rejected by the scribes and
- pharisees and be crucified, and on the third day rise again.’”
- (Dial. c. 76.) Luke ix. 22.
-
- 9. “Just as our Lord also said: ‘They shall neither marry nor
- be given in marriage, but shall be equal to the angels, the
- children of the God of the resurrection.’” (Dial. c. 81.) Luke
- xx. 35, 36.
-
- 10. “For he taught us to pray for our enemies also, saying,
- ‘Love your enemies; be kind and merciful as your heavenly
- Father’ is, for we see that the Almighty God is kind and
- merciful, causing his sun to rise on the unthankful and on the
- righteous, and sending rain on the holy and on the wicked.”
- (Dial. c. 96.) Luke vi. 35, and Matthew v. 45.
-
- 11. “But the Virgin Mary received faith and joy, when the angel
- Gabriel announced the good tidings to her that the Spirit of
- the Lord would come upon her and the power of the Highest would
- overshadow her; wherefore also the Holy Thing begotten of her
- is the Son of God; and she replied, ‘Be it unto me according to
- thy word.’” (Dial. c. 100.) Luke i. 35, 38.
-
- 12. “For when Christ was giving up his spirit on the cross he
- said: ‘Father, unto thy hands I commend my spirit,’ _as I have
- learned also from the Memoirs_.” (Dial. c. 105.) Luke xxiii. 46.
-
- 13. “He says, ‘The children of this world marry and are given
- in marriage; but the children of the world to come neither
- marry nor are given in marriage, but shall be like the angels
- in heaven.’” (Res., c. 3.) Luke xx. 34, 35.
-
- 14. “And wishing to confirm this, when his disciples did not
- know whether to believe he had truly risen in the body, and
- were looking upon him and doubting, he said to them, ‘Ye have
- not yet faith, see that it is I,’ and he let them handle him,
- and showed them the prints of the nails in his hands. And when
- they were by every kind of proof persuaded that it was himself
- and in the body, they asked him to eat with them, that they
- might thus still more accurately ascertain that he had in
- verity risen bodily; and he did eat honeycomb and fish. And
- when he had thus shown them that there is truly a resurrection
- of the flesh, and wishing to show them this also, that it is
- not impossible for flesh to ascend into heaven (as he had said
- that our dwelling place is in heaven). ‘He was taken up into
- heaven while they beheld,’ as he was in the flesh.” (Res., c.
- 9.) Luke xxiv. 38, 39, 40, 41, 42, 43, and Acts i. 9.
-
-Before presenting Justin, from the Fourth Gospel, the use of this Gospel
-by his contemporaries will be considered.
-
-In _Barnabas_ (c. 6) it is said that “He was to be manifested in flesh
-and to sojourn among us.” (Com. John i. 14.) It is also said in c. 12,
-in effect, that the brazen serpent was a type of Jesus. (Com. John iii.
-14-18.) Another passage in c. 7, although not cited by the editors, is,
-“Because they shall see him then in that day having a scarlet robe about
-his body down to his feet; and they shall say, ‘is not this he whom we
-once despised and _pierced_ and mocked and crucified?’” This _may_ have
-had reference to what is recorded only in John, as Apollinaris,[3]
-bishop of Hierapolis (_cir._ A.D. 170), afterward wrote: “The Son of God,
-_pierced_ in the sacred side, who shed forth from his side the two things
-again cleansing, water and blood, word and spirit.”
-
-In _Diognetus_, c. 6, it is said that “Christians dwell in the world yet
-are not of the world.” (Com. John xvii. 11, 14, 16.) In c. 11 it is said,
-“This is he who was from the beginning” (Com. John i. 1); and in the same
-chapter, “For who that is rightly taught and begotten by the loving Word,
-would not seek to know accurately the things which have been clearly
-shown by the Word to his disciples, to whom the Word being manifested has
-revealed them.” (Com. John i. 14, 18.) There is but a single _quotation_
-in this eloquent Letter, which is as in First Corinthians viii. 1,
-“Knowledge puffeth up, but love edifieth.”
-
-John alone speaks of Christ as the _door_, but the figure is often used
-in _Hermas_, as, “You saw, he added, the multitude who were building the
-tower? I saw them, sir, I said. Those, he said, are all glorious angels,
-and by them accordingly is the Lord surrounded. And the gate is the Son
-of God. This is the one entrance to the Lord. In no other way, then,
-shall any one enter into him except through his Son.” (Simil. ix. 12.)
-John x. This book of Hermas is an allegory in which an angel, in the
-guise of a shepherd, gives instruction in the doctrines and duties that
-were held and required by the Church. It has not a single _quotation_
-from either the Old or New Testament. But as Dr. Chartris in “Canonicity”
-(p. 137) well says: “The dignity, mission, and sufferings of God’s Son
-are prominent in Hermas’ teaching, and remind us of the Fourth Gospel at
-every turn.”
-
-The supposed quotation by Papias, Fragment 5 (found in Irenæus), “In
-my Father’s house are many mansions,” has been given in a previous
-chapter.[A]
-
-_Basilides_, according to Hippolytus, used as proof-texts the exact
-passages found in John i. 9 and John ii. 4. Hippolytus first records the
-comments of Basilides on the sentence in Genesis, _Let there be light_,
-and then proceeds as follows: “And this, he says, is what is said in the
-Gospels, ‘The true light which lighteth every man which cometh into the
-world.’ And that each thing, he says, has its own seasons, the Saviour is
-a sufficient witness when he says, ‘My hour is not yet come.’” Those who
-deny that these quotations[4] were by Basilides, claim that Hippolytus
-sometimes mixes up the opinions of the master of a school with those of
-his followers, and so it is not certain that Basilides used these texts.
-The learned author of “Canonicity,” recently published, p. 173, declares
-that the difficulties in the way of ascribing those quotations to any
-other than Basilides, are “enormous.” The reasoning of Matthew Arnold
-(who is quite far from being rigidly orthodox) is so conclusive that we
-give the substance of it: “If we take all the doubtful cases of the kind
-and compare them with our present case, we shall find that it is not
-one of them. It is not true that here where the name of Basilides has
-just come before, and where no mention of his son or of his disciples
-has intervened since, there is any such ambiguity as is found in other
-cases.... The author in general uses the formula, _according to them_,
-when he quotes from the school, and the formula, _he says_, when he
-gives the dicta of the Master. And in this particular case he manifestly
-quotes the dicta of Basilides, and no one who had not a theory to serve
-would ever dream of doubting it. Basilides, therefore, about the year one
-hundred and twenty-five of our own era, had before him the Fourth Gospel.”
-
-_The Epistles of Ignatius_, whether the longer or shorter or Syriac, may
-be of too doubtful genuineness, or rather, the extent as to which they
-are genuine is too doubtful to be relied upon, although some of them
-contain numerous quotations.
-
-[1] The Logic of Christian Evidences. By G. Frederick Wright, Andover,
-A.D. 1880, p. 190.
-
-[2] Or, as Dr. Abbott translated it, as “those who have written Memoirs
-of all things concerning our Saviour Jesus Christ, whom we believe,” etc.
-Fourth Gospel, p. 21.
-
-[3] As quoted (p. 43) in The Supernatural Origin of Christianity. By
-George P. Fisher, Professor of Church History in Yale College (A.D. 1870).
-
-[A] Chap. 3.
-
-[4] Judge Waite does not even refer to these quotations except to quote
-from Dr. Davidson in respect to Basilides in general, that “His supposed
-quotations from the New Testament in Hippolytus are too precarious to be
-trusted.” He does not seem to have known anything of Professors Arnold
-and Fisher, or Dr. Abbot, not to mention other very _respectable_ writers
-within the last ten years, who have regarded the use of the Fourth Gospel
-by Basilides as sufficiently attested.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI.
-
-JUSTIN’S USE OF THE FOURTH GOSPEL.
-
-
-Christ’s pre-existence, not declared in the other Gospels, is frequently
-referred to by Justin.[1] John alone calls Jesus the Word; Justin often
-refers to him as such. Justin regards the elevation of the brazen serpent
-in the wilderness as typical[2] of the crucifixion. He says it denoted
-salvation to those who flee for refuge to him who sent his crucified
-son into the world; the idea of God’s sending his Son into the world
-is peculiar to John. The descent of the Holy Spirit in the form of a
-dove, at the baptism of Jesus, is mentioned only in the First and Fourth
-Gospels. Justin (Dial. c. 88) says that when Jesus “came out of the
-water, the Holy Ghost lighted on him like a dove, _as the Apostles of
-this very Christ of ours wrote_.” Justin (Dial. c. 88) cites, as the
-words of John the Baptist, “I am not the Christ, but the voice of one
-crying.”
-
-This declaration, “I am not the Christ,” and this application to himself
-of the language of Isaiah, are attributed to the Baptist only in John
-(John i. 20, 23, and iii. 28). Hilgenfeld, the latest representative of
-the Tübingen skeptical school, recognizes[3] here the use of the Fourth
-Gospel by Justin. And Dr. Ezra Abbot, following Professor Drummond, gives
-twenty[4] instances (including the express quotation) of the apparent or
-seeming use of this Gospel by Justin.
-
-_The express quotation_ as in John iii. 3, 5, is as follows: “For Christ
-also said, ‘Except ye be born again ye shall not enter into the kingdom
-of heaven.’ Now, that it is impossible for those who have once been born
-to enter into their mothers’ womb is manifest to all.” (Ap. c. 61.) This
-is as translated in the Ante-Nicene Christian Library. Dr. Abbot (p. 29)
-translates it “Except ye be born again, ye shall in no wise enter into
-the kingdom of heaven.” Matthew Arnold, “Except ye be born again ye shall
-not enter into the kingdom of heaven.” Our common version is, “Except
-a man be born again he cannot see the kingdom of God;” and in verse
-5, “Except a man be born of water and the Spirit he cannot enter into
-the kingdom of God.” The revised version, “Except a man be born anew,”
-or “from above” (margin), “he cannot see the kingdom of God.” There
-is a _substantial_ agreement in the quotation with John’s Gospel, and
-unmistakable reference to the interview with Nicodemus, which is found
-only in John. The most _rational_ inference is that it was from that
-source.
-
-Justin, in this quotation, was as definite as when (Ap. c. 32) he wrote:
-“Moses then, who was the first of the prophets, spake in these very
-words, ‘The sceptre shall not depart from Judah, nor a lawgiver from
-between his feet, until he come for whom it is reserved; and he shall be
-the desire of the nations, binding his foal to the vine, washing his robe
-in the blood of the grape.’” (Com. Gen. xlix. 10, 11.) He does not state
-_where_ the passage is to be found, and its divergence from Genesis is
-greater than the difference in the language of Jesus, as quoted by Justin
-and recorded by John.
-
-Justin, in quoting from the Old Testament, usually gives the _name_ of
-the prophet, _but nothing more_; just as he gives this quotation as the
-language of Christ. He writes _Moses said_, or _Isaiah said_, and he also
-writes _Christ said_.
-
-The other Apostolic Fathers, in their quotations from the Old Testament,
-do not usually give the name of the prophet, but only, “It is written,”
-“God said,” “The Spirit saith,” “The Scripture saith,” and often only
-“saith,” “The Scripture” in such cases being implied. And, as a rule,
-they do not quote with literal accuracy or a near approximation to it.
-
-It has been objected, that if this quotation was actually from the Fourth
-Gospel, more than a single quotation from it should be expected. Let this
-be tested by the four epistles confessed to be genuine. There is not a
-single quotation by Justin from _either_ of these acknowledged epistles,
-and it is doubtful if there is a single reference to them, certainly not
-in his Apology.
-
-Nor is this all. The epistle to the Galatians (and Renan says, “Thanks to
-the Epistle to the Galatians!”) is not referred to in any way by Clement,
-or in Barnabas, or Hermas; nor First Corinthians in Barnabas or Hermas
-(and but once in Diognetus); nor Romans in Hermas; nor Revelation in
-Barnabas, or Diognetus, or Polycarp, and but once by Clement.
-
-To account for Justin’s silence, it has been imagined, without the
-slightest evidence, that Justin was “anti-Pauline.” But how are the
-omissions by other writers to be accounted for? How did it happen that
-Clement made no reference to Galatians? It was not from hostility,
-certainly, for he speaks of “The blessed Apostle Paul.” Yet writing
-this epistle from the church at Rome, to the church at Corinth, he has
-but a single quotation from Paul’s Epistle to the Romans, and but a
-single quotation from Paul’s First Epistle to the Corinthians, and _no_
-reference to Galatians.
-
-The well-known distinction of everyday application in courts of law and
-elsewhere, between positive and negative evidence, is to be kept in mind.
-Whether John’s Gospel would be quoted by any writer acquainted with it,
-might depend entirely upon his object in writing; and so of Galatians, or
-any of the books of the New Testament. While a single undoubted quotation
-proves the existence of that which is quoted from, non-quotation may
-prove nothing at all.
-
-Justin apparently has one quotation from the Fourth Gospel, with many
-implied references to it. But if there were neither the one nor the
-other, to infer his ignorance of that Gospel from his silence would be
-just as sensible as to infer that a lawyer had never heard of Blackstone,
-or Kent, or Story, because he has not quoted from them.
-
-If Justin in his Apology quoted once from Mark, and once from John, and
-not at all from Acts, or Revelations, or Paul’s Epistles, it was because
-his subject did not call for any use of those writings, beyond the use
-which he made of Mark and John. And if (as was apparently the fact) he
-quoted Luke six times and Matthew eighteen times in his Apology, it was
-doubtless because Matthew better served his purpose, or was more firmly
-fixed in his memory, from his having been born in Palestine, where
-Matthew’s Gospel was published.
-
-A like explanation accounts for the fact that the Fourth Gospel is not
-quoted by Polycarp in his Epistle to the Philippians. Neither does he
-quote or cite from Revelations.
-
-The result so far is this: The Fourth Gospel, apparently, is quoted by
-Basilides, and Justin, and Papias; and, in addition, there are many
-implied references to it. There is about the same amount of evidence in
-respect to Mark and the book of Acts. The evidence accumulates as to
-Luke’s Gospel, and from Matthew, the quotations and citations become very
-numerous.
-
-That these quotations and citations were forgeries is an idea that cannot
-be seriously entertained by anybody. There were originals from which
-the quotations were taken; and presumptively, those originals were the
-“Memoirs” so often referred to by Justin; and _presumptively_ our Gospels
-were those _Memoirs_, since they answer the description. And unless it
-can be shown that _other_ writings _that will answer the description_
-were then extant, this presumption is well nigh conclusive.
-
-[1] Ap. cc. 5, 23, 32, 42, 50, 53, 63; Dial. cc. 48, 57, 68, 76, 85, 100,
-101.
-
-[2] Ap. c. 60: Dial. cc. 7, 94, 140.
-
-[3] Abbot, p. 45; Fisher, p. 39; Sears, “The Heart of Christ” (A.D.
-1873), pp. 46-67.
-
-[4] Abbot, pp. 40-50.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII.
-
-NO OTHERS PROVED.
-
-
-The latest work in this country which denies the genuineness of our
-Gospels, is “The History of the Christian religion to the year two
-hundred.” (Chicago, 1881.) The author says it is the result of an
-investigation extending through several years, two of which were spent
-in the library of congress, “which is peculiarly rich in the department
-of biblical literature.” He claims that his volume “will be found to
-be the most complete record of the events connected with the Christian
-religion during the first two centuries, which has ever been presented
-to the public.” He shows no lack of ability or disposition to make as
-strong a case as possible against our Gospels. And he understands the
-issue. For, he says, the question what Gospels were used by Justin, “is
-of the highest importance.” In this work, then, if anywhere, should
-there be proof of _other_ writings than our Gospels, that will meet the
-requirements of the case. But what do we find? It gives a list of “_forty
-Gospels_,” before the decree of Pope Gelasius, A.D. 494. The only marvel
-is that the list is not longer. The greater portion are the now extant
-Apocryphal Gospels, Acts, and Revelations, which may be found in Vol.
-XVI., of the Ante-Nicene Christian Library. Much confusion, says[1]
-Dr. Ezra Abbot, has arisen from the fact that the term “Gospel” was
-in ancient times applied to speculative works which gave the writer’s
-view of the Gospel, _i. e._, of the doctrine of Christ, or among the
-Gnostics, which set forth their _gnosis_; _e. g._, among the followers
-of Basilides, Hippolytus tells us, “The Gospel is the knowledge of
-supermundane things.” Of all the Apocryphal Gospels, Samuel Ives Curtiss,
-the well-known German professor in the Chicago Theological Seminary,
-writes:[2]—
-
- “I shall not waste any ink or paper to prove that the
- Protevangelium, the Gospel of the Infancy, the Acts of Pilate,
- etc., in their present forms as known to us and as quoted
- by Judge Waite, arose at a later period than our canonical
- Gospels.” ... “A knowledge of the original sources and the
- literature of the subject would have saved him from this
- pitiful blunder. I simply refer to Professor Lipsius’ article
- on the Apocryphal Gospels, in Smith and Wace’s Dictionary of
- Christian Biography, London, 1880, Vol. II., pp. 700, _seq._;
- and Holtzmann’s Apocryphon des Neuen Testaments, in Schenkel’s
- Bible Lexicon, Leipzig, 1869, Vol. I., pp. 170 _seq._ As
- neither of these articles are by orthodox men, or by those who
- have the slightest bias toward orthodoxy, they are calculated
- to inspire confidence in persons of every shade of belief or
- disbelief. Both are authorities; Meyer’s Conversations-Lexikon
- says of Professor Lipsius, of Jena, that he is one of the most
- eminent scholars in Germany.” (See note 2.)
-
-With this concurring judgment of the most eminent scholars, not much
-time should be spent upon these Apocryphal books. But a single quotation
-is given by Judge Waite that is claimed by him to have been made by
-Justin from either of them. And this (although not to be found in any
-_single_ passage in our Gospels) may be gathered from different passages,
-which would be in keeping with Justin’s mode. It corresponds quite
-nearly, though not precisely, with a _part_[3] of the description in the
-Protevangelium of the announcement to Mary. But this no more proves the
-use of the Protevangelium by Justin than it proves the use of Justin’s
-Apology by the writer of the Protevangelium. Aside from this quotation,
-there are a few facts stated by Justin that are claimed, by some persons,
-to have been taken from the Apocryphal Gospels. _One_ is, that Jesus made
-ploughs and yokes, which Justin of course would infer, from the fact that
-it was a part of the business of a carpenter to make ploughs and yokes.
-_Another_ is, that Jesus was born in a cave. Dr. Thompson, says[4], “It
-is not impossible, to say the least, but that the apartment in which our
-Saviour was born was in part a cave. I have seen many such, consisting
-of one or more rooms in front of and including a cavern, where the cattle
-were kept.” Justin, who was a native of Judea, added a circumstance
-well known from tradition, which Luke did not think it of consequence
-to mention, that the manger was in a cave, _i. e._, that the stable in
-which was the manger was in a cave. He had no occasion to resort to books
-for such a fact. _Another_ is, that Justin refers the Roman Emperor to
-“Acts of Pilate” as affording evidence of what he had stated concerning
-Christ’s crucifixion, and the miracles which he had performed. According
-to the usual course, Pilate should have made a report of the crucifixion.
-It is supposed that he did, and that it was lost or destroyed. Justin
-appeals to it, as if then in the archives of the government. Whether
-he was well or ill informed upon the subject, the document to which he
-appeals, clearly was not understood by him to be one of the “Memoirs”
-of Christ, “drawn up” by an Apostle, or a “companion” of an Apostle.
-Nothing purporting to be Pilate’s report is extant. The Apocryphal book,
-known as the Gospel of Nicodemus or Acts of Pilate, does not purport to
-contain[5] any such report. _Another_ is, that Justin says that Christ
-was of the House of David; a fact which Jesus himself had declared[6]
-and which is also referred to, in Acts. The only remaining fact, in
-respect to the alleged use of the Protevangelium, is in relation to the
-_census_. It is claimed that Justin and the Protevangelium agree that it
-was only to be taken in Judea.[7] But Justin does not so state. It also
-happens, that while Justin makes mention of Cyrenius, the Protevangelium
-only says, “And there was an order from the Emperor Augustus that all
-in Bethlehem of Judea should be enrolled,” saying nothing of Cyrenius.
-This is followed by an absurd and worthless story of occurrences, by the
-way. Justin has two references to the census, which will be found in the
-note.[8] Justin, in stating that there was a census in Judea, does not
-exclude the idea that it was more general.
-
-Judge Waite, following the anonymous author of “The Supernatural,” and
-others, also claims that Justin’s statement that at the baptism of Jesus
-“a _fire_ was kindled in the Jordan,” must have been taken either from
-the “Gospel of the Hebrews,” or the “Preaching of Paul.” As to the former
-(as he gives the translation from a fragment from Jerome) it is, that,
-“certainly there shone around the place a great _light_,” which is not
-what Justin said. There is no evidence from any quarter that this “Gospel
-of the Hebrews” was in existence (other than as Matthew’s Gospel was in
-existence), when Justin wrote. Nor is there any evidence that it was
-in use, at _any_ period, except among the Nazarenes (a small Judaizing
-sect of Christians), and the Cerinthians, and Ebionites, two heretical
-sects. The very authorities quoted to prove its existence, clearly
-show that it was never in _general_ use, or accepted by the churches
-generally. Neither the work itself, nor Jerome’s translation of it, has
-been in existence _for centuries_. From what is known of it, it seems
-to have been[9] the Hebrew Gospel of Matthew, “not entire and perfect,
-but corrupted and curtailed.” It omitted the first two chapters. Some
-of the corruptions show its true character[10] so far as it varied from
-Matthew’s Hebrew Gospel; for as Papias wrote, and the Fathers generally
-believed, Matthew first composed his Gospel in the Hebrew dialect.
-
-“The Preaching of Paul” was less known, and even of less account,
-than the other. Judge Waite says (p. 229) that it “was referred to by
-Lactantius and others, and was generally known in the second century.”
-But he furnishes no evidence of it, and Lactantius died about A.D. 325.
-As to its contents, Judge Waite only says that “It contained references
-to the Sybilline writings; also to the fire in Jordan at the time of
-the baptism of Jesus.” There is no good reason to suppose that it was
-_extant_ when Justin wrote; and most certainly, it was never received by
-the churches generally. Eusebius does not seem to have known anything of
-it, unless to reject it as spurious. He says (Book III., c. 25): “Among
-the spurious, must be numbered both the books called ‘The Acts of Paul,’
-and that called ‘Pastor,’ and ‘The Revelation of Peter.’”
-
-Eusebius also is equally pronounced against the production called the
-“Gospel according to Peter.” That this “Gospel” was referred to by
-Justin in the passage before considered (_vide_ c. 4), is the fact _to
-be proved_. The first _mention_ of it, was by Serapion[11], who became
-Bishop of Antioch A.D. 191, fifty years after Justin wrote. He found
-a few copies of it among his flock, which he replaced, substituting
-Mark’s Gospel for it, for the reason that he found in it “many things
-superadded to the sound faith of our Saviour; and some also attached,
-that are foreign to it.” This _bishop_ seems to have had no knowledge of
-its existence till that time. It favored the Docetæ, from some of whom it
-had come into his parish. The pretence that Tertullian referred to it,
-and intended to assert that in his day the Gospel of Mark was understood
-to have this Gospel of Peter for its original, has nothing to rest upon
-but another perversion of Tertullian’s meaning. The passage relied upon
-is here given with such words in italics as must be _supplied_ to warrant
-the use which has been attempted to be made of it: “The Gospel which
-Mark published is affirmed to be” _what is known as_ “Peter’s” _Gospel_,
-“whose interpreter Mark was.” This forced construction, would make Mark
-the interpreter, _not_ of Peter, but of the heretical work at some time
-known by some as _Peter’s Gospel_. Not Strauss himself, nor even the
-author of “The Supernatural,” so interpreted Tertullian. What Tertullian
-wrote was, that “The Gospel which Mark published is affirmed to be
-Peter’s; whose interpreter Mark was.” Marcion mutilated Luke’s Gospel,
-and Judge Waite says, “Tertullian called him _a hound_.” If any one in
-his day had perverted his language as to Mark’s Gospel, so as to make it
-endorse the work which Serapion (who was a cotemporary of Tertullian)
-suppressed as heretical, Tertullian would not have been likely to have
-used a _less_ expressive word than that which he applied to Marcion.
-Tertullian simply meant, as Papias had written, and the church believed,
-that Mark was Peter’s _interpreter_, and in _that_ sense Mark’s Gospel
-was Peter’s Gospel.
-
-The next writer referred to for “Peter’s Gospel” is Origen, A.D. 230.
-Origen says: “There are some who say the brethren of Christ were the
-children of Joseph by a former wife, who lived with him before Mary;
-and they are induced to this opinion by some passages in that _which
-is entitled_ (the italics are ours) ‘The Gospel of Peter, or the Book
-of James.’” When it is considered that Origen, in most explicit terms,
-declares that our four Gospels “are the only undisputed ones in the whole
-Church of God throughout the world,” and that of these, “the second is
-according to Mark, who composed it as Peter explained it to him, whom he
-also acknowledges as his son in his General Epistle,” the perversion of
-his language is apparent. Mr. Norton, whose opinion, it is conceded, “is
-entitled to great weight,” upon a careful examination of the subject,
-believes that this “Gospel” was not a history or biography of Christ’s
-ministry at all, but only a _doctrinal_[12] treatise. _Not a single
-fragment of it has come down to us._ There is no evidence from any
-quarter that it was _generally_ received in the churches _at any_ period;
-on the contrary, the evidence, so far as it goes, proves that it was not
-so received. It was the Gospel exclusively used by the Ebionites,[13] and
-neither Justin nor the majority of Christians in his time were Ebionites.
-Its very suppression by Serapion is conclusive; and there is nothing to
-impeach Eusebius’ judgment against it. There is no evidence that it was
-even in existence when Justin wrote, for the mere fact of its being found
-by Serapion forty or fifty years after is too remote. _Hence_, if Justin,
-in the paragraph before quoted in chapter four, by “_him_” meant Peter,
-instead of Christ (which we do not accept),[14] the Gospel of Mark, which
-in a sense was understood to be Peter’s, was the one intended; and the
-true construction of the words in question is of minor importance.
-
-Judge Waite has succeeded as well as any one, in his attempt to find
-_other_ writings than our Gospels, that will meet the necessities of the
-case. Professor Lipsius, one of the most eminent scholars in Germany,
-says,[15] “The attempt to prove that Justin Martyr and the Clementine
-Homilies had one extra-canonical authority common to them both, either
-in the Gospel to the Hebrews or in the Gospel of St. Peter, has
-altogether failed.” Of recent writers this side of the ocean, Dr. Ezra
-Abbot of Harvard College (who has already “a distinguished Continental
-reputation”), states,[16] after a thorough examination of the whole
-subject, as some of the results: “We have seen that there is no _direct_
-evidence of any weight that Justin used either the ‘Gospel according to
-the Hebrews’ (so far as this was distinguished from the Gospel according
-to Matthew) or the ‘Gospel according to Peter.’ That he should have
-taken either of these as the source of his quotations, or that either of
-these constituted the ‘Memoirs’ read generally at public worship in the
-Christian churches of his time, is in the highest degree improbable.”...
-“Still less can be said in behalf of the hypothesis that any other
-Apocryphal ‘Gospel’ of which we know anything, constituted the ‘Memoirs,’
-which he cites, if they were one book, or was included among them, if
-they were several.”
-
-Mr. Rowe’s[17] judgment is, that the facts referred to by Justin, but
-not recorded in the Gospels, stand to those which _are_ recorded, in the
-proportion of only four, to one hundred and ninety-six. In other words,
-that all but four out of about two hundred references, appear in the
-Gospels. “It is marvellous,” he says, “when we consider the nearness
-of the time when Justin lived to our Lord’s ministry, that he should
-have preserved so few incidents respecting it which vary from those in
-our Gospels, rather than that those to which he has referred should
-present the slight variations they do; for it is an interval within which
-traditionary reminiscences must have possessed all their freshness.”
-
-[1] P. 16 of “Authorship of the Fourth Gospel,” etc. (1880).
-
-[2] The _Daily Inter-Ocean_ of Feb. 12, 1881. To the same effect, “The
-Authorship,” p. 98, note 6; The Supernatural Origin of Christianity, by
-George P. Fisher, D.D., Professor of Christian History in Yale College
-(1870), p. 191-2; Origin, etc., by Prof. C. E. Stowe (1867), p. 185, c. 7.
-
-[3] “And the angel of God who was sent to the same virgin at that time,
-brought her the good news, saying, ‘Behold thou shalt conceive of the
-Holy Ghost and shalt bear a son, and he shall be called the Son of the
-Highest, and thou shalt call his name Jesus, for he shall save his people
-from their sins.’” After a dozen lines, the last clause is repeated as
-follows: “Wherefore, too, the angel said to the virgin, ‘Thou shalt
-call his name Jesus, for he shall save his people from their sins.’”
-The last clause seems to have been transferred from Matthew by Justin.
-The Protevangelium (c. 11) reads as follows: “And she hearing, reasoned
-with herself, saying: Shall I conceive by the Lord, the living God? And
-shall I bring forth, as every woman brings forth? And the angel of the
-Lord said: Not so, Mary; for the power of the Lord shall overshadow
-thee; wherefore also that holy thing which shall be born of thee shall
-be called the Son of the Most High. And thou shalt call his name Jesus,
-for he shall save his people from their sins. And Mary said: Behold the
-servant of the Lord before his face; let it be unto me according to
-thy word. And she made the purple and the scarlet and took them to the
-priest,” etc. The account is preceded by the story that it had fallen to
-her lot to spin purple and scarlet for the veil of the temple, and that
-when the angel spake to her she was going with a pitcher to fill it with
-water. It is not easy to believe that Justin’s simple narrative came from
-such a source.
-
-[4] The Land and the Book, by W. M. Thompson, D.D., twenty-five years a
-missionary of the A. B. C. F. M., in Syria and Palestine, Vol. II, p. 503.
-
-[5] The first part contains a graphic account of the trial and
-crucifixion. At the trial witnesses are represented as appearing before
-Pilate and narrating different miracles which had been performed. Judge
-Waite devotes considerable space in comparing these accounts with the
-Gospel narratives. He argues that the Apocryphal account must have been
-the earlier one, _because_ of its brevity, and because it does not
-include _all_ the miracles. This is as if one should infer that the plea
-of the advocate, or the charge of the judge, preceded the testimony, or
-the compendium, the history.
-
-[6] Matt. ix. 27; xii. 23; xv. 22; Mark x. 47; xii. 35-7; Luke xx. 30-1;
-xl. 6; xviii. 38-9; John vii. 42; Acts xiii. 23; Ro. i. 3.
-
-[7] Protevangelium, p. 17; vol. 16, Ante-Nicene Christian Library, pp.
-18-19.
-
-[8] Apology, c. 34. “Now there is a village in the land of the Jews,
-thirty-five stadia from Jerusalem, in which Jesus Christ was born, as you
-can ascertain also from the registers of the taxing made under Cyrenius,
-your first procurator in Judea.” Dial. c. 78. “Then he was afraid and
-did not put her away; but on the occasion of the first census which was
-taken in Judea under Cyrenius, he went up from Nazareth where he lived to
-Bethlehem, to which he belonged, to be enrolled; for his family was of
-the tribe of Judah, which then inhabited that region.” Joseph was both
-of the tribe of Judah, and of the house and lineage of David, and there
-is no contradiction. It is to be noticed that the census is spoken of as
-the _first_ census that was taken. Cyrenius, called then procurator, was
-afterward governor.
-
-[9] See authorities in Note 2.
-
-[10] “Now my mother, the Holy Ghost, took me by one of my hairs, and
-brought me to the great mountain even Tabor.” “Jesus said unto him, go
-sell all which thou possessest and divide among the poor, and come follow
-me. But the rich man _began to scratch his head_, and it did not please
-him.” Origin, _etc._, by Professor Stowe, p. 22.
-
-[11] Abbott’s Fourth Gospel, p. 78; Eusebius, b. 6, c. 12; b. 3, c. 25.
-
-[12] Abbott, etc., p. 79; Waite’s History, p. 11.
-
-[13] Abbott, etc., p. 104, Eusebius, b. 6, c. 12.
-
-[14] The entire passage is as follows: “And when it is said that he
-changed the name of one of the Apostles to Peter; and when it is written
-in the Memoirs of him that this so happened, as well as that he changed
-the names of other two brothers, the sons of Zebedee, to Boanerges, which
-means sons of thunder; this was an announcement of the fact that it was
-he by whom Jacob was called Israel, and Oshea called Jesus (Joshua) under
-whose name the people who survived of those who came from Egypt were
-conducted into the land promised to the patriarchs.” The controversy
-is, whether the personal pronouns “He” and “Him” refer to Jesus, or
-whether “Him” refers to Peter. Judge Waite says that Justin has ten times
-“Memoirs of the Apostles,” and five times, “Memoirs,” and not once,
-“Memoirs of Christ.” It is true we do not find “Memoirs of Christ.” But
-confessedly the Memoirs intended were of or concerning Christ, and not of
-or concerning the Apostles, or either of them. Justin used the expression
-Memoirs of the Apostles just as we say the Gospel of John. They were
-concerning Christ; he is the grand subject of discourse in all Justin’s
-writings. And in Ap. c. 33, Justin speaks of those “who have written
-Memoirs of all things concerning our Saviour Jesus Christ.” In the proper
-and highest sense they should only be spoken of as “Memoirs of Christ.”
-
-Judge Waite, after the author of “The Supernatural” (p. 337), says, to
-refer to the more distant antecedent is contrary to the rule. The rule is
-of but slight importance as compared to the whole scope. And to apply the
-rule here, Peter would be the one who changed the names of the sons of
-Zebedee; for Peter, and not Christ, would be the last antecedent.
-
-[15] As quoted by Dr. Ezra Abbot, pp. 98, 99; see, also, _Inter-Ocean_ of
-February 12, 1881.
-
-[16] Abbot, etc., p. 103, 104; _Inter-Ocean_ of February 12.
-
-[17] Bampton Lectures for 1877, pp. 279, 281.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII.
-
-PRESUMPTION OF PERMANENCY.
-
-
-In general, says Mr. Phillips,[1] there is a presumption in favor of the
-continuance of what is once proved to have existed. It is a familiar
-principle of law, says Chief Justice Parker, that a state of things
-once shown to exist is presumed to continue until something is shown to
-rebut the presumption. And this position, says Professor Greenleaf, is
-founded “on the experienced _continuance_ or permanency of longer or
-shorter duration in human affairs. When, therefore, the existence of a
-person, a personal relation, or a state of things, is once established
-by proof, the law presumes that the person, relation, or state of things
-continues to exist as before, until the contrary is shown, or until
-a different presumption is raised from the nature of the subject in
-question.” With other examples of the application of this presumption,
-he mentions opinions and religious convictions: “The _opinions_ also of
-individuals, once entertained and expressed, and the _state_ of _mind_,
-once proved to exist, are presumed to remain unchanged until the contrary
-appears. Thus, all the members of a Christian community, being presumed
-to entertain the common faith, no man is supposed to disbelieve the
-existence and moral government of God, until it is shown from his own
-declarations.” This presumption being founded in reason and experience,
-is of universal application. It is not conclusive, but stands “until
-something is shown to rebut it.” It is the basis of Hume’s argument
-against miracles, but which he misapplies, making it conclusive instead
-of presumptive evidence. As a presumption, it is strictly applicable
-to the question in hand, and will be found to have great force. For,
-from this natural and reasonable presumption, it should be taken,
-unless the contrary is proved, that the accepted “Memoirs” of Justin’s
-time _remained_ in the churches. Hence if we can ascertain with entire
-certainty _what_ “Memoirs” were accepted in the churches in the year 180,
-and no evidence of displacement and substitution appears, we shall have
-_most satisfactory evidence_ what “Memoirs” were the ones intended by him
-in his Apology.
-
-[1] Phillips on Evidence, 4th Am. Ed., 640: 17 N. H. Rep., 409: 1
-Greenleaf on Evidence, §§ 41, 42.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX.
-
-THE MEMOIRS OF THE YEAR ONE HUNDRED AND EIGHTY.
-
-
-There is undoubted proof that within forty years from the time Justin
-wrote his First Apology, our Four Gospels (and no others) with the Book
-of Acts, were universally received in the church, as we now receive
-them. It comes from the writings of Agrippa Castor, Apollinaris, Bishop
-of Hierapolis, Apelles, Athenagoras, Basilides, Celsus, Clement of
-Alexandria, Eusebius, Heracleon, Irenæus, Jerome, Marcion, Melito, Bishop
-of Sardis, Origen, Pantænus, Polycarp, Serapion, Tatian, Theophilus,
-Tertullian, Valentine, The Letter of the Church of Vienne and Lyons,
-and the unknown authors of the Clementine Homilies, and the Muratori
-Canon—Christians, Gnostics, Heretics, and Heathen, all concurring to
-prove universal reception, beyond a reasonable doubt. So strong is
-this proof that even Strauss does not deny such reception by the _end_
-of the second century, and he admits that there is evidence of an
-_earlier_ date. He says: “We learn from the works of Irenæus, of Clement
-Alexandrinus, and of Tertullian, that, at the end of the second century
-after Christ, our Four Gospels were recognized by the orthodox church
-as the writings of the Apostles and the disciples [companions] of the
-Apostles, and were separated from many other similar productions, as
-authentic records of the life of Jesus. The first Gospel, according to
-our Canon, is attributed [i. e. by the authors named] to Matthew, who is
-enumerated among the twelve Apostles; the fourth to John, the beloved
-disciple of our Lord; the second to Mark, the interpreter of Peter;[1]
-and the third to Luke, the companion of Paul. We have, besides, the
-authority of earlier authors, both in their own works, and in quotations
-cited by others.” As a false witness sometimes admits a part, the better
-to conceal what is more important, so Strauss _admits_ a state of things
-as existing at the _end_ of the century, that, beyond dispute, should
-be carried back to a time at least twenty years earlier. Thus Professor
-Fisher, in his exhaustive work, says of John’s Gospel (which is conceded
-to have been the last): “We choose to begin[2] with the unquestioned
-fact of the universal reception of the Fourth Gospel as genuine in the
-last quarter of the second century. At that time we find that it was
-held in every part of Christendom to be the work of the Apostle John.
-The prominent witnesses are Tertullian in North Africa, Clement in
-Alexandria, and Irenæus in Gaul.” And Professor Abbot[3] says: “I begin
-with the statement, which cannot be questioned, that our present Gospels,
-and no others, were received by the great body of Christians as genuine
-and sacred books during the last quarter of the second century.”
-
-Theophilus of Antioch, _as early_ as A.D. 180, not only quotes from the
-Fourth Gospel, as Scripture, but names John as its author, as follows:[4]
-“As the Holy Scriptures, and all who have the Spirit, teach us, among
-whom John says, ‘In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with
-God;’ signifying that God alone was in the beginning, and that the Word
-was in him. And then he says, the Word was God, and all things were made
-by Him, and without him there was not anything made.” Theophilus also
-wrote a Commentary upon the Gospels. Before this time, also, our Gospels
-and Acts had been included in a list[5] of canonical books received in
-the churches. They were in their present order, and, as far as their
-authorship is stated, are attributed to the persons whose names are
-now assigned to them. And before[6] this date, Celsus (who anticipated
-Strauss by seventeen hundred years) had cited alleged contradictions in
-the Gospels, and particularly as to there being one or two angels at
-the sepulchre. He attempted to ridicule the idea that blood and water
-came from Jesus’ side—a fact that is stated only in John. He refers
-to the fact that Christ “after his death arose, and showed the marks
-of his punishment, and how his hands had been pierced.” Although he
-does not _name_ the authors of the books, yet his numerous quotations
-correspond with them, including Luke and John. And in respect to all of
-the discrepancies, etc., he says: “All these things I have taken out of
-your own books,” i. e. Scriptures. “We need,” says he, “no after witness,
-for you fall upon your own swords.” His work has not come down to us
-except as contained in Origen’s writings, which, however, quote so fully
-from it, that it is nearly reproduced. And ten years[7] before this time,
-Tatian, who had been a disciple of Justin (but after Justin’s death
-became heretical), wrote a Commentary or Harmony upon the Gospels. He
-called it Diatesseron, which means the Gospel of the Four. The celebrated
-Syrian, Father Ephræm, who died A.D. 373, wrote a commentary on it.
-Bar-Salibi, who flourished in the last part of the twelfth century, was
-also well acquainted with Tatian’s work; and says that it began with John
-i. 1: “_In the beginning was the Word_.”
-
-Before this date, Heracleon, a disciple of the Gnostic Valentine, wrote
-a commentary upon the Fourth Gospel. The work is known[8] to us through
-many fragments, which Origen has woven into his own commentary on the
-same Gospel.
-
-Quotations from the canonical Gospels _between_ the periods mentioned
-are very numerous. It is unnecessary to cite them, or to give other
-specific proof of a state of things existing _as early_ as 180, as shown
-by most incontrovertible evidence, whatever doubt may be had as to some
-items of this evidence. Indeed an earlier date might properly be assumed
-than that taken as the basis of our argument. Thus Dr. Charteris, in his
-recent work, says, in view of all the circumstances: “When we pass the
-_middle_ of the century, and come to the works of Tatian, Athenagoras,
-and Theophilus (with a quotation by name) we are out of the region of
-controversy.” (Canonicity, lxxxi.) There were a few persons called the
-Alogi, a nickname having the double meaning of “deniers of the doctrine
-of the Logos,” and “men without reason,” who denied John’s authorship of
-the Fourth Gospel. They were probably a few[9] eccentric individuals, who
-attracted no attention, and none of whose names are preserved. The fact
-that they appealed to no tradition in favor of their views, denied John’s
-authorship of the Apocalypse likewise, and absurdly ascribed both to
-Cerinthus, whom no one supposes could have been their author, shows that
-they were persons of no critical judgment. They were _outside_ of the
-churches of which Justin wrote. The reception of the canonical Gospels,
-to the exclusion of all others, was _universal_ in those churches.
-
-[1] Not the interpreter of “_Peter’s Gospel!_” (Page 49-50, Vol. 1, of
-“The Life of Jesus,” etc., 1860).
-
-[2] P. 39 of “The Supernatural Origin of Christianity,” (1870), by Prof.
-Fisher.
-
-[3] P. 13 of “The Authorship of the Fourth Gospel” (1880).
-
-[4] P. 177 of Prof. Stowe’s “Origin and History of the Books of the New
-Testament” (1867); Strauss’ Life of Christ, p. 52; Waite’s History, pp.
-302, 354; p. 130 of Fisher’s “Supernatural Origin,” etc.
-
-[5] A fragment of this writing was discovered by the Italian scholar
-Muratori, and from him is called the Muratori Canon. It is written in
-Latin, but is supposed to have been first written in Greek. The first
-part of the writing is wanting, so that it begins with Luke, which it
-calls the “Third book of the Gospel according to Luke.” It was found in
-the Ambrosian Library, at Milan, in a manuscript containing extracts from
-writings of Ambrose, Chrysostom, and others. It professes to give a list
-of the writings that are recognized in the Christian Church. Judge Waite
-(p. 412) assigns A.D. 190 as its date. Prof. Curtiss says of it: “_The
-most eminent New Testament scholars_ in America, England and Germany,
-with a few exceptions, hold that it was written in the last quarter of
-the second century (the most setting the date at about 170-180 A.D.) Some
-of them are: Prof. Ezra Abbot, of Harvard College; Drs. E. A. Abbott,
-Canon Wescott, W. A. Sanday, Credner, Weiseler, Bleek, Reuss, Hilgenfeld,
-and many others” (_Inter-Ocean_, February 12, 1881). The Fragment
-contains internal evidence of the time when it was written. In reference
-to the “Pastor” it says: This “did Hermas write, _very recently, in our
-times_, in the city of Rome, while his brother Bishop Pius sat in the
-chair in the church of Rome.” Now Pius was Bishop from A.D. 142 to 157.
-Waite’s History, p. 232.
-
-[6] In reply to Judge Waite, who assigned A.D. 210 to Celsus, Professor
-Curtiss says that “Dr. Keim, who belongs to the most liberal German
-school, and who made a very careful investigation of the subject (Celsus
-Wahres Wort, Zurich, 1873), sets the date in the year 177 or 178, A.D.”
-See also Smith and Wace’s Dictionary of Christian Biography, London,
-1877, vol. 1, p. 436; Fisher, p. 42; “Heart of Christ,” by Edmund H.
-Sears, 1873, p. 148; Abbott’s Fourth Gospel, etc., p. 58. See also
-Sanday, p. 262, and Canonicity, by Dr. Charteris, 1880, p. 369. Origen,
-in one place, in answering his objections, speaks of him as “a man long
-since dead.”
-
-[7] Pp. 52-53 of Abbot’s Fourth Gospel.
-
-[8] “Tischendorf’s Origin of the Four Gospels,” p. 89.
-
-[9] Abbott’s Fourth Gospel, pp. 18, 20; Fisher, p. 69.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X.
-
-ASCENDING THE STREAM.
-
-
-Now consider the tremendous force of the proved fact that, within
-forty years of the time when Justin wrote his First Apology, we reach
-a period when it is no longer a debatable question whether our Gospels
-are “the Memoirs” of Christ which were read with the Prophets in city
-and country. The presumption of _continuance_ attaches. It has before
-been proved beyond a reasonable doubt that, in the year one hundred and
-forty, there were accepted “Memoirs” of our Lord, which were read with
-the Prophets in all the churches. There is no evidence whatever that
-those Memoirs in the intervening forty years were dropped and others
-substituted for them; therefore it should be presumed that they were in
-the churches in the year one hundred and eighty; and the Memoirs in the
-churches at this latter period _are positively known and seen, to have
-been the Canonical Gospels_. They have come closer to us, and in the
-nearer vision we are able to determine their identity with the utmost
-certainty. And the natural presumption that there was no substitution
-within the short interval of forty years, is immensely strengthened by
-the difficulties attending any attempted substitution,—difficulties so
-great that they must have left unmistakable evidence of conflict upon
-the page of history. The churches were very numerous, and occupied a
-territory of more than two thousand miles in extent from Syria to Gaul.
-Each church had its bishop or presbyter, and elders; and in each church,
-once in seven days, were the Memoirs of our Lord read with the Prophets.
-There were hundreds who, from their own recollections, and thousands
-who, from their parents or instructors, at any given time within these
-forty years, had perfect knowledge what Memoirs were thus read in the
-year one hundred and forty. Young men of twenty then, were only sixty,
-forty years later. Was there a substitution in those forty years, and
-these bishops, and elders, and thousands of communicants every Sabbath
-of all ages, not know it; or knowing it had not objected; or objecting,
-and history have no record of it? Not a few of these were educated men;
-and indeed all the bishops and elders may be presumed to have been as
-well versed in the accepted Gospels as in the writings of the prophets.
-It is to be borne in mind that we are dealing now with the question
-of substitution within the short period of forty years. A _score_ of
-names can be given of men living within that time or immediately after,
-who, from their own recollection or from others, must have had perfect
-knowledge of the whole subject: Athenagoras, a philosopher at Athens
-about the year one hundred and sixty; Caius, a presbyter at Rome about
-the year two hundred; Claudius Apollinaris, Bishop of Hierapolis, _cir._
-173; Clement of Alexandria, who became the head of the Alexandrian
-School in 187; Dionysius, Bishop of Corinth, who died a martyr in 173;
-Hegesippus, the historian (whose works are now lost), who died in 180;
-Hermas, who was prominent toward the close of the century; Irenæus,
-Bishop of Lyons; Justin himself, whose martyrdom was as late as the year
-165; Leonides, the martyr; Melito, Bishop of Sardis; the world-renowned
-Origen, son of Leonides; Pantænus; Polycarp; Polycrates, Bishop of
-Ephesus; Pothinus the predecessor of Irenæus (and whose martyrdom was
-about 167); Serapion, Bishop of Antioch; Tertullian, the eloquent Roman
-lawyer of Carthage; Theophilus, the predecessor of Serapion; and Victor,
-Bishop of Rome.
-
-It may be said, and with truth, that the Fourth Gospel, whenever
-introduced, came in not as a substitute, but as a supplement. The
-evidence, however, is conclusive that by the year one hundred and eighty,
-it had obtained as permanent a footing as either of the other Gospels.
-Its reception was as hearty, and the tradition of its authorship as
-strong, as in respect to the others. To infer that it was the forged
-product of the period now under consideration, or any other, is as
-if De Soto had concluded that the mighty stream which he discovered
-hastening to the Gulf, with deep and rapid current, so wide that a
-man could scarcely be seen from shore to shore, had its origin not in
-far-off lakes or mountains, but in some miserable crocodile swamp of the
-country he was traversing, and but just out of sight. And _who_ forged
-the Fourth Gospel and imposed it as John’s upon this score of persons,
-and hundreds of others? Or did these men conspire together, to deceive
-themselves, the churches, and the world? What name has come down to us
-from _that_ age, or any other, who was _capable_ of such an undertaking?
-What _forger_ wrote those discourses of Our Lord with Nicodemus? Or those
-with the women of Samaria? Or those with his disciples on the eve of
-his crucifixion? Or the parable of the good Shepherd? Or that memorable
-prayer recorded in the seventeenth of John? That any _sane man_ should
-attribute either of these to a _criminal forger_ would be incredible, if
-we were not confronted with the fact. And what sort of a man was this
-forger of the Fourth Gospel? We have Baur’s conception of him as “A man
-of remarkable mind, of an elevated spirit, and penetrated with a warm
-adoring faith in Christ as the Son of God and Saviour of the world!”
-And Baur thinks it _easier_ to believe (without proof) in the existence
-of this remarkable genius and elevated character, who would _invent_
-fictitious discourses, _falsely_ attribute them to the Christ whom he
-_adored_, and _forge_ the name of the beloved disciple, than to believe
-with the whole body of the Christian Church, that the discourses and
-utterances were those of our Lord![1] If John did not write the Fourth
-Gospel, _who did_? Not one of those who deny his authorship, can give
-an answer to this question. It is no answer to say that many in the
-second century believed that Hermas (whom Paul mentions in his Epistle
-to the Romans), wrote the Pastor or Shepherd of Hermas. Such was not the
-universal sentiment. The work was never generally received as Scripture.
-On the contrary, the author of the Muratorian Fragment, while placing
-the Four Gospels in the list of canonical books universally received,
-says of “The Pastor,” that it was written “very recently in our times”
-by another Hermas, a brother of the Bishop of Rome, and that it was
-read in “some of the churches,” not as Scripture but for “edification,”
-the same as the Epistle of Clement. It was rejected by Tertullian, not
-only as Apocryphal, but as hurtful. Nor is it any answer, to say that
-the so-called Epistle of Barnabas was early attributed to Barnabas the
-Levite. In the first place, it is by no means certain that this tradition
-was unfounded. From the little we know of Barnabas, it would be rash to
-conclude that he could not have written it. If uninspired, he _may_ have
-written just such a book. In the second place, no one ascribed it to him
-till the time of Clement of Alexandria, and it was ranked by Eusebius
-among the “spurious” writings, which, however much known and read in
-the church, were never regarded as authoritative. Eusebius also places
-The Pastor Hermas in the list of writings whose authorship is disputed.
-The Fourth Gospel rests upon an entirely different basis. There was but
-_one_ tradition in respect to it, and from our first knowledge of it, it
-was regarded as authoritative, and its authorship was undisputed; for
-the slight exception of the few individuals, called the Alogi, is of
-no account. It was included in the commentaries and harmonies to which
-reference has been made; and such works would not have been written until
-the books upon which they were based had been long enough in the churches
-for a felt need of commentaries upon them. It was quoted as Scripture
-by Theophilus, and John its author was expressly named as moved by the
-Holy Ghost. In the Muratori Canon, it was placed as Scripture in the
-list of Canonical books, universally received. And that it could not
-have come in after the year one hundred and forty, or have been received
-unless it was genuine, will be still more obvious from a more particular
-consideration of some of those who accepted it. Pantænus, who was at the
-head of the Alexandrian school in the year one hundred and eighty, was
-(says Eusebius) distinguished for his learning. Before his conversion he
-was a Stoic philosopher. After that, and before he became the head of the
-Catechetical school, he traveled extensively as an Evangelist. He went as
-far as the Indies, where he found that the Apostle Bartholomew, who had
-preceded him, had left the Gospel of Matthew in Hebrew. Pantænus could
-not have been ignorant of the “Memoirs,” which were accepted in Justin’s
-time, and he lived until the year two hundred and twelve. We have no
-_direct evidence_ from _him_; but Clement, his pupil and successor, and
-noted for his learning, could not have been ignorant of the opinions
-of Pantænus; and from Clement there is the strongest testimony. He
-flourished between A.D. 165 and 220, and became head of the Alexandrian
-School in A.D. 187. Origen, his successor, with his great genius and
-acquirements, and extensive travel, and from his father Leonides, and his
-predecessors Clement and Pantænus, must have been fully informed of the
-“Memoirs” which were in the churches in the year one hundred and forty.
-And he says, that he has “understood _from tradition_, respecting the
-Four Gospels, _which are the only undisputed ones in the whole church of
-God throughout the world_,” that the first was by Matthew, the second by
-Mark, “who composed it as Peter explained to him,” the third by Luke, the
-companion of Paul, and “last of all” John “who reclined upon the breast
-of Jesus,” has left one Gospel, in which he confesses that he could write
-so many that the whole world could not contain them. Tertullian, the
-celebrated lawyer, says, “Of the Apostles, John and Matthew published
-the faith to us.” In defending the Gospel of Luke against the mutilation
-of the heretic Marcion, he positively affirms that all the churches
-founded by the Apostles accepted, not Marcion’s abridgment of Luke, but a
-well-known form which had been “_received from its first publication_;”
-and that the other Gospels had been received from the same sources in
-authenticated copies. “In his abundant writings,” says Norton,[2] “there
-is not a chapter in the Gospels of Matthew, Luke and John, from which
-he does not quote,” and from most of them his quotations are numerous.
-Tertullian was born at Carthage about A.D. 160, and from his conversion,
-about the year one hundred and eighty-five, he entered with great
-earnestness and ability into a vindication of Christianity, and the
-discussion of various questions connected with it. This able advocate
-could not have been misinformed of the usages of the churches less than
-half a century previous to the time when he entered upon his work.
-
-The evidence of Irenæus is still more conclusive. He was born in Syria
-about A.D. 120, and he was therefore twenty years old when Justin wrote.
-His teacher was Polycarp, Bishop of Smyrna, and his immediate predecessor
-at Lyons was Pothinus. Polycarp, at his martyrdom, was asked to save
-his life by denying Christ. “No,” he said, “eighty and six years have I
-served him and he never did me any injury; how, then, can I blaspheme
-my King and my Saviour?” _Pothinus_, at _his_ martyrdom, _cir._ 177,
-was more than ninety years old. The lives of these two men reached far
-back into the first century. They were at, or past, middle life when
-Justin wrote, and presbyters of important churches; and it is utterly
-incredible that they should not have known what “Memoirs” were read in
-their churches in Justin’s time. And it is _equally incredible_ that
-Irenæus, the disciple of the one and the immediate successor in office
-of the other, and _himself_ _twenty years old_ when Justin wrote, should
-not have been as well informed upon this subject. Yet Irenæus quotes[3]
-from our Gospels and Acts, as Scripture, ascribes their authorship
-to Matthew, Mark, Luke and John, and says that such was the accepted
-tradition in all the churches. After referring to the others, he says of
-the Fourth Gospel: “Afterwards John, the disciple of our Lord, the same
-that lay upon his bosom, also published the Gospel while he was yet at
-Ephesus, in Asia” (Eu. v. 8). And again[4]: “All the Elders testify, who
-were conversant with John, the disciple of our Lord, in Asia, that he
-delivered these things.” About A.D. 180, in a treatise against heretics,
-he appeals to the canonical Gospels with as much confidence that they
-are all well known and accepted by Christians, as any would do at the
-present day. Tischendorf[5] says the number of passages where Irenæus has
-recourse to the Gospels is about four hundred, and about eighty of these
-in John. Sanday[5] estimates the quotations from John in this treatise
-at seventy-three. But Clement, and Origen, and Pantænus, and Polycarp,
-and Pothinus, and Tertullian, were not better informed upon this subject
-than Serapion, who so promptly suppressed the heretical Gospel of Peter,
-or than Theophilus, his immediate successor, who was the first after
-Papias (other than the author of the Muratorian Fragment) to mention any
-of the four Gospels by name, or than the author of this Fragment, or than
-many intelligent officers and members of the numerous churches from the
-Euphrates to the Seine.
-
-With such evidence and from such sources, and the entire absence of any
-evidence of _substitution_, it may well be regarded as morally certain,
-that none occurred. What was probable, from the _seeming_ use of the
-Canonical Gospels by Justin and his contemporaries, has become _a moral
-certainty_. The Memoirs which, in the year one hundred and eighty, were
-universally accepted, _were the same_ that forty years before were read
-with the Prophets, in city and country, in all the churches every Sabbath
-day. Of this there can be no doubt. The Memoirs of the year one hundred
-and eighty, _were_ OUR CANONICAL GOSPELS; and the Memoirs of the year one
-hundred and forty, _were_ OUR CANONICAL GOSPELS. And we take our stand
-with Justin, with these Gospels in our hands, only forty years from the
-death of John, the beloved disciple, and at the close of a hundred years
-from the crucifixion of our Lord. And still we ascend the stream.
-
-[1] Wright’s Logic, etc., p. 187, Tischendorf, p. 43.
-
-[2] Norton’s Genuineness of the Gospels, etc., Part II. c. 1; Wright, p.
-187.
-
-[3] Wright, pp. 188, 189, Tischendorf, p. 35.
-
-[4] Stowe’s Origin, etc., p. 176.
-
-[5] Origin, etc., p. 35; Wright, p. 189.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI.
-
-STILL ASCENDING THE STREAM.
-
-
-The evidence thus far has proved beyond a reasonable doubt that at the
-writing of Justin’s First Apology, the Canonical Gospels were read
-with the Prophets in city and country, on “the day called Sunday,” as
-authentic Memoirs of our Lord. Assuming the date[1] of this Apology to
-have been A.D. 138 or 139, the time was a little over one hundred years
-from the Crucifixion, and less than eighty years from the death of Mark
-and Luke, and all the Apostles other than John, and only forty years from
-his death. How long were these periods as they affect the argument from
-the universal reception of the Gospels in Justin’s time, and from the
-universal tradition in their favor which accompanied such reception? The
-writer has within two days (in April, 1881) met with three persons who
-saw Lafayette on his visit to New England in 1824. One of them distinctly
-remembers the sentiment[2] which Lafayette gave at Concord, and another
-shook hands with him. There were hundreds of Revolutionary soldiers
-present, some of whom the General recognized and called by name, although
-he had not seen their faces for more than forty years. This was in 1824.
-Whittier’s poem describes one of these soldiers, as he now remembers him,
-at the time of Monroe’s tour in 1817, _sixty-four years ago_:
-
- “Once a soldier, blame him not,
- That the Quaker he forgot,
- When to think of battles won,
- And the red coats on the run,
- Laughed aloud Friend Morrison.”
-
-And throughout the country there are thousands now living[A] who well
-knew men who were in active life during the War of the Revolution. In the
-_Granite Monthly_ for December, 1880, was published the Diary of Rev.
-Timothy Walker of Concord, for the year 1780, and there were earlier
-Diaries kept by him which have been preserved by his descendants. The
-Diary of Matthew Patten of Bedford, from 1750 to 1790, is in the custody
-of Charles H. Woodbury, Esq., of New York. The Congregational church at
-Concord, of which Timothy Walker was the first pastor, November, 1880,
-celebrated its one hundred and fiftieth anniversary. There are several
-towns in New Hampshire, as Londonderry, Dover, Exeter and Portsmouth,
-that were settled earlier than Concord; and some of them as early as
-1623. The landing of the Pilgrims was _two hundred and sixty years ago_.
-It seems but as yesterday. A century from the Crucifixion was no longer
-than a century now; and as an event, to be remembered, the Crucifixion
-was as much greater than the Landing of the Pilgrims as the glory of
-the noonday sun is above that of the feeblest star in the most distant
-heavens. The time that has elapsed since Timothy Walker wrote Diaries
-which are now in existence is as long as from the Crucifixion to Justin’s
-Apology; more than thirty years longer than from the martyrdom of Peter
-and Paul to Justin’s Apology; and sixty years longer than from John’s
-death to Justin’s Apology. The churches in Justin’s time were not dealing
-with writings from a dim and misty past, or of limited or infrequent
-use. None were as ancient as Walker’s Diary; the last had not seen half
-its years; they were in all the churches, and read every Sabbath day.
-The argument which proves that there was no substitution between 140
-and 180 is as much more forcible to prove that there was no substitution
-between the years 100 and 140, or between the years 60 and 100, as those
-times were nearer the great events which the Gospels recorded. If, for
-example, there were accepted Memoirs of our Lord in the churches in
-the year 100, from the presumed _continuance_ of a state of things the
-existence of which has been proved,[3] it should be _presumed_ that they
-remained in the churches till Justin’s time, there being no evidence to
-the contrary. And so there would be the same (or greater) difficulties
-in the way of displacement and substitution, between the year 100 and
-the year 140, as between the year 140 and the year 180. Justin and his
-contemporaries had from their own recollection,[4] or from others,
-whether parents, teachers, presbyters or bishops, as great facilities for
-knowing what Memoirs were accepted in the churches forty years before,
-as had Irenæus and his contemporaries in respect to the period of forty
-years before one hundred and eighty. And there was a succession and
-continued life in the churches from 100 to 140, the same as from 140 to
-180. This reasoning is applicable to Clement and his contemporaries, and
-shows that Memoirs which were in the churches in the year 100 could not
-have displaced accepted and generally received Memoirs of any previous
-period. We know from the Epistle of Clement, as clearly as from Justin’s
-Apology, how Christians loved and adored their Divine Lord and Master,
-and how strongly attached they must have been to any Memoirs of him,
-which they accepted as authentic. And the testimony of Pliny is, that
-Christians in his day were accustomed to meet before daybreak and sing a
-responsive hymn to Christ as God. It is utterly incredible that accepted
-Memoirs of Christ, thus worshipped, should have been thrown aside by
-presbyters or bishops, and hundreds of churches, throughout the Roman
-Empire, without a shock that would have left unmistakable evidences
-of it in history. There being an entire absence of any evidence of
-displacement and substitution, it is _morally certain there was none_.
-John’s Gospel, however, stands upon a different footing, since it came
-in not to displace, but to supplement. John lived to the close of the
-first century. _Who dared_ to forge a spurious Gospel in his name, so
-soon after his death that it had obtained such a footing in the churches,
-at the end of forty years, as to be quoted as his production? _Who_,
-during that period, was _capable_ of composing it? And how were hundreds
-of presbyters or bishops, and churches, from Syria to Gaul, persuaded to
-receive a spurious Gospel, as the genuine work of the beloved disciple
-who was in life within the personal[4] recollections of many? It is a
-fact to be emphasized, that neither this Gospel, nor the others, can
-be assailed on historical or traditional grounds. _There is but one
-history or tradition_ concerning them. The objections to them are either
-negative or speculative, mere assumptions, not supported by any history
-or tradition.
-
-The first _use_ of the four Gospels of which there is any history, is in
-statements of facts found to be recorded in them, and in quotations of
-teachings of Christ, corresponding with them. The first _description_ of
-them after Papias, is that of “Memoirs” of Christ, “drawn up” by Apostles
-and companions of Apostles. The first mention of them _by the names of
-the writers_, ascribes their authorship to the men whose names they now
-bear. There is no history or tradition of a time when the first Gospel
-was ascribed to any but Matthew, or the second to any but Mark, or the
-fourth to any but John[5], or the third, with Acts, to any but Luke. The
-standing objection that none of them is mentioned _by name_ till the time
-of Theophilus, and Irenæus, and the writer of the Muratori Canon, is not
-of the slightest consequence as opposing evidence. For, if these Gospels
-were not mentioned by name, neither were any[6] others; and surely we are
-not expected to believe that there were _no originals_, from which the
-many quotations, from Clement of Rome, in the year 97, down, were taken.
-This objection proves too much. For it proves, if it proves anything,
-that there were _no_ Gospels or writings to answer to the quotations,
-which, under the circumstances, is a palpable absurdity. Besides, it
-is not true in respect to the First and Second Gospels, for Papias,
-certainly as early as the middle of the second century, and probably
-before the year 140, gave the _names_ of Matthew and Mark respectively,
-as their authors, the latter being “the interpreter of Peter.”
-
-[1] Judge Waite controverts the generally received opinion of the date
-of Justin’s First Apology. Verissimus became Cæsar in 139, but he is not
-addressed as Cæsar, but as “philosopher.” In reply to this, Mr. Waite
-says, that the same is true of the Second Apology, “which is admitted
-by all to have been written after 139.” In the first place, there is
-considerable uncertainty which of the Apologies was first written, and
-some critics maintain that what is called the Second was a preface to
-the First, and others still that it was a continuation of the First.
-(See introductory notice to Vol. II. of the A. N. C. L.) In the second
-place, the address to Urbicus in the so-called Second Apology, was
-not by _Justin_. He only gives it as the language of _one Lucius_, in
-narrating an occurrence which, for aught that appears, may have taken
-place before the year 139. Mr. Waite also says that Justin would be but
-twenty-five years of age in 139. He might have written his Apology in
-139, nevertheless. And there are many who put his birth earlier than the
-year 114, and some as early as the year 85. There are no certain data by
-which to determine the time of his birth. Again he says that Marcion did
-not come to Rome till about 140, and that Justin (c. 26) refers to him
-as being “even at this day alive, and teaching his disciples to believe
-in some God greater than the Creator.” But Justin meant to express his
-abhorrence of his doctrines. He refers to him as “a man of Pontus,” and
-again (in c. 58) as “Marcion of Pontus,” and says the devils put him
-forward. He nowhere describes him as being _of_ Rome or _at_ Rome. In
-his extensive travels he doubtless knew of him while he was at Pontus.
-Judge Waite also says that, if in the year 139, Justin would have said
-that Christ was born 140 years ago, instead of 150. But correcting the
-error for the beginning of our Era, the time would have been A.D. 146,
-or 144, as we allow four or six years for the error, and Justin, using
-round numbers, would more naturally have taken the longer period. There
-is nothing therefore in Judge Waite’s arguments to change the opinion in
-what he concedes to be “the very valuable Encyclopedia of McClintock and
-Strong,” and of Page, Neander, Lemisch, Roberts and Donaldson, Sears,
-Fisher, Eusebius, (c. 8) and many others, assigning the year 139. See
-also Canonicity, by Dr. Charteris (1880) p. lv. It is, however, not
-essential to the argument from the First Apology, whether it was written
-in the year 139, or 144, or 146, or even 150 of our Era. By as much as
-it lengthens the period from the death of John to the date of the First
-Apology, it shortens the time between that date and the year 180.
-
-[2] “The memories of Light Infantry Poor and Yorktown Scammel.”
-
-[A] Rev. Simeon Parmelee, D.D., celebrated his one hundredth birthday at
-the house of his son-in-law Hon. E. J. Hamilton, ex-mayor of the city of
-Oswego, N. Y., Jan. 16, 1882. His intellect was clear, and to those who
-called he had an ever ready response, and replied happily and wittily to
-the addresses. He had been in the ministry from 1808 to 1869, and, for
-years after, preached occasionally. His eldest daughter is 72 years of
-age, and his descendants now living, number 53. Upon his 90th birthday
-he wrote a hymn of considerable merit. When 100 years old, he remembered
-with vivid freshness the Inauguration of George Washington, although at
-that time but in his 8th year. See _Congregationalist_, Jan. 25, 1882.
-
-[3] See Phillips, Parker, and Greenleaf, as quoted in c. 8.
-
-[4] Justin in his First Apology (c. 15) refers to many of sixty or
-seventy years of age, who have been Christ’s disciples from childhood.
-
-[5] Prof. Fisher (p. 69) says, that besides the few individuals called
-the Alogi, or men “without understanding,” there is no allusion to the
-denial of John’s authorship of the Fourth Gospel by any writer, before
-the latter part of the fourth century.
-
-[6] As to the controverted reference in Justin’s Apology to “Memoirs of
-Him,” see c. 4, and c. 7, note 14. That, if correctly interpreted by
-Judge Waite, could only have been Mark’s Gospel.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII.
-
-IN THEIR PROPER REPOSITORIES.
-
-
-Certain propositions have been established by facts and arguments that
-cannot be successfully controverted:
-
-(_a_) The advent of Christ and its stupendous results.
-
-(_b_) The formation of numerous churches which by the end of the first
-century were in all parts of the Roman Empire, with presbyters or bishops
-and elders in every church, and many thousands of communicants.
-
-(_c_) They regarded him with the greatest reverence and affection,
-obeying his commands as their Lord and Master, paying him divine honors,
-and for his sake joyfully yielding up their lives.
-
-(_d_) Of his disciples and followers, twelve, called Apostles, were
-understood to have special authority from him in the Church.
-
-(_e_) From the nature of the case we should look for the reception in
-these numerous churches, of Memoirs of their Lord which they would
-_deem_ authentic, and at so early a period, that they would be able to
-_determine_ whether they were authentic or not.
-
-(_f_) To such Memoirs, once accepted, they would be so strongly attached
-that they could not be displaced and others substituted for them, in
-hundreds of churches in all the Roman Empire, without such controversy as
-would have left indubitable evidence of it.
-
-(_g_) As far back as history goes, doctrines[1] were taught, facts
-asserted, and quotations made, corresponding with the Canonical Gospels,
-and such use was continued until a time when there is a positive
-identification of them by name. Within this period there was one writer
-making numerous quotations and references, who declared that the writings
-from which he quoted, and to which he referred, were “Memoirs” of Christ
-“drawn up” by Apostles or companions of Apostles.
-
-(_h_) There is no proof of the existence of writings _other_ than
-those Gospels answering to his description, or corresponding with the
-quotations; and finally within forty years of his first reference to
-these “Memoirs” they are clearly seen to be the Canonical Gospels.
-
-(_i_) From first to last there is no evidence whatever of displacement of
-Gospels previously accepted, and the substitution of others for them in
-the churches generally.
-
-(_j_) The Fourth Gospel is of such a character, and was in use so soon
-after the death of its author (and who is also stated as its author in
-the Gospels itself), as to make the idea of attempted and successful
-_forgery_ in the highest degree improbable.
-
-(_k_) And these Gospels within less than eighty years from the death of
-the Apostles other than John, and within forty years of _his_ death, were
-read with the Prophets in the churches, in city and country, every Lord’s
-day, _and accepted as Apostolic_.
-
-(_l_) From the earliest period they were where they should be if
-authentic, and where they could not have been, unless _accepted_ as
-authentic.
-
-Some illustrations have already been given in chapter eleven of the brief
-interval between the Apostles and Justin Martyr. Let any intelligent
-reader of sixty, from his own recollection, or any young person, from
-the recollections of others with whom he is acquainted, determine for
-himself. The writer was admitted to the Bar almost forty years ago; he
-has within a few months seen an original deed[2] of land in Londonderry
-(the home of his ancestors) executed one hundred and fifty years ago;
-he has in his possession certified copies of certificates of marriages
-and births, in his own genealogical record—going back from one to two
-hundred years, in one instance two hundred and thirty years, and these
-certificates would be received as _evidence_ in any Court. They would
-be received, because made by the proper custodian of public documents,
-found in the proper repository for them. The presumption of law in such
-case is the judgment of charity. It presumes that documents found in
-their proper repository, and not bearing marks of forgery, are genuine.
-A deed forty years old, followed by a possession agreeing with it, is
-admitted in evidence without other proof of its execution. Our Gospels
-in Justin’s time were where they _should_ have been, if authentic. The
-Church was the proper repository for authentic Memoirs of its Founder.
-_Our Gospels were there._ They were in their proper repository. And upon
-every principle that rules in the administration of justice, or in the
-common affairs of life, it must be presumed that they were _rightfully_
-there. Their rejection is _not_ “the judgment of charity.” It reverses
-the maxim that fraud is not to be presumed. It charges forgery, of
-which there is no evidence, upon persons whom it finds it impossible
-to discover and identify. It imputes ignorance and indifference to
-multitudes who had every opportunity for knowing the truth, and who were
-willing to suffer all things for their convictions of the truth. It
-presses, as of vital consequence, trivial objections and alleged errors
-in chronology, geography and history, which (if made out) would not for
-a moment be thought sufficient to successfully impugn the authenticity
-of any secular work as well supported by external evidence. It is
-unnecessary to further consider such objections.[3] It is no exaggeration
-to say, that the various theories and speculations of those who deny
-the genuineness of the Gospels are, in the main, but ingenious attempts
-at the solution of the problem: “Given, the impossibility of miracles,
-what may be supposed to be the true history of Jesus Christ?” The
-only consistent answer that could be made, would be that upon such an
-hypothesis, it is impossible to determine what was his life or character.
-But, given, the possibility of miracles (and if there is a God they
-must be possible), there is no reasonable doubt of the authenticity of
-the Gospels, and the book of Acts. They come to us from their proper
-repositories, and must be presumed to be rightfully there. They are
-proved to have been in those repositories within but a short period from
-the death of the Apostles. They were accepted as Apostolic, and as having
-been drawn up by Apostles or companions of Apostles. If such undoubted
-reception, and use, and tradition, at so early a period, and thence
-until now, cannot be _trusted_, no credit can be given to _any_ writings
-or history from ancient times. They _can_ be trusted. The stream which
-eighteen hundred years ago was issuing from Apostolic times and the hills
-of Palestine, has flowed onward, enriching and blessing the nations.
-
-[1] Mr. Waite assumes that Clement did not hold to a literal
-resurrection. Clement’s language admits of no such construction, although
-in writing to Christians who understood all about it, he was not as
-definite upon this point, as Justin in _his_ address to a different
-class. Clement refers to the resurrection in c. 24: “Let us consider,
-beloved, how the Lord continually proves to us that there shall be a
-future resurrection, of which he has rendered the Lord Jesus Christ the
-first fruits by raising him from the dead.” And again in c. 42, after
-saying that the Apostles were commissioned, he adds: “Having therefore,
-received their order, and being fully assured by the resurrection of
-our Lord Jesus Christ, and established in the Word of God, with full
-assurance of the Holy Ghost, they went forth proclaiming that the kingdom
-of God was at hand.” The force of this language is not controlled by any
-means, by reference to the day’s following the night, and the springing
-up of the fruits of the earth, from the sowing of the seed.
-
-[2] The deed dated June 16, 1731, was by David Morrison, one of the
-grantees in the Charter of Londonderry of 1722, to his brother-in-law,
-David McAlister. This deed with another from the same grantor to William
-McAlister dated February 24, 1746, are now in the possession of Jonathan
-McAlister, Esq., a descendant of David and an owner of the original
-granted land.
-
-[3] One other correction should be made. Judge Waite arbitrarily assigns
-Cerinthus to the year 145. He gives no reason or authority for it. It is
-the testimony of all antiquity that Cerinthus was contemporary with the
-Apostle John, and that John died about the year 100. Irenæus, upon the
-authority of Polycarp, says that John, being about to enter a bath and
-finding Cerinthus within, drew back saying: “Let us even be gone lest the
-bath should fall to pieces,—Cerinthus, that enemy of the truth, being
-within.” See Vol. II., Encyclopedia of McClintock and Strong, p. 190.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII.
-
-INTEGRITY OF THE GOSPELS.
-
-
-As stated in former chapters, this is to be presumed till the contrary is
-shown. There is, however, strong confirmation from many sources.
-
-_First._—The writings of the Apostolic Fathers present to our view the
-Christ of the Gospels, in his advent and life, ministry and teaching,
-death and resurrection. In particular, his resurrection from the dead is
-cited by Clement (A.D. 97) as an earnest of that of his followers, and as
-a proof that he came forth from God. The greatest of miracles, and the
-central fact of Christianity, appears in the earliest writings (outside
-of the New Testament), the date of which can be determined. Judge Waite,
-in his “wonderful hundred[1] years of silence by Christian writers”
-concerning the miracles of Christ, is oblivious of what he had before
-stated, that aside from the Gospels, there are left of the first century
-“only the Epistles of Paul, the one Epistle of Clement of Rome, some
-slight notices by Jewish and heathen writers, and the few legends and
-traditions preserved in the writings of the Fathers.” Such an argument
-from silence, _where there are no writings extant_, is not befitting _a
-judge_.
-
-_Second._—The earliest quotations substantially agree with the Canonical
-Gospels. Some of those by Justin Martyr have been given in chapters
-five and six, and those by Clement may be found in the Note.[2] These
-quotations by Apostolic and Christian Fathers, afford ample[3] means for
-comparison, and no variations appear to indicate any changes to affect
-the character or teachings of our Lord. Professor Fisher says[4] of
-_Justin’s_ references, that they embrace “not more” than two sayings of
-Jesus that have not substantial parallels in the four Evangelists. The
-first is, “In what things I shall apprehend you, in these will I judge
-you,” which is found also in Clement of Alexandria, and Hippolytus.
-The second is, “There shall be schisms and heresies,” a prediction
-referred also to Christ by Tertullian. These sayings may have come from
-_tradition_. It seems not improbable that they were current expressions,
-embodying what Jesus taught[5] respecting the standard by which men shall
-be judged according to the light which they have received, and divisions
-in the same household. (See cc. 6 to 8 _ante_).
-
-_Third._—The facts in Christ’s history referred to by the Fathers,
-with very rare exceptions (the most of which were stated and explained
-in chapter seven), correspond with the Evangelists. The exceptional
-facts are such as would naturally have been derived from tradition,
-and they in no way change the life or character of our Lord as they
-appear in the Gospels. The marvel is, that they should be so few and
-unimportant, considering that some of the writers lived at a time when[6]
-“traditionary reminiscences must have possessed all their freshness.”
-
-_Fourth._—Marcion’s Gospel (written as early as the year 145), except in
-intentional omissions and mutilations, for which he was sharply called to
-an account by Tertullian, presents a substantial agreement with Luke’s
-Gospel. Judge Waite claims that it was earlier than Luke’s; but the
-almost unanimous verdict of scholars is against him. Indeed, Professor
-Fisher, in the March number of the _Princeton Review_ for 1881 (p. 217),
-says: “That Marcion’s Gospel was an abridgment of our Luke is _now
-conceded on all hands_, even by the author of ‘Supernatural Religion.’
-Dr. Sanday has not only demonstrated this by a linguistic argument, but
-has proved by a comparison of texts that the Gospel of the Canon must
-have been for some time in use, and have attained to a considerable
-circulation, before Marcion applied to it his pruning-knife. There is
-no reason to doubt that he took for his purpose a Gospel of established
-authority in the Church.” Professor Curtiss also says that “the weight
-of scholarship is overwhelmingly in favor of the priority of Luke.”
-And he quotes from the last edition of the “Supernatural Religion,”
-the admission referred to by Professor Fisher. Its anonymous author
-says that Dr. Sanday’s very able examination “has convinced us that our
-earlier hypothesis is untenable; that the portions of our third Synoptic,
-excluded from Marcion’s Gospel, were really written by the same pen which
-composed the mass of the work; and, consequently, that our third Synoptic
-existed in his time, and was substantially in the hands of Marcion.”
-Dr. Sanday[7] shows, as he expresses it, that Marcion’s Gospel stands
-to Luke’s “entirely in the relation of _defect_. We may say entirely,
-for the additions are so insignificant—some thirty words in all, and
-those for the most part supported by other authority—that for practical
-purposes they are not to be reckoned. With the exception of these thirty
-words inserted, and also some slight alterations of phrase, Marcion’s
-Gospel presents simply an _abridgment_ of our St. Luke.” That Marcion’s
-Gospel was not one of Justin’s “Memoirs,” is plain from his calling
-him a wolf,[7] “sent forth by the devil.” Although Marcion’s Gospel
-is not in existence, except as reproduced from the works of Tertullian
-and Epiphanius, its agreement with Luke (with the exceptions which they
-pointed out) becomes important evidence that Luke is to-day as it was in
-the year one hundred and forty-five.
-
-_Fifth._—Our Gospels and Acts before the close of the second century of
-our era were translated into other languages, and the Syriac, Coptic
-and Latin versions which have come down to us with some imperfections
-and slight variations, are in substantial agreement with our present
-version in all that is material. A translation of a given date presumably
-represents a text of greater age than itself. Hence the manuscripts from
-which these translations were made were older than the year two hundred,
-and probably older than the year one hundred and fifty.
-
-_Sixth._—The early and continued multiplication of copies affords
-strong evidence. Those who copied from originals deemed authentic would
-certainly endeavor to make exact copies. As these Memoirs were read in
-all the churches, and, doubtless, in Christian families and Christian
-schools, they soon became very numerous. There was fraternal intercourse
-between the churches. Any substantial difference in the copies would
-be noticed. Any such differences would be transmitted in copies made
-from these copies, and so on, to the manuscripts which have reached
-us. The number of copies before the tenth persecution (commenced A.D.
-300, and lasting ten years) must have reached many thousands.[8] So
-complete was then supposed to be the extinction of Christianity, that
-coins were struck and inscriptions set up, recording the fact, that the
-“Christian superstition” was now utterly exterminated, and the worship
-of the gods restored by Diocletian, who assumed the name of Jupiter, and
-Maximian, who took that of Hercules. This persecution, in addition to
-the destruction of life, was specially[9] directed to the destruction of
-copies of the Scriptures.
-
-_Seventh._—Constantine, their successor, in the year 331, caused fifty
-copies of the Scriptures to be made for Byzantium, under the care of
-Eusebius of Cæsarea, the church historian. The manuscript discovered by
-the celebrated Tischendorf, in 1859, at the convent of St. Catherine,
-on Mount Sinai, is believed to be one of those copies, and to be the
-oldest[10] Greek manuscript in existence. _If_ one of the fifty, it is
-more than fifteen hundred years old. It is called the Sinaitic Codex.
-The second rank belongs to the Vatican Codex. Its date is probably not
-later than the fourth century. The next in the order of time is the
-Alexandrian Codex. Its date is the latter part of the fourth century or
-the beginning of the fifth century. The Vatican has been in the Vatican
-Library since 1445. The Alexandrian was sent, in 1628, by the Patriarch
-of Constantinople, to Charles I., and is now in the British Museum. The
-Sinaitic was presented by its discoverer to the Emperor of Russia. There
-is no doubt whatever that these three manuscripts were written back of
-the “dark ages,” and at a time when the true text could be known with
-great exactness, and was comparatively free from errors. With these,
-there are fifty manuscripts that are a thousand years old. There are, it
-is estimated, more than seventeen hundred manuscripts of the whole, or
-portions, of the New Testament, ranging in date from the fourth to the
-sixteenth century. Providence, says Tischendorf, has ordained for the
-New Testament more sources of the greatest antiquity than are possessed
-by all the old Greek literature put together. The number of manuscripts
-of the Greek Classics, says[11] Professor Stowe, is very small compared
-with the Greek Testament manuscripts, and the oldest of them scarcely
-reaches nine hundred years. There are such differences between the
-Sinaitic, Vatican, and Alexandrian manuscripts as indicate that no two
-of them were taken from the same original. A little reflection will
-convince any one, that while no single copy may be literally exact from
-its original, the multiplication of copies adds greatly to substantial
-accuracy as the result of the whole. For although there is a tendency
-to a repetition of _some_ errors, by different copyists from the same
-original, as where successive sentences end with the same word, yet, in
-general, different copyists would make different errors, one in one part
-of the instrument, and the other in another, and, where the copies are
-numerous, they mutually correct each other. So it happens that in the
-different manuscripts of the New Testament, with different readings of
-many thousands (counting all trifles, like the omission to dot an _i_
-or cross a _t_ in English chirography, as different readings), there is
-substantial agreement. It is a fact to be emphasized, says[12] Professor
-Fisher, “that the Scriptures are almost utterly free from wilful
-corruption;” and he endorses the opinion of the great critic, Bentley,
-that the real text “is competently exact in the worst manuscripts now
-extant; nor is one article of faith or moral precept either perverted
-or lost in them.” And examining the subject in hand from a lawyer’s
-standpoint, the _worst_ manuscript, or translation, or version, is
-sufficient for the purposes of the argument. And to cite once more the
-great authority of Professor Greenleaf,[13] to the genuineness of the
-Four Gospels: “The entire text of the Corpus Juris Civilis is received
-as authority in all the courts of Continental Europe, upon much weaker
-evidence of its genuineness; for the integrity of the Sacred Text has
-been preserved by the jealousy of opposing sects beyond any moral
-possibility of corruption; while that of the Roman Civil Law has been
-preserved only by tacit consent, without the interest of any opposing
-school to watch over and preserve it from alteration.”
-
-And now (1882) the New Revision, both of the text and of the translation,
-by scholars who have no superior, and the careful product of ten years’
-labor, has been long enough before the world to know the results. Not
-a single fact or witness to the Resurrection is lost, and not a single
-doctrine is changed, while many passages are better understood.
-
-[1] He puts the date of the Epistle of Barnabas, A. D. 130, but it is
-generally placed earlier.
-
-[2] “Be merciful that ye may obtain mercy; forgive that it may be
-forgiven to you; as ye do, so shall it be done unto you; as ye judge so
-shall ye be judged; as ye are kind so shall kindness be shown to you;
-with what measure ye mete with the same it shall be measured to you” (c.
-13). Matt. vi. 12-15; Matt. vii. 2; Luke vi. 36-38. “This people honoreth
-me with their lips, but their heart is far from me” (c. 15). Matt. xv. 8;
-Mark vii. 6. “Woe to that man! It were better for him that he had never
-been born, than that he should cast a stumbling block before one of my
-elect, yea it were better for him that a millstone should be hung about
-his neck, and he should be sunk in the depths of the sea, than that he
-should cast a stumbling-block before any of my little ones” (c. 46).
-Matt. xviii. 6; Matt. xxvi. 24; Mark ix, 42; Luke xvii. 2.
-
-[3] The entire Gospel could be reproduced from those writings, including
-Irenæus, Tertullian, Clement of Alexandria, and Origen.
-
-[4] The _Princeton Review_ for March, 1881, p. 201.
-
-[5] Matt. x. 34-36; Luke x. 13-15; Luke xii. 47-53.
-
-[6] Bampton Lectures for 1877, p. 221, by the Rev. C. A. Row, M. A.,
-Pembroke College, Oxford, Prebendary of St. Paul’s Cathedral.
-
-[7] Ap. I., cc. 22, 58. See also Sanday’s Gospels of the Second Century,
-p. 214, and “Canonicity,” by A. H. Charteris, D. D., 1880, pp. 76, 393.
-
-[8] Norton estimates the number by the close of the second century at
-sixty thousand, which may be a large estimate.
-
-[9] Vol. VII. of McClintock and Strong, p. 966; Neander’s Church History,
-Vol. I., p. 148. Neander says that Feb. 22, A.D. 303, on one of the
-great pagan festivals, at the first dawn of day, the magnificent church
-of Nicomedia (then the imperial residence) was broken open, the copies
-of the Bible found in it were burned, and the whole church abandoned to
-plunder and then to destruction. The next day was published an edict
-that all assembling of Christians for the purpose of religious worship
-was forbidden; churches were to be demolished to their foundations; all
-manuscripts of the Bible should be burned; those who held places of honor
-and rank must renounce their faith, or be degraded; those belonging
-to the lower walks of private life to be divested of their rights as
-citizens and freemen; slaves were to be incapable of receiving their
-freedom so long as they remained Christians; and in judicial proceedings
-the torture might be used against all Christians of whatsoever rank. “It
-is quite evident,” says Neander, “that the plan now was to extirpate
-Christianity from the root.” But it was the darkness which preceded the
-dawn, for this was the _last_ of the Pagan persecutions.
-
-[10] A facsimile steel engraving forming the frontispiece to
-Tischendorf’s New Testament, gives specimens of the Greek text in which
-these three manuscripts are severally written. The difference in the
-style of the text is one great means by which experts determine the age
-of the manuscript. The oldest manuscripts are written in large, square,
-upright capitals; and they are called Uncials. The later manuscripts are
-written in flowing scripts; they are called Cursives. The proportion
-of Uncial to Cursive manuscripts is about one to ten. The Cursive was
-introduced in the tenth century.
-
-[11] Origin and History of the Books of the New Testament, by Prof. C. E.
-Stowe, A.D. 1867, pp. 31, 62.
-
-[12] In Scribner’s Monthly for February, 1881, p. 617.
-
-[13] An Examination of the Testimony of the Four Evangelists by the rules
-of Evidence administered in Courts of Justice, etc. By Simon Greenleaf,
-LL.D., Royal Professor of Law in Harvard University (A.D. 1846), p. 28.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV.
-
-THE CREDIBILITY OF THE EVANGELISTS.
-
-
-The question of their credibility is before that of their inspiration.
-If uninspired, they may have given us everything essential to the
-determination of Christ’s resurrection. If inspired, inspiration may
-have been bestowed in such a manner as to leave them subject to some of
-the limitations of human testimony. If reliable accounts of the life,
-teachings, death, and resurrection, of our Lord, were to be published
-to the world, it was of the last importance that they should not carry
-upon their face the appearance of collusion and contrivance. Let any one
-who is disturbed by any seeming contradictions or errors, consider for
-a moment what would be the consequence if they did not exist. If each
-writer narrated the same occurrences and teachings and in the same terms,
-it would be extremely difficult, if not impossible, to believe that they
-were independent witnesses. And so, if each should give all of the same
-occurrences and teachings, although in different terms, or a part of
-them, but in the same terms, it would be almost as difficult to believe
-that we have independent witnesses. As it is, no question can arise.
-Neither of them covers the whole ground, and where the same matters
-appear, it is, in general, except in brief passages easily remembered,
-in different terms. We are _sure_ there was no collusion. We are sure we
-have the testimony of independent writers. This is conceded. Says Judge
-Waite (pp. 311, 313): That the Gospels “are not merely copied one from
-the other, with changes, is the almost unanimous verdict of Biblical
-scholars.” And in this, he expresses the verdict of those who reject,
-not less than of those who accept the Gospels. Among the limitations
-attending mere human testimony, are, that, ordinarily, no witness will
-state the whole of any transaction, and no two witnesses will state it
-in precisely the same terms, unless there is fraud or collusion, and
-the testimony of each is but the recital of something that has been
-committed to memory. Another limitation is, that even with two or more
-witnesses, errors to some extent will come in. There will be some lack
-of correct observation, or some misrecollection,—not only the omission
-of a part, but positive misstatement by one or more of the witnesses.
-The whole transaction is to be gathered _from all_ the witnesses. And
-the law, having respect to human infirmities, says it is enough in all
-cases to prove the _substance_ of words alleged to have been spoken, or
-the substance of the issue, in any civil or criminal cause; immaterial
-errors of time, or place, or distance, or other circumstance, will be
-disregarded. Now it is _conceivable_ that the Evangelists, under the
-guidance of the Divine Spirit, may have been left (to some extent)
-subject to these limitations, in order that their testimony, conforming
-to these laws of observation and memory, be the more credible. Hence,
-whether the Evangelists, in this stage of the inquiry, be regarded as
-inspired or uninspired, it is labor lost, to adduce alleged errors[1]
-or contradictions which, if made out, could not seriously affect their
-honesty and general competency. In order that a witness receive our
-confidence, we should be satisfied of his means of knowledge, his
-capacity to ascertain the facts, and his disposition to give a correct
-account of them. Two of the writers, Matthew and John, were of the twelve
-(and John was the beloved disciple) and hence they had the best possible
-means of knowing the facts. Matthew, from his business of a tax-gatherer,
-may be presumed to have been sharp, shrewd and observant. John, from his
-most intimate association, was pre-eminently qualified to give testimony.
-He gives it with solemnity equal to an oath: “And he that saw bare
-record, and his record is true; and he knoweth that he saith true, that
-ye might believe” (c. xix. 35). “And many other signs truly did Jesus
-in the presence of his disciples, which are not written in this book;
-but these are written, that ye might believe that Jesus is the Christ,
-the Son of God; and that believing, ye might have life through his name”
-(c. xx. 30, 31). Again, after stating what Peter asked concerning the
-disciple “whom Jesus loved,” and what followed, it is said: “This is the
-disciple which testifieth of these things, and who wrote these things;
-and we[2] know that his testimony is true” (c. xxi. 20-24). This Gospel,
-obviously written later than the others, omits much that is contained in
-them, and is, so to speak, of higher order. The first incident mentioned
-in it, is the witness borne to Christ by the Baptist. It gives none of
-the parables, so abundant in the Synoptics.[3] It relates but two of the
-miracles recorded in them, _i. e._ the feeding of the five thousand,
-and the walking upon the water, (c. vi. 1-21). It adds six miracles
-not recorded in the Synoptics (among which is the raising of Lazarus),
-numerous conversations and discourses of the greatest interest, and
-facts relating to the crucifixion and resurrection, of great weight as
-evidence. It is written in purer Greek than the others; its style[4]
-is elegant and graceful; it gives every indication of calm, thoughtful
-and deliberate composition, and in these respects tends to confirm the
-uniform tradition that it was the ripe product of a mind and heart,
-enriched, quickened, and vitalized, by familiar intercourse with our Lord
-and the truths which he declared, as well as by the Spirit promised to
-the Apostles. Men with favorable native gifts, become educated fast under
-such influences.
-
-It affords about the only means for a connected chronological history of
-our Lord’s ministry, which is seen to have embraced a longer[5] period,
-than could have been ascertained from the Synoptics.
-
-Although Mark was not one of the twelve, the character of his Gospel in
-its life-like description of events, and its omitting nothing[A] where
-Peter was prominent, confirms the tradition, that he was an attendant
-upon Peter’s ministry, and was his interpreter. Nine-tenths[6] of the
-incidents related in Mark are also recorded in the other Gospels.
-
-Luke was an educated man, and, as he incidentally discloses, a companion
-of Paul in a part of his journeyings. His Gospel was evidently drawn
-up with great care. In the prologue (c. i. 1-5) he gives a reason for
-his writing, and the sources of his information. “Many have taken in
-hand to set forth in order a declaration of those things which are most
-surely believed among us.” These things, he says, “were delivered unto
-us by those who from the beginning were eye witnesses and ministers of
-the Word.” He was stimulated to give an additional narrative (“having
-had perfect understanding of all things from the very first”) for the
-satisfaction of his friend, Theophilus, and in order that he might know
-“the _certainty_ of those things,” wherein he had been instructed. No
-historian could enter upon his work in a better spirit, or with more
-excellent qualifications and opportunities. In a subsequent treatise
-which in terms refers to the former, he finds nothing to retract or
-qualify. Can any one tell why Luke, as a historian, is not entitled to as
-much credit as Josephus?
-
-In comparing the Gospels with each other, or with Josephus, it should
-be constantly borne in mind, that _omission_ (except under special
-circumstances) _is not contradiction_. The facts of history, like the
-conclusions of a jury, are to be drawn from all credible sources, and the
-transaction deemed to be as shown upon _all_ the evidence. _Positive_
-testimony from a single witness may prove a fact against the _negative_
-testimony of any number of witnesses, who are silent upon the subject.
-
-It is also to be remembered that the Gospels are not so much connected
-histories, as reminiscences of events and teachings, with but little
-regard (sometimes an utter disregard) to their chronological order.
-Neither Gospel is, of itself, any approach to a connected history from
-Christ’s birth to his ascension. The events, so far as known to us, are
-to be gathered _from them all_. Mark begins with the Baptist at the
-river Jordan, and John at about the same time. It is not to be inferred
-that they knew nothing of the infancy, or childhood, or young manhood of
-Jesus. Matthew omits the presentation at the temple, the vision to the
-Shepherds, and other incidents; and Luke omits the visit of the Wise men,
-the slaying of the children, the flight into Egypt, and other incidents.
-But in so doing, neither contradicts the other; nor does Josephus, by his
-silence concerning these events, contradict the Evangelists. He may have
-been ignorant of some of these events, for he was not born until the year
-37, and, being a Jew and not a Christian, he might not choose to mention
-those which had come to his knowledge.
-
-Luke’s Gospel may or may not have made use of writings then in existence
-relating to Christ (but which never found general acceptance), and the
-same is true of the First and Second Gospels. _It is no impeachment of
-their credibility._ Every historian makes such use of materials that he
-deems reliable, as best answers his purpose, and his history is none the
-less trustworthy on that account. Hence, as a matter of evidence, it
-is of no consequence how many or how few, previous manuscripts may be
-traced in our Gospels, or either of them. Such writings had an ephemeral
-existence, never came into general use, and the Four Gospels and no
-others were the accepted Gospels in all the churches. Whatever literature
-of the kind preceded them perished so early that it cannot be told when
-it disappeared, or what was its character or completeness.
-
-The Evangelists give every mark of honest witnesses. Their story is
-simple, straightforward and unimpassioned, even under circumstances
-calculated to arouse resentment. They seem intent upon nothing but the
-giving of a truthful narrative, not sparing themselves or extenuating
-their own faults. Their frequent incidental allusions to matters of
-government, custom, nationality, etc., and minuteness of detail, are
-such as would never be found in false witnesses. “A false witness,” says
-Mr. Greenleaf, “will not willingly detail any circumstances in which his
-testimony will be open to contradiction, nor multiply them where there
-is danger of being detected by a comparison of them with other accounts
-equally circumstantial.”
-
-It would detract nothing from the credit of the Evangelists, if, in the
-multitude of their incidental references, error should be found in a
-few of them, for some error is inseparable from all human productions;
-and their inspiration may not have been so circumstantial as to exclude
-immaterial errors.
-
-With such differences as show most convincingly that the Evangelists are
-independent witnesses, there is such unity in the character and life
-of Christ, as exhibited by them, as shows the same _original_ for the
-likeness. This essential unity of the Gospel is evidenced by the fact
-that not a single church or communion exists, that does not accept _all_
-the Gospels, if _either_.
-
-From internal evidence, it is extremely probable that the Synoptics were
-written before the destruction of Jerusalem. Luke was certainly written
-before Acts, and the history in Acts is not carried later than the year
-62, eight years before that event. As the four undisputed Epistles were
-all written before the year 60, the logical order will be to present the
-testimony of Paul to the Resurrection before that of the Evangelists.
-
-[1] President Bartlett believes that notwithstanding its long line of
-exposure, the outer historical difficulties seem reduced to the solitary
-question of the taxing under Cyrenius. (The _Princeton Review_ for
-January, 1880, p. 44.) Aside from any question of inspiration, it is
-improbable that Luke made a mistake. Justin Martyr, who wrote at a very
-early period, in his Apology to the Roman Emperor, refers to this taxing
-as a well known event (Ap., c. 34). He again refers to it in his Dialogue
-(c. 78) as being the first census taken in Judea under Cyrenius. Celsus,
-who was not wanting in skill or inclination to attack at all points,
-found no occasion here. It may well be that a person holding the office
-which Cyrenius held at the first enrolment was called a “procurator.” Or
-Luke in speaking of this enrolment may have referred to Cyrenius by the
-title which he afterwards bore; or Cyrenius may have been in the office
-twice. President Bartlett also concludes with Warrenton that there is not
-any instance of a really inapposite quotation from the Old Testament,
-although the quotations are sometimes inaccurate. He also concludes that
-the instances of alleged _contradictions_ may be reduced to five, and
-that there is no insurmountable difficulty in reconciling them. But, for
-reasons stated in the text, the inquiry is not material to our argument.
-
-[2] Many suppose that the “we” are the Elders at Ephesus. But if so, why
-did they not sign? The “we” preceded by the unmistakable reference to
-John and followed by the first person singular, in the closing verse, is
-as likely to have been John.
-
-[3] “Synoptics”—a word often used by writers at the present day to
-designate the first three Gospels.
-
-[4] The Apocalypse is quite different in style and in respect to pure
-Greek. For these reasons and others some of the early Fathers denied that
-the Apostle wrote it. But such was the early tradition. Justin Martyr
-refers to him as the author, and as Dr. Sears, in his Heart of Christ,
-well argues, these differences are sufficiently accounted for by the
-highly excited state of mind in which the Apocalypse was written; and he
-points out many agreements both in doctrine and mode of expression.
-
-[5] Three years, and possibly four.
-
-[A] Its omission of Peter’s want of faith, as recorded in Matthew 14-30,
-is an exception.
-
-[6] Wright’s Logic, etc., p. 210; Norton’s Genuineness, etc., Vol. I., p.
-188; Wescott’s Introduction, cc. 3 and 4.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV.
-
-THE APOCALYPSE AND THE FOUR EPISTLES.
-
-
-While all Infidels, from Celsus before the year 180 to Waite, in 1881,
-have agreed that “either Jesus was not really dead, or he did not
-really rise again,” some[1] of them have assumed the one, and some the
-other alternative. Strauss, with Celsus, doubts the reality of the
-resurrection, rather than the death. Schleiermacher, on the other hand,
-held that Jesus returned again to life from a state of lethargy; and this
-view, although not the position generally taken by skeptics, is still
-held by a very few.
-
-There have been two institutions in the Christian church, the Lord’s
-Supper and the Lord’s day, that have testified from the beginning that
-Jesus was really dead, and did really rise again from the dead. They
-displaced the Jewish Passover and the Jewish Sabbath, both strongly
-entrenched in the law of Moses and long established custom. Such
-substitution can be accounted for, only upon the hypothesis of the
-fullest conviction of the death and resurrection of our Lord. The Lord’s
-day is referred to by Paul in First Corinthians (c. xvi.) under the
-designation of “the first day of the week,” and is mentioned by John
-in Revelation (c. i. 10), where he says, “I was in the Spirit on the
-Lord’s Day.” The Lord’s Supper has great prominence given to it by Paul
-in the eleventh chapter of First Corinthians. Those to whom he writes
-are admonished not to eat “of that bread,” or drink “of that cup,” in
-an unworthy manner, “For as often as ye eat this bread and drink this
-cup, ye proclaim the Lord’s death till he come.” As to the origin of
-this sacrament, he says, “I have received of the Lord that which I also
-delivered unto you, that the Lord Jesus the same night in which he was
-betrayed took bread, and when he had given thanks, he brake and said,
-Take, eat; this is my body broken for you; this do in remembrance of
-me: and after the same manner also he took the cup, when he had supped,
-saying, This cup is the New Testament in my blood; this do ye as oft as
-ye drink it, in remembrance of me.” This Epistle was written as early as
-the year[2] 57, or within 27 years after the Crucifixion. It is not to be
-doubted that such a command would be observed from the first formation
-of any church. Both the death and resurrection of Christ appear in the
-book of Revelation. He is called “The first begotten of the dead” (c.
-i. 5), “He that liveth and was dead” (c. i. 88), “The Lamb as it had
-been slain,” before whom the four living creatures and the elders (as
-representing the whole Church) fall down, saying, “Thou art worthy to
-take the book, and to open the seals thereof; for thou wast slain, and
-hast redeemed us to God by thy blood, out of every kindred, and tongue,
-and people, and nation” (c. v. 6 to 10). And John says that he was in
-exile, “for the Word of God, and for the testimony of Jesus Christ”
-(c. i. 9). What was this “testimony,” other than that which Luke says
-in Acts (c. iv. 2) was given by Peter and John when the Sadducees were
-“grieved that they taught the people, and preached through Jesus Christ
-the resurrection from the dead;” or other than that, given by Peter in
-the presence of John, (c. iii. 15) that the Jews had “killed the Prince
-of Life, whom God hath raised from the dead; _whereof we are witnesses_.”
-Even from the book of Revelation[3] alone, were there no other proof,
-should we conclude that _John_ testified that Jesus died and rose again.
-
-This was the burden of _Paul’s_ preaching and the inspiration of his life.
-
-Nor do we stop with Paul. From his writings we know that all the Apostles
-and the whole Church from the beginning, maintained the same grand theme
-with all the strength of conviction of which men are capable. He had been
-preaching three years prior to the first visit to Jerusalem referred
-to in Galatians (c. i. 18). At this visit he had “returned again,” to
-Damascus. His leaving Damascus was probably the time when he was let
-down from the wall in a basket, as stated in Second Corinthians (c. xi.
-33), and the city was then held “under Aretus the King.” Fourteen years
-after his conversion or his escape (it is uncertain which), he went up
-to Jerusalem with Barnabas, taking Titus also with him. The precise date
-of his conversion is unknown, but was approximately[4] in the year 36.
-He writes of the last visit mentioned in Galatians, “that when James,
-Cephas and John, who seemed to be pillars, perceived the grace that was
-given unto me, they gave to me and Barnabas the right hand of fellowship;
-that we should go unto the heathen, and they unto the circumcision.”
-From that time, then, if not before, with the full recognition of all
-the Apostles, he became distinctively the Apostle to the Gentiles. And
-at the first visit mentioned, he saw James, the Lord’s brother, and also
-Peter, and abode with him fifteen days. Afterwards, he went into the
-regions of Syria and Cilicia, and was unknown by face unto the churches
-of Judea, but they had heard, “That he which persecuted us in times past
-now preacheth the faith which once he destroyed;” and he says, “they
-glorified God in me” (c. i. 18-24). He says in the thirteenth verse, “Ye
-have heard of my conversation in time past, in the Jews’ religion, how
-that beyond measure I persecuted the church of God and wasted it.”
-
-As there is no doubt what “the faith” was, which he preached after his
-conversion, so there is no doubt what “the faith” was “which once he
-destroyed.” Within three years after the commencement of his ministry, he
-saw James the Lord’s brother, and abode with Peter fifteen days; and at
-the expiration of the fourteen years, _all_ the Apostles were ready to
-give him the right hand of fellowship. As there is no doubt what “faith”
-_he_ preached (which was the same which he had destroyed), so there is
-none as to what faith the _others_ preached, and _had_ preached from the
-beginning. _His conversion was within six years of the Crucifixion._
-As he from that time preached Jesus and the Resurrection, there is no
-doubt but that Jesus and the Resurrection were preached during the six
-years before his conversion. Hence, from Paul’s four Epistles (whose
-genuineness is beyond controversy), we are inevitably carried back to
-the first ministry of _any_ of the Apostles, for the time when the
-doctrine of the Resurrection was _first_ proclaimed. This conclusion is
-reached without recourse to the testimony of either of the Evangelists;
-and believers may say with Renan, though in a different spirit, “Thanks
-to the Epistle to the Galatians!” If from this Epistle the _precise_
-commencement of the ministry of Peter and John cannot be determined, it
-must be inferred that it was before, and apparently some time before,
-Paul’s conversion, which, as has been seen, was _within six years_ of the
-Crucifixion. For this reason, as well as many others, the importance of
-Paul’s testimony can hardly be overestimated.
-
-But in order that its full force may be better apprehended, it may be
-useful to present it more in detail, as: In Romans “God commendeth his
-love toward us in that while we were yet sinners, Christ died for us”
-(Rom. v. 8); “Christ being raised from the dead, dieth no more” (Rom.
-vi. 9); “Christ that died, yea, rather that is risen again, who is even
-at the right hand of God” (Rom. viii. 34); “Declared to be the Son of
-God, with power according to the spirit of holiness, by the resurrection
-from the dead” (Rom. i. 4); “The word is nigh thee, in thy mouth and in
-thy heart, that is the word of faith which we preach, that if thou shalt
-confess with thy mouth the Lord Jesus, and shalt believe in thy heart
-_that God hath raised him from the dead_, thou shalt be saved” (Rom. x.
-8, 9); And to the Galatians—“Paul, an Apostle, not of men, neither by
-man, but by Jesus Christ, and God the Father who _raised him from the
-dead_” (Gal. i. 1); And to the Corinthians—“Now if Christ be preached
-that he rose from the dead, how say some among you that there is no
-resurrection of the dead!” “But if there be no resurrection of the dead,
-then is _Christ_ not risen;” “And if Christ be not risen, then is our
-preaching vain, and your faith is also vain;” “Yea, and we are found
-false witnesses of God because we have _testified_ of God that he raised
-up Christ, whom he raised not up, if so be that the dead rise not” (1
-Cor. xv. 12 to 16); “For I delivered unto you FIRST OF ALL that which
-I also received, how that Christ died for our sins according to the
-Scriptures; and that he was buried, and that he rose again the third day
-according to the Scriptures; and that he was seen of Cephas, then of the
-twelve; after that he was seen of about five hundred brethren at once,
-of whom the greater part remain unto this present, but some are fallen
-asleep; after that he was seen of James; then of all the Apostles; and
-last of all he was seen of me also, as one born out of due time; for I am
-the least of the Apostles and am not meet to be called an Apostle because
-I persecuted the Church of God” (1 Cor. xv. 3-10).
-
-We know not with what body Jesus appeared to Paul six years after his
-ascension; nor with what body or just when his saints shall rise. But
-when Paul says that Christ, having died for our sins, was _buried_ and
-rose again the _third day_, and was seen by those enumerated, it would
-be a most violent perversion of language to infer that it was not a
-_material_ resurrection. His flesh had not then seen corruption, and he
-had not yet ascended. The state of things had changed at the time he was
-seen by Paul, and hence the mode of his appearance was different. Paul
-could not have been ignorant that the Apostles were persuaded that they
-beheld and handled the corporeal body of their risen Lord, and if he
-had entertained a different idea of the character of the appearances to
-them, he could not have written as we have quoted. As will be shown in
-subsequent chapters, he had “received,” a corporeal resurrection, and so
-he “delivered.”
-
-These four Epistles of Paul were written about A.D. 58, or within
-less than thirty years from the Crucifixion. By them, two things are
-established beyond dispute. _First_, the doctrine of the Resurrection,
-whether true or false, is not a _myth or legend_, in any sense in which
-those words are commonly understood, or in any sense in which they
-should ever be used. Nor are the appearances or _supposed_ appearances
-of our risen Lord, mentioned by Paul (whether they be regarded as real
-or not), _myths or legends_. The _doctrine_ of the Resurrection was not
-the product of a subsequent age; it was received from the beginning. Nor
-were the _appearances_ of our risen Lord, which were the basis of that
-doctrine, the product of a subsequent age. A skeptic, if he will or must,
-may say that the doctrine is not true, and that the appearances which
-were accepted as evidence of it were not real; but he cannot without an
-abuse of language say that the one, or the others, are _myths or legends_.
-
-_Second_, the Apostles and early disciples most intensely believed the
-doctrine to be true, and the appearances to be real. Even Strauss is
-compelled to admit their sincerity. He concedes that the Epistle to the
-Corinthians is undoubtedly genuine. And he says that on its authority,
-“One must believe that many members of the primitive church who were
-yet living at the time when this Epistle was written, especially the
-Apostles, were convinced that they had witnessed appearances of the risen
-Christ.” (Strauss’ Life, etc., p. 832.) And this is generally conceded by
-all skeptics at the present day who have any claim to be even tolerably
-informed upon the subject of the Resurrection, and any disposition to
-deal with it in any spirit of fairness. This narrows our inquiry very
-much. Thus far we rest on solid ground. We start with the fact fully
-established, that we are not dealing with myths, or legends, concerning
-a remote transaction. We know precisely what convictions in respect to
-the Resurrection were entertained at the very time of the transaction,
-by those best qualified to judge; and we also know many of the facts,
-upon which these convictions were based. We may say, if we choose, that
-the supposed appearances were not real; but we cannot say they are an
-_afterthought_. They must have been entertained from the very beginning,
-certainly as early as the day of Pentecost. The Apostles believed with
-most intense earnestness, that they had seen their _Risen Lord_, and had
-received from him their Commission to disciple all nations, baptizing
-them into the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.
-
-Their honesty being conceded, the only question remaining is, _were
-they deceived_? Mistake on their part could only have been in one or
-two things; either that he did not die upon the cross, or else that
-he was not alive afterward. And here it is important to observe, that
-the Evangelists do little more than give to some extent the times and
-circumstances of transactions already declared, in the Epistles, to have
-occurred. Of course those transactions as they were understood when the
-Epistles were written, _had_ their times and circumstances. Paul declared
-what he had “received,”—that Jesus _died_ and was _buried_. The Gospels
-state the time and the attending circumstances. Paul declared, as he had
-“received,”—that Christ _rose again the third day_. The Gospels state
-the circumstances. Paul declared, as he had “received,”—that Jesus after
-he rose on the third day, was seen by Cephas, then by the twelve, after
-that by about five hundred brethren, after that by James, and then again
-by all the Apostles. The Gospels and the first chapter of Acts state the
-circumstances of some, though not of all, of these several appearances.
-From what we know already from Paul’s Epistles, further information
-from some source should be expected; and the Evangelists afford that
-information. We must believe that they state the _circumstances_, as they
-were understood when Paul wrote his Epistles, and as they were understood
-when the Resurrection was first proclaimed on the day of Pentecost. As
-the principal facts, _i. e._ the Resurrection and subsequent visible
-appearances till the Ascension, were not an afterthought, neither are
-the _circumstances_ attending them as recorded by the Evangelists, an
-afterthought. In respect to these circumstances, we can see and know
-what the Apostles _supposed_ they saw, and heard, and knew.
-
-The Evangelists, therefore, by stating circumstances not specified by
-Paul, enable us to determine more certainly, whether the Apostles were
-deceived. And what they state of Christ’s predictions of his death and
-his resurrection, may also help us to determine whether the Apostles were
-deceived.
-
-[1] Strauss’ Life of Jesus, Vol. II., pp. 843-4; Godet’s Com. on St.
-Luke, A.D. 1881, p. 511.
-
-[2] Conybeare and Howson’s Life, etc., of Paul, p. 962.
-
-[3] Judge Waite will not admit John’s authorship, and he cites Eusebius
-cc. 3-39, as having attributed the Apocalypse to John the Presbyter.
-This may indicate a present “tendency” by skeptical writers to shift
-their ground. Eusebius, however, only states that there were two, John
-the Apostle, and John the Presbyter, and that “it is probable that the
-second, if it be not allowed that it was the first, saw the Revelation
-ascribed to John.” Justin Martyr had long before (Dial., c. 81) in
-express terms given John the Apostle as the author; and such is the
-general verdict of scholars.
-
-[4] Conybeare and Howson, pp. 438, 961, 964.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI.
-
-HIS PREDICTIONS CONCERNING HIMSELF.
-
-
-In the account of Christ’s crucifixion by Matthew and Mark, it is
-recorded that they which passed by railed on him, saying,—“Thou that
-destroyest the temple and buildest it in three days, save thyself”; and
-that witnesses had testified to the same accusation, but did not agree.
-The disagreement seems to have been, that some (Mark xiv. 58) testified
-that he said,—“I will destroy this temple that is made with hands and
-in three days I will build another made without hands,” and the others
-(Matthew xxvi. 61) “I am able to destroy the temple of God and to build
-it in three days.” The Evangelists properly characterize both classes
-as _false_ witnesses. Jesus had not said, “_I will_ destroy,” nor “I
-am _able_ to destroy,” but, “Destroy (_thou_) this temple.” It was not
-a destroying by _him_, but by _them_; and it was the temple of his own
-body. It was the earliest, and in some respects the most striking of his
-predictions of his death and resurrection. It was on the occasion of his
-cleansing the temple at the first Passover. The Jews demanded of him,
-“What sign showest thou unto us, seeing thou doest these things?” Jesus
-said, “Destroy this temple and in three days I will raise it up.” The
-Jews therefore said, “Forty and six years was this temple in building,
-and wilt thou rear it up in three days? But he spake of the temple of
-his body. When, therefore, he was raised from the dead his disciples
-remembered that he spake this, and they believed the Scripture and the
-word which Jesus had said.” (John ii. 13 to 22.)
-
-It must have been soon after this Passover, and certainly before John
-the Baptist was cast into prison, that Jesus said to Nicodemus, that,
-as Moses lifted up the serpent in the wilderness, even so must the Son
-of Man be lifted up, that whosoever believeth may in him have eternal
-life. (John iii. 14, 15.) Nicodemus does not appear again, until his mild
-protest to the rest of the Sanhedrim,—“Doth our law judge a man except
-it first hear from himself, and know what he doeth?”[1] They answered
-and said unto him, “Art thou also of Galilee? Search and see that out
-of Galilee ariseth no prophet.” He was silent. (John viii. 45 to 52.)
-But when Jesus had been put to death as a malefactor, no longer afraid,
-he comes with Joseph of Arimathea, bringing a mixture of myrrh and
-aloes, about a hundred pounds weight, and they gave the Crucified One a
-princely burial. (John xix. 39, 40, 41.) What had wrought this change in
-Nicodemus? The lifting up upon the cross, was to _him_ assured proof that
-Jesus was a true “prophet, and more than a prophet.”
-
-On more than one occasion in his early ministry, Jesus in reply to a
-demand for a sign from heaven had said, “There shall no sign be given
-but the sign of Jonah the prophet; for as Jonah was three days and three
-nights in the belly of the whale, so shall the Son of man be three days
-and three nights in the heart of the earth.” (Matthew xii. 38 to 40;
-Luke xi. 29.) That he should be there only three days and three nights
-implied his resurrection. To any objection that he was not in the tomb
-any part of three nights, the customary[2] use of language among the Jews
-is a sufficient answer. In the _Talm hieros_, it is said that a day and a
-night together make up a period; and a part of such a period is counted
-as the whole. It is a received[3] rule among the Jews that a part of a
-day is put for the whole. Yet that the prediction was expressed in such
-terms, is strong evidence of the truthfulness of the record. As Godet
-well says, “Who would ever have dreamed of _falsely_ putting in the mouth
-of Jesus the expression three days and three nights, when in actual fact
-the time spent in the tomb did not exceed one day and two nights?”
-
-Jesus, when called to account for healing on the Sabbath day, answered:
-“My Father worketh even until now, and I work.” For this cause,
-therefore, the Jews sought the more to kill him, because he not only
-broke the Sabbath, but also called God his own Father, making himself
-equal with God. In reply Jesus said: “For as the Father raiseth the dead,
-and quickeneth them, even so the Son quickeneth whom he will ... Verily,
-verily, I say unto you, The hour cometh and now is, when the dead shall
-hear the voice of the Son of God; and they that hear shall live....
-Marvel not at this, for the hour cometh, in which all that are in the
-tomb shall hear his voice, and shall come forth; they that have done
-good, unto the resurrection of life; and they that have done ill, unto
-the resurrection of judgment.” (John v. 1 to 29.)
-
-In his discourse in the Synagogue at Capernaum, concerning the manna, he
-said to the Jews: “The bread which I give is my flesh (that is, my life),
-for the life of the world.... For my flesh is meat indeed, and my blood
-is drink indeed.... Many therefore of his disciples when they heard,
-said, ‘This is a hard saying; who can hear it?’ But Jesus knowing in
-himself that his disciples murmured at this, said unto them, ‘Doth this
-cause you to stumble? _What_ then if ye behold the Son of man ascending
-where he was before.’” (John vi. 30 to 63.)
-
-His first distinct announcement that he should be put to death and
-be raised from the dead, was upon Peter’s confession,— “Thou art the
-Christ the Son of the living God;” and it doubtless was in consequence
-of this confession. It was after John the Baptist had been put to
-death, and after the third Passover, but before the time had come for
-a public declaration of his Messiahship; for he charged the disciples
-that they should tell no man that he was the Christ. The place was in
-the coast of Cesarea Philippi, near the sources of the Jordan. With
-verbal differences, the same account substantially is given by each
-of the Synoptics, and as follows: “From that time began Jesus to show
-unto his disciples, how that he must go into Jerusalem and suffer many
-things of the elders and chief priests and scribes, and the third day
-be raised up.” (Matthew xvi. 21.) “And he began to teach them that the
-Son of Man must suffer many things, and be rejected of the elders and
-the chief priests, and the scribes, and be killed, and after three days
-rise again.” (Mark viii. 31.) “The Son of Man must suffer many things
-and be rejected of the elders and the chief priests and scribes and be
-killed, and the third day be raised up.” (Luke ix. 22.) Such is the
-testimony of these three witnesses. They agree also, that he warned the
-disciples not to anticipate worldly glory, but the reverse. Peter, from
-_his_ conception of the Messiahship, treated Christ’s predictions of his
-death as but gloomy forebodings, and began to rebuke him, saying, “Be it
-far from thee, Lord; this shall never be unto thee.” But he turned and
-said unto Peter, “Get thee behind me, Satan; thou art a stumbling block
-unto me: for thou mindest not the things of God but the things of men.”
-(Matthew xvi. 23; Mark viii. 33.)
-
-Six or eight days after these transactions Jesus took with him Peter
-and John and James, and went up into a mountain to pray; and he was
-transfigured before them. As they were coming down from the mountain
-“he commanded them to tell the vision to no man until the Son of Man be
-risen from the dead.” (Matthew xvii. 1, 2; Mark viii. 2 to 9; Luke ix.
-28 to 36.) Mark adds (doubtless from Peter), that they kept that saying,
-questioning among themselves, what the rising again from the dead should
-mean.
-
-Elijah’s appearance suggested to them the question, “Why do the scribes
-say that Elijah must first come?” To which Jesus replied, “Elijah is come
-already, and they knew him not, but did unto him whatsoever they listed.
-Even so shall the Son of Man also suffer of them.” Then understood the
-disciples that he spake unto them of John the Baptist (Matthew xvii. 10
-to 13). Mark (ix. 12 to 14) puts the reference to the Son of Man in the
-form of a question: “And how is it written of the Son of Man that he
-should suffer many things and be set at naught? But I say unto you that
-Elijah is come, and they have also done unto him whatsoever they listed,
-even as it is written of him.” In either form his own death is predicted.
-
-After the transfiguration he went to Capernaum, passing through Galilee.
-“And while they abode in Galilee, Jesus said unto them, ‘The Son of Man
-shall be delivered up into the hands of men; and they shall kill him, and
-the third day he shall be raised up.’ And they were exceeding sorry.”
-(Matthew xvii. 22, 23.) “‘The Son of Man is delivered up into the hands
-of men, and they shall kill him; and when he is killed, after three
-days he shall rise again.’ But they understood not the saying, and were
-afraid to ask him.” (Mark ix. 30 to 32.) “‘Let these words sink into
-your ears: for the Son of Man shall be delivered up into the hands of
-men.’ But they understood not this saying, and it was concealed from them
-that they should not perceive it; and they were afraid to ask him about
-this saying.” (Luke ix. 44, 45.) It is not necessary to suppose that
-it was otherwise concealed than by their dullness of apprehension, and
-preconceived opinions.
-
-At the feast of Tabernacles, Jesus said to the officers whom the
-Pharisees had sent to take him: “Yet a little while am I with you, and
-I go unto him that sent me. Ye shall seek me and shall not find me: and
-where I am ye cannot come.” (John vii. 32 to 35.)
-
-He said the same to the Pharisees or the “Jews,” the day following the
-feast as he taught in the temple; and they said, “Will he kill himself,
-that he saith whither I go ye cannot come?” In reply, after repeating his
-previous declaration, he said, “When ye have lifted up the Son of Man,
-then shall ye know that I am he, and that I do nothing of myself, but
-as the Father taught me, I speak these things. And he that sent me is
-with me; he hath not left me alone; for I do always the things that are
-pleasing to him.” (John viii. 21 to 30.)
-
-In the parable of the good shepherd spoken soon after the Feast, Jesus
-says: “I am the good shepherd ... and I lay down my life for the
-sheep.... Therefore doth the Father love me because I lay down my life
-that I may take it again. No man taketh it away from me, but I lay it
-down of myself. I have power to lay it down, and I have power to take it
-again. This commandment received I of my Father.” (John x. 11 to 18.)
-
-He said to Martha, “I am the resurrection and the life; he that believeth
-on me, though he die yet shall he live.” (John xi. 25.)
-
-As he was going up to Jerusalem to the Passover at which he was to
-suffer, he again repeated his announcement to his disciples. “Behold we
-go up to Jerusalem; and the Son of Man shall be delivered unto the chief
-priests and scribes; and they shall condemn him to death, and shall
-deliver him unto the Gentiles to mock, to scourge, and to crucify; and
-the third day he shall be raised up.” (Matthew xx. 18, 19.) “Behold, we
-go up to Jerusalem; and the Son of Man shall be delivered unto the chief
-priests and the scribes; and they shall condemn him to death, and shall
-deliver him unto the Gentiles; and they shall mock him, and shall spit
-upon him, and shall scourge him, and shall kill him; and after three days
-he shall rise again.” (Mark x. 33, 34.) “Behold we go up to Jerusalem,
-and all the things that are written by the prophets shall be accomplished
-unto the Son of Man; for he shall be delivered up unto the Gentiles, and
-shall be mocked, and shamefully entreated, and spit upon; and they shall
-scourge and kill him; and the third day he shall rise again. And they
-understood none of these things; and this saying was hid from them; and
-they perceived not the things that were said.” (Luke xviii. 31 to 34.)
-
-Immediately after (as it would seem), the mother of James and John came
-with them with the request, that the sons might sit one on his right
-hand, and one on his left hand, in his kingdom. The ten were moved with
-indignation. But Jesus said, “The Son of Man came not to be ministered
-unto, but to minister and to give his life a ransom for many.” (Matthew
-xx. 20 to 28; Mark x. 45.)
-
-Six days before the Passover, he came to Bethany, where Lazarus was whom
-he had raised from the dead, and they made him a supper in the house of
-Simon; and Mary (the sister of Lazarus) anointed his head and feet with
-very precious ointment. This excited the anger of Judas. Jesus said, “Why
-trouble ye the woman, for she hath wrought a good work upon me. For ye
-have the poor always with you; but me ye have not always, for in that she
-poured this ointment upon my body she did it to prepare me for burial.
-Verily I say unto you, Wheresoever this Gospel shall be preached in the
-whole world, that also which this woman hath done shall be spoken of for
-a memorial of her.” (Matthew xxvi. 6 to 13; Mark xiv. 3 to 10; John xii.
-2 to 8.)
-
-Immediately after his triumphal entry into Jerusalem, on the first day of
-the week of his crucifixion, he was told that certain Greeks desired to
-see him. It was to him a sign of his glorification among the Gentiles,
-and, therefore, of his death. He answered, “The hour is come that the Son
-of Man should be glorified. Verily, verily I say unto you, except a grain
-of wheat fall into the earth and die, it abideth by itself alone; but
-if it die, it beareth much fruit.... Now is my soul troubled; and what
-shall I say? Father, save me from this hour. But for this cause came I
-unto this hour.... And I, if I be lifted up from the earth, will draw all
-men unto myself.” But this he said signifying by what manner of death he
-should die.” (John xii. 20 to 22.)
-
-The parable of the wicked husbandman (to be found in all the Synoptics)
-represents them as killing the son and heir, by whom, as the context
-shows, our Lord was intended. And Jesus said, “Did ye never read in the
-Scriptures:
-
- ‘The stone which the builders rejected,
- The same was made the head of the corner;
- This was from the Lord,
- And it is marvellous in our eyes.’
-
-Therefore, say I unto you, The kingdom of God shall be taken away from
-you, and shall be given to a nation bringing forth the fruits thereof.
-And he that falleth on this stone shall be broken to pieces; but on
-whomsoever it shall fall, it will scatter him as dust.” (Matthew xxi. 42
-to 45; Mark xii. 1 to 12; Luke xx. 9 to 10.)
-
-And every day he was teaching in the temple; every night he went out and
-lodged in the Mount of Olives till the third day of the week (Tuesday)
-with which his public ministry ended; and then he departed from the
-temple, never to return.
-
-When he had finished his teaching in the temple, he said unto his
-disciples, “Ye know that after two days the Passover cometh, and the Son
-of Man is delivered up to be crucified.” (Matthew xxvi. 2.)
-
-Peter and John, as he had directed, made ready the Passover, and when the
-hour was come, he sat down, and the Apostles with him. And he said unto
-them, “With desire I have desired to eat this Passover with you before I
-suffer.” (Luke xxii. 7 to 15.)
-
-All the Evangelists state, that Jesus at the Passover supper said to the
-twelve, “One of you shall betray me”; and two of the Evangelists say that
-he designated the traitor, by the giving of the sop. (Matthew xxvi. 21 to
-25; Mark xiv. 18 to 21; Luke xxii. 21 to 23; John xiii. 21 to 35.)
-
-After giving him the sop, Jesus said to Judas, “That thou doest do
-quickly;” and he having received the sop, went out straightway to carry
-out that which he had before agreed; _and it was night_. (Luke xxii. 2 to
-6; John xiii. 26 to 30.)
-
-After Judas had gone out, Jesus said, “Now is the son of man glorified,
-and God is glorified in him; and to Peter he said, Whither I go thou
-canst not follow me now, but thou shalt follow afterwards.” (John xii.
-36, 37.)
-
-To the institution of the Lord’s Supper, there is the testimony of
-the three Synoptic Gospels, and that of Paul; four witnesses; and its
-constant observance from that time to the present. It was to commemorate
-his death to the end of the world,—“Take, eat, this is my body.... Drink
-ye all of it; for this is my blood of the covenant which is shed for
-many unto remission of sins.” (Matthew xvii. 26 to 28.) “Take ye; this
-is my body.” “This is my blood of the covenant which is shed for many.”
-(Mark xiv. 22 to 25.) “This is my body which is given for you; this do in
-remembrance of me.... This cup is the new covenant in my blood, _even_
-that which is poured out for you.” (Luke xxii. 18 to 22.) “This is my
-body, which is for you; this do in remembrance of me.... This cup is the
-new covenant in my blood; this do as oft as ye drink _it_ in remembrance
-of me. For as often as ye eat this bread and drink the cup, ye proclaim
-the Lord’s death till he come.” (1 Corinthians xi. 23 to 28.)
-
-To his saying that he would go before them into Galilee after his
-resurrection, there are _two_ witnesses. It was after they had sung
-their hymn, and had gone out unto the Mount of Olives. “All ye shall be
-offended in me this night; for it is written I will smite the shepherd,
-and the sheep of the flock shall be scattered abroad. But after I am
-raised up I will go before you into Galilee.” So, Matthew. Mark’s account
-is: “And Jesus saith unto them, All ye shall be offended; for it is
-written, I will smite the shepherd, and the sheep shall be scattered
-abroad. Howbeit after I am raised up I will go before you into Galilee.”
-(Matthew xxvi. 31, 32; Mark xiv. 27, 28.)
-
-That Peter should thrice deny that he knew him, is proved by _all_ the
-Evangelists. “Verily, verily, I say unto thee, that this night before
-the cock crow[4] thou shalt deny me thrice.” (Matthew xxvi. 34, 35.) “I
-tell thee, Peter, the cock shall not crow this day, until thou shalt
-thrice deny that thou knowest me.” (Luke xxii. 34.) “Verily, verily, I
-say unto thee, the cock shall not crow till thou hast denied me thrice.”
-(John xiii. 38.) Mark (probably from Peter himself) says that when Peter
-said, “Although all should be offended, yet will not I,” Jesus said to
-him, “Verily I say unto thee, that thou to-day, _even_ this night, before
-the cock crow twice, shalt deny me thrice.” “But he spake exceeding
-vehemently, If I must die with thee, I will not deny thee. And in like
-manner said they all.” (Mark xiv. 26 to 31.)
-
-Yet in the discourse which followed, Jesus again says, “Behold the hour
-cometh, yea, is come, that ye shall be scattered, every man to his own,
-and shall leave me alone; and yet I am not alone, because the Father is
-with me.” (John x. 31, 32.)
-
-“Yet a little while, and the world beholdeth me no more; but ye behold
-me; because I live ye shall live also.” (John xiv. 19, 20.)
-
-“Peace I leave with you; my peace I give unto you; not as the world
-giveth I give unto you. Let not your heart be troubled, neither let it be
-fearful.”
-
-“Ye heard how I said to you, I go away, and I come unto you. If ye loved
-me ye would have rejoiced, because I go unto the Father, for the Father
-is greater than I. And now I have told you before it come to pass, that
-when it is come to pass ye may believe.” (John xiv. 27 to 31.)
-
-“Greater love hath no man than this, that a man lay down his life for
-his friends. Ye are my friends if ye do the things which I command you.”
-(John xv. 13, 14.)
-
-“But now I go unto him that sent me, and none of you asketh me, Whither
-goest thou? But because I have spoken these things unto you sorrow hath
-filled your heart.” (John xv. 5, 6.)
-
-“A little while and ye behold me no more, and again a little while and ye
-shall see me.” (John xv. 16.)
-
-“Verily, verily, I say unto you, that ye shall weep and lament, but the
-world shall rejoice; ye shall be sorrowful, but your sorrow shall be
-turned into joy.” (John xvi. 20.)
-
-“And I am no more in the world, but these are in the world, and I come to
-thee.” (John xvii. 11.)
-
-“Again the high priest asked him and saith unto him, Art thou the Christ,
-the Son of the Blessed? And Jesus said, I am, and ye shall see the Son
-of Man sitting at the right hand of power, and coming with the clouds of
-heaven.” (Mark xiv. 62.)
-
-To Pilate he said, “I am a king”; and “Thou wouldst have no power against
-me, except it were given thee from above.” (John xviii. 33 to 37; xix.
-11.)
-
-To the penitent thief he said, “Verily, I say unto thee, to-day shalt
-thou be with me in paradise.” (Luke xxiii. 43.)
-
-When he had cried with a loud voice HE SAID, “FATHER, INTO THY HANDS
-I COMMEND MY SPIRIT.” (Luke xxiii. 46.) And all the Evangelists, four
-witnesses, say that he “gave up,” or “yielded up,” the ghost.
-
-There is as much evidence of these utterances (and they are not _all_ of
-his predictions, in some form, of his death and resurrection), as there
-is of any of his sayings upon any subject, and they are so interwoven
-with the entire narrative that is impossible to set them aside, and
-leave anything to which we can safely assent as historically true of all
-his recorded acts and words. There is no alternative, except to believe
-that he uttered these predictions, or else to arbitrarily set aside
-the testimony of the four Evangelists, as well as that of Paul. It is
-impossible to save their character as honest witnesses, and deny that
-Jesus at various times, and in different ways, foretold his death and the
-circumstances attending it, and also his resurrection, and that after he
-was raised from the dead, he would go before them into Galilee. Not that
-we have the _precise_ words, neither more nor less, that he uttered. In
-no instance do any two of the five witnesses give _precisely_ the same
-words. Their testimony is in accordance with what usually[A] occurs, with
-honest witnesses. The witness says, “I cannot give the exact words, or
-all of them.” He is told to give the substance of what was said; and he
-does so to the extent of his recollection, using some of the same words,
-doubtless, but in the main expressing the idea in language of his own.
-Yet there is sufficient certainty, for the court or jury, in matters
-of the greatest concern. It is, in the highest degree, unreasonable to
-demand more of the Evangelists. It is also to be borne in mind that
-neither of them professes to give all of our Lord’s sayings; and John,
-writing much later than the others, purposely omitted many things as
-having been already sufficiently stated.
-
-If, then (as it cannot be doubted was a fact), Jesus plainly foretold
-his death, why did it take his disciples by surprise? The answer to
-this question may be that not till within six months of the close of
-his ministry were they thus told; those months were crowded with his
-teachings and miracles, multitudes were following him; he had just before
-entered Jerusalem as they might expect their Messiah would do, amidst the
-hosannahs of thousands; and they were so filled with their visions of his
-glory, and their false conceptions of the predicted Messiah, whom they
-believed him to be, that they could not understand him. Their mistake
-under the circumstances was a natural one. (See also _post_, c. 19.)
-
-[1] Canon Farrar’s Life of Christ, c. 13; Lange, ditto, Vol. II., p. 29;
-John ii. 13-22, and iii 22-25. Here, and in all _subsequent_ references,
-the citations are from the Revised Version of the New Testament, unless
-otherwise stated.
-
-[2] Lange, Vol. II., p. 273, note, citing Stier, ii, 171.
-
-[3] Lange, Vol. II., p. 273, note; Godet on Luke, p. 265; Whitby, as
-quoted by Scott, on Matthew xii. 40; Genesis i. 5; Daniel viii. 14, with
-Genesis vii. 4 and 17; Deuteronomy xiv. 28, with xxvi. 12; 1 Samuel xx.
-12, with v. 19; 2 Chronicles x. 5, with v. 12; Matthew xxvi. 2, with
-xxvii. 63 and 64; Luke ii. 21, with i. 59; 1 Kings xx. 29; Esther iv. 16;
-Greenleaf on the Evangelists, etc., 268, 269 and notes.
-
-[4] The cock crows about midnight and about three in the morning, which
-was the beginning of the fourth watch. Galicinium (Cock-crowing) standing
-alone means the latter time; so that the same time is referred to by all.
-Greenleaf’s Testimony, etc., p. 436, and citations.
-
-[A] See _post_, c. 19.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII.
-
-ORDER OF EVENTS.
-
-
-Whatever difficulties may exist as to minor points, all the facts
-necessary to a correct decision of the question of the Resurrection
-may be ascertained with reasonable certainty, and the order of their
-occurrence.[A]
-
-That Jesus Christ was crucified under Pontius Pilate is the testimony of
-all history. That his crucifixion was the day before the Jewish Sabbath
-is proved by all the Evangelists, and the constant observance of the
-First Day of the week as the Lord’s Day.
-
-Having been condemned to death, and his execution entrusted to Roman
-soldiers, there is the strongest presumption that the sentence was fully
-executed. This presumption is confirmed by all the Evangelists, by Paul
-in all his Epistles, and by the constant teaching of all the Apostles.
-On the day of Pentecost, Peter boldly said, Ye men of Israel, Jesus of
-Nazareth being delivered up by the determinate counsel and foreknowledge
-of God, “ye by the hand of lawless men did crucify and slay;” and no one
-called in question the fact of his death. Again, at the healing of the
-lame man, he declared, “Ye denied the Holy and Righteous One and asked
-for a murderer to be granted unto you, and killed the Prince of Life;”
-this charge he repeated before the Sanhedrim; and there was no denial.
-When Peter and John, after their release from prison, were brought before
-the Council, one charge against them was: “Ye have filled Jerusalem with
-your teaching, and intend to bring this man’s blood upon us.” Stephen,
-when brought before the Council, declared, “Ye have now become the
-betrayers and murderers ... of the Righteous One.” If there could have
-been the slightest doubt of the actual death of Christ, the Council would
-have furnished the evidence.
-
-John solemnly declares that “one of the soldiers, with a spear, pierced
-his side, and straightway there came out blood and water.” It was a
-thrust by a Roman soldier to make the fact of death absolutely certain.
-It was such a result as would have followed, if, from excessive labors
-and extreme agony, there was a collection of water about the heart,
-or if from like causes, and as Dr. Stroud and other eminent surgeons
-suppose,[1] the cause of his death was a rupture or breaking of the heart.
-
-And, finally, not less than forty times, on different occasions, and in a
-variety of ways, had Jesus foretold his death. He instituted a Sacrament
-to commemorate it; he said to the penitent thief: “This day shalt thou be
-with me in Paradise;” and in the extreme moment, “Father, into thy hands
-I commend my Spirit.” It is not possible to accept the hypothesis of his
-return to life from a state of lethargy, without destroying _his_ moral
-character, as well as that of his disciples. Where was he, when Peter and
-Stephen were charging home his death upon the guilty Jews? Where was he,
-when Stephen suffered martyrdom for his sake, and when his apostles and
-disciples were preaching his death and resurrection?
-
-Even Strauss is constrained to say “The whole country-side knew that he
-was dead.”
-
-He was buried. So says Paul, and[2] all the Evangelists. As the day of
-the crucifixion was drawing to its close, that the bodies should not
-remain on the cross[2] upon the Sabbath (for that day[2] of the Sabbath,
-was a high day), the Jews asked of Pilate that the legs of those who had
-been crucified might be broken,[2] and they be taken away. The soldiers
-brake the legs of the others, but not of Jesus, for they found that he
-was already dead; and his death was assured by one of the soldiers.
-Thereupon Joseph of Arimathea, a rich man and a counsellor, begged the
-body of Jesus. Pilate, after he knew from the centurion that he was
-dead, commanded it to be delivered. Joseph, with Nicodemus, wound it in
-fine linen with spices, and laid it in his own new tomb, hewn out in the
-rock, rolled a great stone “to,” or “against” the door, and departed.
-The sepulchre was “nigh at hand,” otherwise, there would not have been
-time for the burial before the coming in of the Sabbath. The next[3] day
-the chief priests and Pharisees or some of them, obtained from Pilate a
-guard, and made the sepulchre sure, sealing the stone (Matthew xxvii. 62,
-66).
-
-The objection that they could not have known that Jesus had said, “After
-three days I will rise again,” is well answered by Alford: “Not the
-saying, but its meaning was hid from his disciples.” Judas knew it, and
-may have informed the chief priests and Pharisees of it; and they may
-have known it from other sources, for it was not spoken in secret. Nor
-with their perverse rejection of him while they could not deny his works,
-is it improbable that they might have some apprehension of the necessity
-of a guard? We are not to judge them from our standpoint, but from
-theirs. They did _not_ believe that he was the Messiah (Acts iii. 17; 1
-Corinthians ii. 8). They said and doubtless believed, after a fashion,
-“He deceiveth the people” and “casteth out devils through the prince
-of the devils.” Their guilty fears were the occasion of this increased
-certainty of his resurrection. The mention of a guard by Matthew
-(although not by the other Evangelists), is in perfect keeping with his
-previous occupation, which had led him to make, and observe, precautions
-against fraud. It was, in his view, as in ours, an important fact that
-their precautions against imposition had reacted upon themselves. His
-narrative is unimpeached. It was published early, and his statement of
-the appointment of a guard was not contradicted.
-
-The facts must stand that Jesus died, and was buried; and at the
-instance of his bitterest foes, soldiers guarded his tomb against the
-little company of his frightened followers.
-
-At a very early hour on the first day of the week it was known that the
-stone had been rolled away, and the body of Jesus was not in the tomb.
-Such is the testimony of all the Evangelists. This great fact is at the
-threshold of our inquiry. It must be accounted for. The Christian’s
-explanation is that Jesus rose from the dead, and an angel of the Lord
-descended and rolled away the stone. The account which the soldiers were
-induced to circulate was, that his disciples came by night and stole him
-away while they slept. This story was current among the Jews when Matthew
-wrote[4] his Gospel, and when, nearly a hundred years after, Justin
-Martyr wrote to Trypho the Jew. It ought not to be difficult to determine
-which explanation is the true one.
-
-As soon as Mary Magdalene (who was of the company of women who came first
-to see the sepulchre), saw that the stone was rolled away, she ran to
-Peter and John, saying, “They have taken away the Lord out of the tomb
-and we know not where they have laid him.” (John xx. 2.)
-
-The other women[5] entered into the sepulchre, and found not the body of
-Jesus, but saw two angels, one of whom said to them, “He is not here, he
-is risen; but go your way and tell his disciples and Peter, that he goeth
-before you into Galilee, there shall ye see him as he said unto you.”
-(Why should the Apostles be told that Jesus would go before them into
-Galilee, if he was to show himself to them that very day at Jerusalem?
-Both to prepare them for the interview at Jerusalem, and in order that
-the tidings might be carried to all the disciples, the most of whom were
-in Galilee.)
-
-They departed quickly with fear and great joy, and told these things unto
-such of the Apostles as they found in the city; but “these words appeared
-in their sight as idle talk; and they disbelieved them.” (Luke xxiv. 11.)
-
-As soon as Peter and John knew from Mary Magdalene, of the open
-sepulchre, they ran both together, but John outran Peter and came
-first to the tomb; “and stooping and looking in, he seeth the linen
-clothes lying; yet entered he not in. Simon Peter therefore also cometh,
-following him, and enters into the tomb; and he beholdeth the linen
-clothes lying and the napkin that was upon his head, not lying with
-the linen clothes, but rolled up in a place by itself. Then entered in
-therefore the other disciple also, which came first to the tomb, and he
-saw and believed. For as yet they knew not the Scripture that he must
-rise again from the dead. So the disciples went away again unto their own
-home.” (John xx. 1-10.)
-
-Such is the circumstantial account given by John of the state of things
-at the tomb, as they found it before Jesus appeared to any one, and
-before they had received any information that he had risen from the dead.
-The body was not there. It could hardly have been removed by friends, and
-they both be ignorant of it. Had it been taken by enemies? There were the
-linen clothes, and there, rolled up in a place by itself, was the napkin.
-Who had arranged them thus? “All had been done calmly, collectedly.
-Neither earthly friends nor earthly foes had done it; the one would not
-have stripped the garments from the body, the other would have been at
-no pains so carefully to arrange[6] and deposit them.” So John must have
-reasoned and, perhaps recalling what Jesus had said, he _believed_. He
-believed from what he _saw_, and not from the Scriptures, for as yet he
-knew not from them, that the Christ “must rise again from the dead.” It
-is not probable that he then avowed his conviction. He trusted that Jesus
-would, in due time, reveal himself to them all.
-
-The particulars of his appearance to Mary Magdalene appear in the Fourth
-Gospel. She was not expecting to see him, and, blinded by her tears,
-she knew not that it was Jesus until he spoke her name, doubtless in
-a familiar tone. She turneth herself, and saith unto him in Hebrew,
-_Rabboni_, which is to say, Master. She _would_ have clung to him. Jesus
-had told his disciples before his crucifixion that he was to go to the
-Father. But this event was yet in the future; and when she would detain
-him, Jesus saith to her, Touch me not (or Take not hold on me) for I am
-not yet ascended unto the Father: but go unto my brethren and say to
-them, I ascend unto my Father, and your Father, and my God, and your
-God. This would remind _them_ of what he had told them; and would remind
-_her_, as Peter afterwards was reminded, that she would best manifest
-her love by willing service. She obeyed. But those to whom she told it,
-when they heard that he was alive, and had been seen of her, disbelieved.
-(Mark xvi. 17.)
-
-The other women after delivering the message of the angels, returned.
-And behold Jesus met them saying “All Hail.” And they came and took hold
-of his feet and worshipped him. Then saith Jesus unto them, Fear not:
-go tell my brethren that they depart into Galilee, and there shall they
-see me. (Matthew xxviii. 9, 10.) Matthew, speaking in a general way,
-does not distinguish this appearance from that to Mary Magdalene, but
-blends the two together. The salutation was different, and the message
-and the circumstances were different. Nor is it, as Strauss (p. 813)
-vainly imagines, any objection to the hypothesis of separate appearances,
-that it involves “a restless running to and fro of the disciples and
-the women;” for under the intense excitement it could hardly have been
-otherwise.[7]
-
-Jesus joined himself to two of the disciples on their journey to Emmaus,
-discoursed to them by the way, and made himself known in the breaking
-of bread. One of them was Cleopas, the other (his name not given) is
-supposed[8] to have been Luke. When they left Jerusalem, the woman had
-reported the message from the angel. Peter and John had returned from
-the tomb, but no one had seen the Risen Lord. The time of their leaving
-was before Mary Magdalene had told that she had seen the Lord. The day
-therefore must have been considerably advanced before Jesus appeared to
-her.
-
-It was toward evening, when Jesus sat down with them to meat. Their eyes
-were opened and they knew him, and he “vanished out of their sight.”
-
-And they rose up that very hour and returned to Jerusalem, and found the
-eleven gathered together and them that were with them, saying, “The Lord
-is risen indeed, and hath appeared to Simon.”
-
-This, as we learn from Paul, was the first appearance to any of the
-Apostles. The time and place are not mentioned. We only know that it was
-before the arrival of the two disciples. Emmaus[9] was about eight miles
-from Jerusalem. The narrative seems to indicate that the event had but
-just occurred.
-
-The two disciples rehearsed the things that had happened. As they spake,
-Jesus himself stood in the midst of the disciples, and said, “Peace be
-unto you.” But they were terrified and affrighted, and supposed that they
-beheld a spirit. He said unto them, “Why are ye troubled, and wherefore
-do reasonings arise in your heart? See my hands and my feet, that it is I
-myself; handle me and see; for a spirit hath not flesh and bones, as ye
-behold me having.” And when he had said this, he showed them his hands
-and his feet; and while they still disbelieved for joy and wondered, he
-said unto them, “Have ye here anything to eat?” and they gave him a piece
-of broiled fish. And he took it, and did eat before them. (Luke xxiv.
-35-43.)
-
-But Thomas, who was not with them, having said, “Except I shall see in
-his hands the print of the nails, and put my finger into the print of
-the nails, and put my hand into his side, I will not believe,” Jesus
-eight days after stood in their midst and said, “Peace be unto you.”
-Then saith he to Thomas, “Reach hither thy finger, and see my hands; and
-reach hither thy hand, and put it into my side: and be not faithless,
-but believing.” Thomas answered and said unto him, “My Lord and my God.”
-Jesus saith unto him, “Because thou hast seen me thou hast believed;
-blessed are they that have not seen and yet have believed.” (John xx.
-24-29.)
-
-After these things Jesus manifested himself at the Sea of Tiberias, to
-Peter, Thomas, Nathaniel, James, John and two others. It was on this
-occasion that he three times asked Simon Peter, “Lovest thou me?” and he
-signified to him by what death he should glorify God. This is said to be
-the _third_ time that he manifested himself to the disciples, _i. e._, to
-the Apostles when they were together. (John xxi. 1-23.)
-
-Then he appeared (says Paul) to above five hundred brethren at once,
-of whom the greater part remain until now, but some are fallen asleep.
-Paul is speaking only of manifestations to Apostles or some of them.
-The Apostles surely were not absent from this great assembly. All the
-circumstances indicate that it was the meeting which he had provided[10]
-for, before his crucifixion, and that it occurred on a mountain in
-Galilee.
-
-Then he appeared to James. Paul is our authority. Neither time,
-nor place, nor circumstance is given. It is strong confirmation of
-the genuineness of our writings that there is no disclosure of the
-particulars of the interview with either Peter, the first of the
-Apostles, or with James, our Lord’s brother. Jesus doubtless had
-something to say to each for himself alone, and none of the sacred
-writers have lifted the veil.
-
-At the end of the forty days he led the Apostles out over against
-Bethany, gave them his final charge, and lifted up his hands and blessed
-them. And it came to pass while he blessed them, he parted from them, and
-was carried up into heaven. (Luke xxiv. 50-53; Acts i. 1-12.)
-
-Such are some of the proofs of his resurrection. Their sufficiency as
-evidence of it, and its logical results, remain to be considered.
-
-[A] And hence there is no occasion to inquire whether the Evangelists
-agree precisely as to the details (as far as given) of his arrest, or
-trial, or crucifixion. That he was arrested and tried and crucified is
-admitted on all hands.
-
-[1] Alford on John’s Gospel. Lange, Vol. III., pp. 333, 334. Stroud on
-the Physical Cause of the Death of Christ. Friedlieb, p. 167. The Last
-Day of Our Lord’s Passion, by Rev. Wm. Hanna, LL.D., c. 13, and Appendix.
-Barnes’ Notes, Vol. II., p. 386.
-
-[2] 1 Corinthians xv. 3, 4; Acts xiii. 28, 29; Deuteronomy xxi. 22, 23;
-John xix. 31-39; Luke xxxiii. 50-54; Mark xv. 42-46; Matthew xxvii. 57-60.
-
-[3] It does not appear that there was a formal meeting of the Sanhedrim,
-and the act may have proceeded from the more violent members of it. The
-time may have been during their Sabbath, or at its close, which would
-have been in season. Lange, Vol. III., p. 343; Farrar, c. 62.
-
-[4] Matthew xxviii. 15; Dialogue, c. 108.
-
-[5] Mary, the mother of James, Salome, Joanna, wife of Chuza, Herod’s
-steward, and other women from Galilee who beheld the sepulchre and
-where he was laid. They may not have come all at the same time, but in
-different companies. Matthew xvii. 55, 56, and xxviii, 1-7; Mark xv. 40,
-41, 47, and xvi. 1-8; Luke xxiii. 49, 55, 56, and xxiv. 1-10; John xx. 1;
-Lange, Vol. III., pp. 362, 368.
-
-[6] The Forty Days after Our Lord’s Resurrection, by Rev. William Hanna,
-LL.D., p. 53.
-
-[7] The words “as they went to tell his disciples,” in our common
-version, are wanting in the Sinaitic and Vatican manuscripts. Their
-omission in the Revised Version removes a difficulty. The true text does
-not state _when_ it was, that Jesus met them.
-
-[8] Lange, Vol. III., p. 383.
-
-[9] All attempts to identify this with certainty, out of the numerous
-villages in the vicinity of Jerusalem, have failed. See Lange, Vol. III.;
-Robinson, Vol. III., pp. 146-150; Barnes’ Notes, Vol. II., p. 107.
-
-[10] 1 Corinthians xv. 6; Matthew xxviii. 7, 10, 16; Mark xvi. 7, 15, 18;
-Lange, Vol. III., p. 411; Farrar, c. 62; Hanna’s Forty Days, c. 8, p.
-185; c. 9, p. 229; Geikie, c. 64.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII.
-
-SUFFICIENCY OF THE PROOFS (FALSE ASSUMPTIONS).
-
-
-Evidence which ought to convince a reasonable man should be deemed
-sufficient.
-
-The standing objection from the days of Celsus, that Jesus should have
-shown himself after his resurrection to his enemies, is unreasonable. It
-is as if one should refuse to believe the transfiguration, the raising of
-the daughter of Jairus, or the agony in the garden, because not witnessed
-by the multitude, and by only Peter, James, and John of the Apostles.
-
-His humiliation and sufferings were ended. Not again was he to be mocked,
-and scourged, and crucified. Those who had wilfully rejected him, would
-have been no more convinced than before. They had said he cast out
-devils through the prince of devils. They had plotted to put Lazarus
-also to death, whom he had raised up before their eyes. They had bribed
-the soldiers to report that his body had been stolen. They would have
-proclaimed that he was not dead, or else that his return to life was by
-the agency of Satan. To return to those who had put every insult upon
-him, and were ready to renew the attack, could only have been to their
-swift destruction, and the time for this had not come.
-
-And even if some of them had believed, it would have added nothing to the
-proof. Any one who now refuses to accept the genuineness of the Gospel,
-or the credibility of the writers, or, accepting both, refuses to believe
-upon the testimony of his disciples, would not be convinced by any amount
-of evidence. There would remain every question of credibility, and, in
-addition, that of personal identity, as to which only those intimately
-acquainted with him were fully qualified to judge.
-
-The proofs will be found sufficient by those who are disposed to lay
-aside preconceived adverse opinions, and believe the fact when it is
-proved.
-
-
-PROOF IS POSSIBLE.
-
-The event _may_ have occurred. By this is meant that it cannot be said
-that its occurrence is, in the nature of things, an impossibility.
-
-The existence of the Lord God Almighty, the Jehovah of the Scriptures,
-may be real, as accepted by the reason and conscience of most men in
-civilized nations. It may have been within his power to raise his Son,
-Jesus Christ, from the dead; and there may have been sufficient reasons
-for the exercise of this power. He may have been able to do this, without
-violating, or suspending, any law of his universe. The resurrection may
-have been as conformable to law as the death of the body. The law of
-gravitation is neither violated nor suspended, but merely overcome, in
-numberless instances every day, by the introduction of what is, under the
-circumstances, a greater force; and it may be a universal _law_ that the
-greater force (other things being equal) shall overcome the less. If it
-were true that the like had never occurred, it cannot be maintained that
-God has not in any instance done something which he had not done before,
-and of which consequently there had been no previous experience. “Men,”
-says Dr. Taylor,[1] “are continually reaching results which the forces of
-nature, left to themselves, never could have caused; and if this be so
-with men, why should we deny to God the possibility of intervening in a
-similar way, and so producing effects that are not merely supernatural,
-but superhuman?” And why, we ask, should we deny to him the possibility
-of doing something which he has not done before; “My Father _worketh_
-hitherto,” said Jesus, “and I work.”
-
-“The[2] affirmation of the impossibility of a miracle carries with
-it the elimination of God out of the universe.” There is no escape
-from this conclusion; and consequently there are those who admit the
-possibility[3] of miracles, even while denying that they can be proved.
-
-The event, then, _may_ have occurred. _It is a question of evidence_.
-
-Again, if Christ did rise from the dead, he would give his disciples
-sufficient evidence of it. He could give to the bodily senses and
-perceptive powers which they had as other men have (and which
-“experience” tells us, may be trusted when they have a fair chance), such
-proofs of his resurrection that they could believe it, and rationally
-believe it. This may be said to be almost a truism. To concede that
-God could, and did, raise Jesus Christ from the dead, and deny that he
-could, or would, afford evidence of it, if not an utter absurdity, is in
-the highest degree unreasonable, and we are not trying to convince any
-but reasonable men. To what end should he perform this miracle, and yet
-afford no evidence of it? The question right here is not whether _we_
-have sufficient evidence for our assurance, but whether his _disciples_
-could reasonably be convinced of his resurrection, assuming that it
-really took place.
-
-Then if _they_ might rationally believe what actually occurred, upon
-evidence furnished _them_, those to whom they declared it, and we to
-whom their testimony has come, may _also_ believe it. If they were not
-bound to reject the evidence of their own senses, because of previous
-experience or the want of it, neither were those to whom they preached,
-nor we ourselves, bound to reject it.
-
-In other words, assuming that Christ did rise from the dead, and assuming
-that satisfactory proofs of his resurrection were given to his disciples,
-it is not _impossible_ that sufficient evidence of both of these facts
-may be accessible to us. To deny this, is to say that Christ must die and
-rise again, in every age, and in every place, where there are nations or
-persons, whether few or many, who have not before witnessed such events.
-Yet to this absurdity must Hume’s famous argument from experience come.
-
-If Jesus rose from the dead, the fact was susceptible of proof to his
-disciples. It was susceptible of proof to those who believed it on the
-testimony of his disciples. It is susceptible of proof to one to whom
-that testimony is transmitted. Assuming his resurrection to be true, it
-would be more wonderful than a miracle, if all means of a rational belief
-in the fact were the exclusive property of his immediate disciples; and
-their contemporaries and all after them, to the end of time, be compelled
-in the exercise of right reason to reject it, notwithstanding it is true.
-Hence we say as the basis of further argument that the resurrection _may_
-have occurred; and if it did occur, we undoubtedly have such evidence of
-it as may be accepted by a reasonable man. Leaving, then, the possible
-for the probable, in a matter that is but a question of evidence.
-
-
-WHAT ARE THE PROOFS?
-
-The fact of Christ’s resurrection was proclaimed by his Apostles and
-disciples from the beginning of their ministry, commencing on the Day of
-Pentecost, fifty days after the crucifixion. This fact was, as expressed
-by Paul, that Christ “died,” and was “buried,” and was “raised on the
-third day;” and by Luke that “he showed himself alive after his passion,
-by many proofs,” appearing unto the Apostles whom he had chosen[4], for
-forty days, “and speaking the things concerning the kingdom of God;” and
-by Peter, “whom God raised up, having loosed the pangs of death because
-it was not possible that he should be holden of it:” and “Ye killed the
-Prince of Life, whom God raised from the dead; whereof we are witnesses.”
-
-The evidence being conclusive that such was the proclamation, how is it
-to be accounted for? The obvious explanation is, that the Apostles so
-preached because they so believed, and because such was the fact, and
-they had sufficient evidence of it: and this has been accepted by the
-church these eighteen hundred years.
-
-How do infidels account for the preaching of the Resurrection within
-fifty days after the crucifixion? _Some_ have claimed that his death
-was not real, and that he recovered from a swoon. This is disproved by
-the evidence to which we have referred[4], and, although once held by
-Paulus and others, has by later skeptical writers been “treated with
-contempt.”[5] “The whole country-side,” says Strauss,[6] “knew that he
-was dead.” Roman executioners made sure work. Pilate refused his consent
-to any removal until he had instituted an inquiry, and knew that Jesus
-was dead; nor is it possible to accept the hypothesis of a return from
-mere lethargy or trance, without destroying his moral character. This
-hypothesis may be put aside.
-
-_Others_ have claimed that the Apostles did not believe what they
-preached. To accept this view we must conclude that, without motive and
-against every motive, and “amidst sufferings the most grievous to flesh
-and blood, they persevered in a conspiracy to cheat the world into piety,
-honesty and benevolence.” Conscience and common sense revolt against such
-a theory, and it shares the fate of the other. It has, says Professor
-Milligan,[7] “been abandoned by every inquirer to whom a moment’s
-attention is due.”
-
-The _final_ refuge of most infidel writers, is the theory of visions.
-By this they mean that the appearances of our Lord were either optical
-illusions, or mere hallucinations.
-
-Some, like Dr. Hooykaas[8] in Holland, and Judge Waite[8] in this
-country, claim that the doctrine preached was _not_ that Christ’s _body_
-was raised up, but that his _spirit_ came back from Hades, or the place
-of departed spirits. We have before[9] shown that such a conception
-is an entire perversion of the language of Paul, as well as of the
-Evangelists. And Mr. Hooykaas’ argument that we are never told that Jesus
-rose “from death,” far less “from the grave,” but always “from the dead,”
-does not agree with the record; and if it did, the inference would be
-unwarrantable. When the angel said to the woman, “Why seek ye the living
-among the dead? he is not here but is risen,” they were not looking
-for him in Hades! Peter, in the passage from which we have quoted,
-distinguishes between Hades and the grave, for he says, that David,
-“foreseeing, spoke of the resurrection of Christ, that neither was his
-soul left in Hades, nor did his flesh see corruption. This Jesus did God
-raise up.”
-
-Now, by what evidence is the theory of visions or optical illusions to
-be tested? By the _whole_ evidence? By suppressing a part, and changing
-the rest? Judicial fairness requires that the whole be considered, just
-as it comes to us, reconciling such parts as may be reconciled, and
-adopting the more probable view in case of any seeming contradictions, if
-there _are_ any. Yet those who deny the resurrection adopt a course that
-could not be tolerated in any judge or jury, or secular historian. They
-_suppress_, or _supply_, as best suits their theory.
-
-Thus some of them assume that there were no appearances at Jerusalem,
-although the contrary is plain in all the Evangelists. Even Mark, whom
-Strauss treats as giving the oldest tradition, represents the women as
-going to the sepulchre. This implies that they were at Jerusalem, if the
-sepulchre was at Jerusalem. Were they there alone? Mark, in saying that
-“the disciples left Jesus when he was arrested, and fled,” does _not_
-say that they fled from Jerusalem. On the contrary, he, in the same
-chapter, speaks of Peter as following Jesus afar off, and then denying
-him. And so in the Fourth Gospel, “the disciple whom Jesus loved” is
-said to have been so near to the cross, that Jesus could say unto him
-“Behold thy mother!” They would not leave Jerusalem till the end of the
-Feast. This continued one week, the first day and the last being “an holy
-convocation.” Although they fled at first, they rallied; and they did not
-leave Jerusalem till they had conformed to the requirements of the law.
-Mark also, in giving the direction, “Go tell his disciples and Peter,”
-“He goeth _before_ you into Galilee,” implies that they had not yet gone
-into Galilee.
-
-They also assume that the Apostles believed because of Mary Magdalene’s
-faith. _This is pure fiction._ Peter and John knew that the tomb was
-empty, before the appearance to Mary Magdalene. Matthew does not mention
-her statement that she had seen the Lord, nor John the reception which
-she had. Mark[10] says that they, when they heard that he was alive,
-and had been seen of her, “disbelieved;” and Luke[11] (referring to all
-the women) says that their words “appeared in their sight as idle talk,
-and they disbelieved them.” There is not the slightest allusion to Mary
-Magdalene, or to the company of women, in the Acts of the Apostles,
-or either of the Epistles. How idle, then, is Renan’s boast,[12] that
-“the glory of the Resurrection belongs to Mary of Magdala.” Indeed it
-might appear to us that there should have been some reference to her.
-The explanation, probably, is twofold: Among the Greeks,[13] women were
-not competent witnesses; and Paul and the Apostles rested their faith
-upon appearances to Apostles, either alone or in company with others,
-they being the constituted witnesses. When one was to be substituted for
-Judas, Peter[14] said that the choice must be made from those “which
-have companied with us all the time that the Lord Jesus went in and out
-among us, beginning from the baptism of John, unto the day that he was
-received up from us; of these must one become a witness with us of his
-resurrection.” And Paul makes no reference to the journey to Emmaus.
-
-They also assume that the Apostles were in a state of mind conducive to
-misleading fancies. The reverse of this is true. It must, however, be
-conceded that the idea of a restoration to life of one who had been dead
-was not strange to them; for three[15] such instances were recorded in
-their Scriptures, and they had witnessed three miracles of the kind. But
-these were in respect to persons who, after they were raised up, lived
-and died as other men; and they were brought to life by some visible
-agency, as by a prophet in the name of the Lord, or Jesus by his own
-word. The resurrection which the disciples came to believe was, on the
-contrary, to a temporary sojourning with them, and then an ascension
-before their eyes; and it was accomplished by no visible hand.
-
-And although Jesus had predicted his death and resurrection, they could
-not understand the one, any more than the other, because they could
-not conceive how that their Messiah could suffer death at the hands
-of his enemies. The evidence upon this point is most conclusive; and
-its scope was admirably put by Gilbert West,[16] four generations ago.
-“This, therefore, being their settled notion of the Messiah, can we
-wonder their former faith in him should be extinguished, when they saw
-him suffering, crucified, and dying, and, instead of saving others, not
-able to save himself? To prepare them for these events he had indeed
-most circumstantially foretold[17] his own sufferings, death, and
-resurrection; but the Apostles themselves assure us that they did not
-understand those predictions till some time after their accomplishment;
-and they made this confession at a time when they were as sensible of
-their former dullness, and undoubtedly as much amazed at it as they now
-pretend to be who object to it against them; so that their veracity
-upon this point is not to be questioned.... They had conceived great
-expectations from the persuasion that he was the Christ of God; but these
-were all vanished; their promised deliverer, their expected king, was
-dead and buried, and no one left to call him from the grave as he did
-Lazarus. With his life, they might presume, ended his power of working
-miracles; and death, perhaps, was an enemy he could not subdue, since it
-was apparent he could not escape it, and hence their despair.”
-
-And hence we say, when the third day was ushered in there was no one of
-all his disciples at the sepulchre to welcome him. Those who loved him
-most, came but to embalm his body. Mary Magdalene beheld _not_ her risen
-Saviour, but an empty tomb; and her hurried tidings were _not_ that he
-is risen, but, “They have taken away the Lord out of the tomb, and we
-know not where they have laid him.” When Jesus even speaks to her, she
-at first supposes him to be the gardener, and says, “If thou hast borne
-him hence, tell me where thou hast laid him, and I will take him away.”
-Peter and John beheld no vision, but only “the linen clothes lying, and
-the napkin, that was upon his head, not lying with the linen clothes, but
-rolled up in a place by itself.” The other women do not see Jesus until
-after they have found that the sepulchre is empty, and have been told by
-the angels, “He is risen, even as he said: COME SEE THE PLACE WHERE[18]
-THE LORD LAY.” The two disciples, some hours after, had heard, not that
-he had been _seen_, but that certain women who were early at the tomb
-found not his body, and were told by angels that he was alive; and that
-the absence of the body had been confirmed by those of their company who
-visited the tomb. And finally, the Apostles, instead of _expecting_ to
-see him, refused to believe upon the testimony of the women, and were
-only convinced by the evidence of their own senses.
-
-[1] Taylor on the Gospel Miracles (1881), p. 17.
-
-[2] Id., p. 25.
-
-[3] “We do not say a miracle is impossible; we say there has been no
-instance, up to this time, of a proved miracle.”—Renan’s Life of Jesus,
-etc., p. 57.
-
-“What I insist on is, that a miracle cannot be established by human
-testimony.”—Ingersoll, _North American Review_ for November, 1881, p.
-514. The skeptical author of _Supernatural Religion_ in defending himself
-against the criticism that upon his theory his historical argument is
-unnecessary, in his preface to the sixth edition, says: “The preliminary
-affirmation is not that miracles are impossible, but that they are
-antecedently incredible. The counter allegation is that although miracles
-may be antecedently incredible, they nevertheless actually took place.
-It is, therefore, necessary, not only to establish the antecedent
-incredibility, but to examine the validity of the allegation that certain
-miracles occurred, and this involves the historical inquiry into the
-evidence for the Gospels. Indeed many will not acknowledge the case
-to be complete until other witnesses are questioned. This would leave
-the question of Christ’s Resurrection to be determined as a matter of
-evidence; and of course evidence enough to induce a reasonable conviction
-would be sufficient to overcome the antecedent improbability.” But he
-dare not trust himself or his readers to an examination of the evidence
-upon this basis. For when he is pressed with the testimony of the
-Apostles to the Resurrection, and is compelled to concede their honesty,
-he says (p. 1050), “The belief that a dead man rose from the dead and
-appeared to several persons alive is at once disposed of upon abstract
-grounds.” That is, his pretended examination of the evidence is a sham,
-and when he cannot meet it, it is at once disposed of “upon abstract
-grounds!”
-
-[4] See chap. xvii. pp. 101-2, _ante_, pp. 101, 102.
-
-[5] Milligan on the Resurrection of Our Lord, p. 76; Strauss, Vol. II.,
-pp. 846-866.
-
-[6] The Old Faith and the New (1875), p. 80.
-
-[7] On the Resurrection, etc., p. 80.
-
-[8] The Bible for Learners, Vol. III., p. 464; Waite’s History, etc., p.
-26.
-
-[9] See chap. xv, p. 85, _ante_, p. 85.
-
-[10] Mark xvi. 11.
-
-[11] Luke xxiv. 11.
-
-[12] The Apostles, by Ernest Renan (1866), p. 61.
-
-[13] Adams’ Roman Antiquities, p. 284; Condition of Women, by L. Maria
-Child, Vol. II., p. 3.
-
-[14] Acts i. 15, 21, 22.
-
-[15] 1 Kings xvii.; 2 Kings iv.; 2 Kings xiii. 21; Matthew ix.; Luke
-vii.; John xi.; Hebrews xi. 35.
-
-[16] Gilbert West on the History and Evidences of the Resurrection of
-Jesus Christ. Boston, 1834 (first published in England in 1747), p. 67.
-
-[17] See chap. xvi, p. 89, _ante_, p. 89.
-
-[18] “The cerements were there, but the body was gone. Whither? Had it
-been stolen and hidden? Who would have been the thieves? Friends or
-foes? Not friends; for how could their faith be made heroic for their
-crusade against the world’s unbelief by a theft and a carcase? Not
-foes; for it was their interest to prevent the disappearance of the
-body, that there might be ocular demonstration of the falsity of the
-predicted resurrection. The fact of the actual resurrection of our Lord
-is a rock-of-ages that never can be moved.”—Commentary on Mark, by James
-Morrison, D.D. (1882), p. 445.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX.
-
-SUFFICIENCY OF THE PROOFS (AFFIRMATIVE EVIDENCE).
-
-
-Holding, then, the objectors to the historical record, and keeping in
-mind that the question is narrowed down to the hypothesis of visions on
-the one hand, or to a true resurrection on the other, _what evidence had
-the Apostles and immediate disciples that they were not deceived_?
-
-First and foremost, they had the empty tomb. They knew[1] that the body
-was neither left on the cross, in violation of the Jewish law, nor
-thrown to the “dust-heap,” in violation of the Roman law which required
-a delivery to the friends as soon as claimed, but was placed in the
-sepulchre, as attested by all the Evangelists, as also by Paul. They knew
-that _they_ had not taken it away, and that if the Jews had, they would
-have been but too ready to produce it when, only a few days after, it
-was boldly proclaimed, that that Jesus whom they had crucified, God had
-raised from the dead. It was the absence of the body that first arrested
-the attention of the women, and also of Peter and John, and which, with
-the orderly arrangement of the grave clothes, induced a conviction of
-the truth in the mind of John, before Jesus appeared to any, and sent
-Peter to his home “wondering.” And these same facts (the good faith of
-the disciples themselves being undoubted), can never be explained, in any
-rational way, otherwise than by the fact of the Resurrection. There is a
-great truth in Professor Keim’s expression[2] that: “It is upon an empty
-tomb that the Christian Church is founded.”
-
-They had _further_ proof, in subsequent appearances to individuals
-singly, to the collective body of Apostles, and to the multitude of
-believers, under circumstances that satisfied them, and should convince
-us, that they were not deceived.
-
-There are several things to be considered, in determining whether they
-were deceived. First, in respect to time. There were no appearances
-till after the fact that the tomb was empty was fully understood, _nor
-till some hours after_. This lapse of time has been overlooked by most
-writers; and, from want of attention to it, inconsistencies as to
-occurrences at the sepulchre, as to the number and appearance of angels,
-the companies of women, the persons composing them, the messages received
-and carried, and the appearances to them, of our risen Lord, have been
-imagined, that are easily explained, upon the very natural hypothesis of
-several transactions of like character during the six hours or more[3]
-which elapsed before the journey to Emmaus. At that time no one had seen
-the Lord; for it cannot be doubted that his appearance would be reported
-as soon as possible after its occurrence. When Jesus joined the two
-disciples, their eyes were “holden,” until in a long discourse he had
-prepared them for a revelation of himself. Peter must have meditated some
-hours upon the absence of the body, before Jesus showed himself to him.
-It was not till after this, and after the return of the disciples from
-Emmaus, that he said to the others, “Peace be unto you.” Then a whole
-week, before he returns. Then, probably after a longer interval (for they
-returned to Galilee), he shows himself at the Sea of Tiberias. Then,
-after some days, to above five hundred brethren, at a place to which they
-had been directed to go by the angels, and by Jesus both before and after
-his resurrection. Then to James. And then at Jerusalem to the Apostles,
-whom he led out over against Bethany; and while he blessed them, he
-parted from them and was carried up into heaven.
-
-In all this, we see how they were prepared to exercise a sober and
-intelligent judgment, so that neither they, nor we, should be in doubt
-whether what they beheld was their risen Lord, or a phantom of their own
-imagination.
-
-And will any one tell us, right here, what better proof Jesus _could_
-have given his disciples, of his Resurrection? If the evidence was
-sufficient for them, it may be sufficient for us, unless we are prepared
-to say that the miracle shall _be repeated whenever it is challenged_!
-Was it essential to a reasonable conviction on their part that the
-Scribes and Pharisees should also be convinced? (Nicodemus, and Joseph of
-Arimathea, _were_ convinced.) It must be admitted that the disciples, of
-all others, were qualified to judge, if any persons could be qualified.
-What force could the belief of the Sanhedrim have added to the testimony
-of their own senses?
-
-Assume, as a hypothesis, the reality of Christ’s resurrection, we again
-ask, What proof of it _should_ have been given his disciples that was
-not given? They had the same kind of proof, during forty days, that
-they had before his crucifixion. He walked with them, talked with them,
-instructed them, ate before them, and with them (Acts. x. 41), called
-things to their remembrance, opened to them the Scriptures, and gave them
-their great commission to disciple all nations; and, to preclude all
-questioning, said, “See my hands and my feet, that it is I myself; handle
-me and see; for a spirit hath not flesh and bones, as ye behold me have.
-And when he had said this, he showed them his hands and his feet.” And to
-Thomas, eight days after, he said, “Reach hither thy finger and see my
-hands; and reach thy hand and put it into my side: and be not faithless
-but believing.”
-
-We do not accept Origen’s[4] view that Jesus after his resurrection
-and before his ascension “existed in a body intermediate, as it were,
-between the grossness of that which he had before his suffering and the
-appearance of a soul uncovered by such a body,” although it now has the
-support of able writers. The general[5] sentiment of the Church from the
-beginning has been against it. It is not warranted by the record, and
-it involves more mysteries and difficulties than it escapes. We fully
-agree with Judge Waite[6] that, according to the Canonical Gospels, “The
-very body in which Jesus was crucified, and which was buried by Joseph
-of Arimathea, is raised from the dead, appears to the disciples, is not
-only seen but felt, and Jesus himself, in the flesh, as he was before he
-was crucified, calls for fish to eat to satisfy his disciples that he
-was not a spirit; that his body was not spiritual, but material and human
-like theirs;” and also with a very different man (Mr. Barnes), who, with
-his usual good sense, says: “It was necessary _first_ to establish the
-proof of his resurrection, and that could be done _only_ by his appearing
-_as he was_ when he died;” and also with Drs. McClintock and Strong in
-their invaluable Cyclopedia, that: “According to the Scriptures the
-disciples were assured by the testimony of their own senses that the body
-of Christ after his resurrection was the same identical body of human
-flesh and bones which had been crucified and laid in the sepulchre.”
-(Vol. VIII., A.D. 1879.) Peter’s testimony (as recorded in Acts x. 41)
-that Jesus after he was raised up was made manifest, not to all the
-people, but unto witnesses that were chosen before of God, even to us
-“who did eat and drink with him after he rose from the dead,” seems just
-as decisive as the Canonical Gospels. And so of John’s testimony (1 John
-i. 1), “that which we beheld, and our hands handled.”
-
-Our Lord was in the tomb less than thirty-six hours, and his flesh “did
-not see corruption.” His body, apparently, was as human as that of
-Lazarus after he was raised. The criticism that it is not said that there
-was _blood_ seems frivolous, for there could be no living flesh or bones
-without blood-vessels and blood. Although for the time he forbade Mary
-Magdalene to touch, or rather to detain him, he permitted the other women
-to take hold of his feet, and directed the Apostles to handle him. Mary
-Magdalene saw him as a man, and supposed him to be the gardener, until he
-called her by name. The two disciples conversed with him as a man; and
-that they did not know him was only because their eyes were “holden.” His
-sudden disappearance after the repast, and equally sudden appearance in
-the midst of the Apostles, at most present no greater difficulties than
-his transfiguration, his walking upon the sea, his passing through his
-enemies when they were about to throw him down the cliff (all before his
-crucifixion), or the opening of the prison doors to two of the Apostles.
-The doors, even if bolted and barred, may have opened as to Peter, or
-those present may have been so preoccupied that a perfectly natural but
-silent withdrawal in the one case, and entrance in the other, were simply
-unnoticed.
-
-As the man Christ Jesus, he rose from the dead, and angels, as porters,
-having rolled away the stone, he came forth in visible human form, and
-with the same body that was crucified. He would have been seen by his
-disciples, if they had been “watching and waiting” for him, and by the
-guard, if they had not become “as dead men;” perhaps in order that they
-might not behold him, for he had said, “Yet a little while and the world
-beholdeth me no more.” (John xiv. 19.)
-
-As the man Christ Jesus, he showed himself to his disciples forty days;
-and then, with a body, until then, of flesh and blood, as human as that
-of Elijah, before _he_ was taken up, ascended into the heavens.
-
-Thus, in his rising from the dead, and in the change _at his ascension_,
-he typified both the dead who shall be raised, and the living who shall
-be “changed.”
-
-And any conception of him as less corporeal from his resurrection to his
-ascension than before, does not conform to the record, and, by so much
-as it makes him less corporeal and tangible, it impairs the force of the
-evidence.
-
-Each one of the Apostles had as much evidence that Jesus was alive after
-his crucifixion, as he had that Peter or John or Thomas was alive, and
-evidence of just as high a character. And this proof by facts addressed
-to their own intelligence and bodily senses of sight, and hearing, and
-feeling, was continued forty days. There is no conflict in the evidence
-on this point.
-
-Every lawyer knows that omission is not contradiction. Even when
-witnesses profess to give the whole, it rarely or never happens that
-some will not state something which others omit, and not unfrequently a
-witness is called to testify to a part only, and does not undertake to
-give the whole.
-
-This is the precise truth in respect to the Evangelists. Not one of
-them professes to state all that occurred after the crucifixion, or all
-the instances of our Lord’s appearing to his disciples. Each writes for
-the particular object he has in view. And there is a great liability
-to mistake, if one forgets that it is true in narratives in respect to
-transactions subsequent to the crucifixion, as well as before, that there
-is often a passing from one event to another with nothing to indicate but
-that they were immediately connected in point of time, when, in fact,
-there was a considerable interval between them.[A]
-
-Of the ten specified instances of his appearing, Matthew speaks of
-two, Mark of three, Luke of three, John of four, and Paul of five, or
-seven;[7] but neither contradicts the other, nor Luke’s statement in his
-subsequent “treatise,” that Jesus showed himself alive after his passion
-“forty days, and speaking the things concerning the kingdom of God.”
-
-The instances were sufficiently numerous, the time long enough, and the
-acts tangible enough, to afford as undoubted proof as that which they had
-of the existence and bodily presence of each other. Peter might as well
-have doubted the denial of which he had so bitterly repented, as to have
-doubted that it was his Master who said unto him the third time, “Simon,
-son of John, lovest thou me?” and all of them might as well have doubted
-that they had ever listened to his teaching, as to have doubted the
-commission which they received from him.
-
-The evidence that was personal to themselves we cannot have. We know they
-had it, and were capable of judging concerning it, and we can see that
-it was of a character that might be justly deemed conclusive.
-
-There is, besides, much that is common to us with them. The judgment was
-not of one but of many, and not from a single appearance to one of their
-number, but from many appearances to different persons, at various times,
-and under circumstances most favorable to a true apprehension, usually in
-open day; and it would be passing strange if each and all were deceived
-by their own senses.
-
-These appearances were never repeated after the ascension. None of the
-disciples under any excitement ever again saw their Lord as the man
-Christ Jesus walking the earth as before; or saw him coming to the earth,
-although they all believed that he would speedily return in like manner
-as they beheld him going into heaven. Stephen saw him not upon the earth,
-but “standing on the right hand of God.” Paul saw him, and “was not
-disobedient unto the heavenly vision” (Acts xxvi. 19). John saw him, in
-vision, not only as “the Son of Man” in glorious array, but as “the Lion
-of the tribe of Judah,” and also as a “Lamb standing as though it had
-been slain,” in the “midst of the throne” (Revelation i. 12-20, and v.
-5-8).
-
-Their subsequent experience is consistent, if they had been dealing with
-realities. But if all their interviews during those forty days were a
-delusion, and the ascension a delusion, it is wholly inexplicable that
-their imagination or senses never played them false afterward. They
-believed that he would soon return, just as strongly as they believed
-that he had ascended, and yet they never saw him returning, or as having
-returned.
-
-If delusions created the faith, how much more should the faith multiply
-the delusions, and such appearances (as Godet[8] has well put it) “go
-on increasing as the square of the belief itself.” Yet at the very time
-when they should have multiplied, if they were _not_ real, they ceased
-altogether!
-
-We have, as the disciples had, our Lord’s predictions[9] of his death
-_and_ resurrection (for the two events were generally referred to in the
-same discourse), and the prophecies concerning him.
-
-The greatest obstacle to their acceptance of his resurrection was their
-inability to comprehend his death if he were indeed the true Messiah. And
-hence we find that Jesus in the walk to Emmaus, opens to the disciples
-the Scriptures concerning himself, and says, “Behoved it not the Christ
-to suffer these things, and to enter into his glory?” We may well suppose
-that with other prophecies, he interpreted to them what Daniel had
-said (c. ix. 26) that “after three score and two weeks, shall Messiah
-be cut off, but not for himself;” and that wonderful chapter in Isaiah
-(the fifty-third) so descriptive of his passion, that it seems “as if
-written at the foot of the cross;” and all the sacrifices for fifteen
-hundred years; and that it was not possible “that the blood of bulls
-and goats should take away sins;” and as Moses lifted up the serpent
-in the wilderness, even so was the Son of Man “lifted up.” And so to
-the Apostles he explained the Scriptures, and said to them, “Thus it
-is written that the Christ should suffer, and rise again from the dead
-the third day.” (Luke xxiv. 45, 46). He reminds them what he had said,
-that all things must needs be fulfilled which were written in the law
-of Moses and in the Prophets and in the Psalms concerning himself (Luke
-xxiv. 44). The angels say to the women, “Tell his disciples and Peter
-he goeth before you into Galilee, and there shall ye see him as he said
-unto you” (Mark xvi. 7); and also, “Remember how he spake unto you when
-he was yet in Galilee, saying that the Son of Man must be delivered up
-into the hands of sinful men, and be crucified, and the third day rise
-again” (Luke xxiv. 6, 7). And we find that when the disciples understood
-the mystery of his death, they joyfully accepted the proofs of his
-resurrection; and Peter, who had said, “Be it far from thee, Lord, this
-shall never be unto thee” (Matthew xvi. 23), on the day of Pentecost
-could explain that Jesus (whom God had “raised up, having loosed the
-pangs of death”), was delivered up to be crucified and slain “by the
-determinate counsel and foreknowledge of God”; and that David spake of
-his resurrection. (Acts ii. 22-31.)
-
-Not only do the prophecies point to his resurrection, but as already[9]
-shown, Jesus himself foretold it as well as the manner and circumstances
-of his death; and it is more rational to accept it, than to believe
-that such an One as is portrayed in the Gospels was either false or
-mistaken. “Which of you convicteth me of sin?” has found none to accept
-the challenge in eighteen hundred years! On the contrary, as Dr. Taylor
-has said,[10] “Before the portraiture which the Evangelists have painted,
-men of every age have stood in rooted admiration.” And as J. S. Mill
-concedes,[11] “It is of no use to say that Christ, as exhibited in the
-Gospels, is not historical: for none of his disciples or their proselytes
-were capable of inventing the sayings ascribed to him, or imagining the
-life and character revealed in the Gospels.”
-
-His resurrection was a moral necessity from his own character as
-delineated in the Gospels, even our enemies themselves being judges.
-His could not have been “the richest of human lives,” as declared by
-Hooykaas,[12] nor his utterances “the most beautiful moral teaching that
-humanity has received,” as avowed by Renan, if his power to lay down his
-life and “to take it again” were at the best a mere delusion.
-
-His predictions of his death and resurrection, as we have before shown,
-are so interwoven with the entire narrative, that it is impossible to set
-them aside and leave anything to which we can assent as true, of all his
-recorded acts and words; and there is no alternative except to believe
-that he uttered them, or else to arbitrarily set aside the testimony of
-the four Evangelists, as well as that of Paul.
-
-_That the Christ of the Gospels_ should rise from the dead, as he said,
-_is in the highest degree probable_. Only by his resurrection could he
-vindicate himself from the charge of blasphemy. Without it, the cross was
-a gibbet, a monument of folly if not of crime. Without it, the sacrament
-which he instituted on the eve of his crucifixion, keeps in perpetual
-remembrance the falsity of his pretensions, his impotency to save himself
-from his enemies. Without it, the taunt of those who mocked him, “He
-saved others, himself he cannot save,” was merited. Without it, while one
-might pity him for his sufferings, we should the more sympathize with the
-Sanhedrim in protecting the people from a visionary enthusiast, if not
-a wilful impostor, and inflicting (although by irregular methods) the
-penalty for blasphemy expressly commanded by the Mosaic Law.
-
-It cannot be too strongly stated that there is no middle ground. If he
-was what he claimed, his resurrection was already assured. If he was not
-what he claimed, he could not have been the exalted character eulogized
-by those who deny his resurrection, and before which the world bows in
-reverence.
-
-If he was what he claimed, we can see a grand and all-sufficient reason
-_why_ God (if there _be_ a God) should by miracle give the highest
-possible authentication to his mission.
-
-He said, “I am the light of the world;” and the world was in darkness. He
-said that he came forth from God, and he ought to show his credentials.
-He said he was the Son of God, and that he always did those things that
-pleased Him; which he could not do, if he set up claims destitute of
-foundation. He said, “As Moses lifted up the serpent in the wilderness,
-even so must the Son of Man be lifted up; that whosoever believeth, may
-have in him eternal life. For God so loved the world that He gave His
-only begotten Son, that whosoever believeth on him should not perish, but
-have eternal life.”
-
-The great central truths which he declared in all his teachings, were the
-_fact_ of sin, the need of a Saviour, and that he is a Saviour.
-
-If sin, as all experience testifies, is universal, always downward,
-and its end when finished death, the redemption of multitudes[B] of the
-human race from its power to holiness, and bliss, and endless progress,
-as “heirs of God, and joint heirs with Christ,” was an object _worthy_ of
-divine interposition, and only an atheist should look upon such a miracle
-of redemption as impossible or improbable.
-
- “’Twas great to speak a world from naught,
- ’Twas greater to redeem.”
-
-Christ’s resurrection being established, the darkness over the land, the
-rending of the veil, the coming[13] out of the tombs, the ministry of
-the angels in the garden before his betrayal, and at the sepulchre, the
-earthquake, the rolling away of the stone, and the fear that came upon
-the watchers, were fitting accompaniments of the transactions which they
-surrounded.
-
-Nor, if some of them are not mentioned by other historians, are they
-overthrown, for omission is not contradiction, in history any more than
-in courts. Why should Josephus, who was not born till some years after
-the crucifixion, and not a Christian, be expected to mention them? And
-as to Greek and Roman writers, even Renan[14] says that “it is not
-surprising that they paid little attention to a movement which was going
-on within a narrow space foreign to them. Christianity was lost to their
-vision upon the dark background of Judaism.”
-
-And so his being seen by Stephen the first martyr, by John in the
-Apocalypse, and by Paul on the way to Damascus, are in harmony with the
-record of his resurrection and ascension, and may be said to confirm them.
-
-Yet it may be questioned if Paul would have been so absolutely certain
-that Jesus (against whose followers he was breathing out threatening
-and slaughter) said to him, “Saul, Saul, why persecutest thou me?” but
-for the previous appearances. If he would, he does not rest the case
-upon the one to himself. He gives the others first, and then adds, “And
-last of all ... to me also.” While there is a mutual support, the most
-solid basis for _our_ belief is, in the incontrovertible and tangible
-appearances which preceded Paul’s conversion; and when John would declare
-the _certainty_ of their faith, he says, “That which we have heard, that
-which we have seen with our eyes, that which we have beheld, and our
-hands handled.” (1 John i. 1).
-
-And viewing the indubitable proofs of his resurrection, in their relation
-to the prophecies concerning him, the necessity for his advent, his
-predictions concerning himself, his character and works and teachings
-from his incarnation to his ascension, the lives and deaths of his
-Apostles, the wonderful enlargement of his little church, when the
-Apostles “with great power gave their witness of the resurrection of the
-Lord Jesus,” and its equally wonderful continuance, extension, moral
-influence, inspirations and hopes, they rise to the sublimity of moral
-certainty.
-
-These things cannot rationally be accounted for unless there is a God,
-and if there is a God, as all courts of justice everywhere assume, and
-universal conscience declares, to refuse assent to the conclusion to
-which they necessarily lead,—the Resurrection of Jesus Christ from the
-dead,—cannot be the exercise of right reason.
-
-Least of all should lawyers, accustomed to weigh evidence, refuse to
-believe upon the testimony of others. As Gibson, the great chief justice
-of Pennsylvania, said: “Give Christianity a common law trial; submit the
-evidence _pro_ and _con_ to an impartial jury under the direction of a
-competent court, and the verdict will assuredly be in its favor.”
-
-We have not the witnesses before us; but it is every day’s practice to
-prove historical facts by any approved and general history, and such
-are our Gospels and Epistles; and they are confirmed by sacraments and
-institutions that continue to our times, and will continue to the end of
-the world.
-
-Nor does the sufficiency of the proofs depend upon any question of the
-_precise_ extent of the genuineness of the Gospels, or their _exact_
-agreement. Men accustomed to weigh evidence know that it is enough if
-the substance of the issue is proved, and that a literal agreement is
-never to be expected in honest witnesses. In all the great facts of
-the Resurrection, the Gospels and the Epistles concur. This has been
-found satisfactory to such standard authors in the legal profession as
-Blackstone and Kent and Story, such masters of the rules of evidence as
-Starkie and Greenleaf, and such giants as Lord Brougham, John Marshall,
-Theophilus Parsons, Jeremiah Mason and Daniel Webster, and many others
-both of the dead and the living, and no historical event rests on a
-firmer basis.
-
-Some of its logical results will be suggested in the concluding chapter.
-
-[1] See _ante_, c. 17, p. 101, and Godet’s Defence, etc., 1881, p. 106.
-
-[2] As quoted by Godet, p. 49.
-
-[3] See _ante_, c. 17, p. 101.
-
-[4] Origen against Celsus, Book II., c. 42.
-
-[5] See editor’s note to Lange’s Life of Christ; McClintock and Strong,
-Vol. VIII., p. 1055; Abbott’s Dictionary of Religious Knowledge, p. 804;
-Barnes on John xx. 21; Scott on John xx. 19.
-
-An able article by Professor Robinson of the Union Theological Seminary,
-N. Y., on the Nature of Our Lord’s Resurrection-body will be found in the
-_Bibliotheca Sacra_ for 1845, p. 292. He thus distributes the opinions
-on the subject: “On this subject three different opinions have prevailed
-more or less at various times in the church. Some have held that the
-body of Christ was changed at the resurrection as to its _substance_, so
-that it was in its substance a different and spiritual body. Others have
-regarded the Lord as having had after the resurrection the _same_ body as
-before, but glorified; or, as the earliest writers express it, changed as
-to its qualities and attributes. The third and larger class have supposed
-that the body with which Christ rose from the dead was the same natural
-body of flesh and blood which had been taken down from the cross and laid
-in the sepulchre.”
-
-This article we had not read until after writing chapter 19, but our
-convictions are confirmed by his thorough discussion of the subject. He
-concludes that the evidence of the reality of our Lord’s human body,
-from the Resurrection to the Ascension, is even stronger than that for
-any other forty days, since Jesus was specially careful to assure his
-disciples of the fact.
-
-[6] History, etc., p. 335.
-
-[A] For example, it is an entire misconception of Luke’s Gospel to
-conclude from it that the ascension was the same day as the resurrection;
-and his account in Acts makes this certain, it being conceded that both
-works were by the same writer.
-
-[7] Paul seems to have grouped appearances. We may paraphrase thus: “And
-that he was seen of Cephas; then of the twelve _on three occasions_.”
-
-[8] Defence, etc., p. 105.
-
-[9] See _ante_, c. 16, p. 89.
-
-[10] The Gospel Miracles, etc., p. 48.
-
-[11] As quoted by Dr. Taylor, p. 41.
-
-[12] The Bible, etc., p. 51; Renan, p. 135.
-
-[B] See Rev. vii. 9-17.
-
-[13] Those who came out of the tombs “after his resurrection,” it may be
-presumed, had recently deceased (for they were recognized, as it would
-seem), and they appeared only to those who, like Simeon and Anna the
-Prophetess, had been looking “for the consolation of Israel;” and not
-to those who had rejected him. Their coming was so overshadowed by the
-principal events to which it was merely an incident, that it is mentioned
-only by Matthew, and even he gives no information of who they were, or
-anything of their subsequent history.
-
-[14] The Apostles, by Ernest Renan, p. 227.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX.
-
-LOGICAL RESULTS.
-
-
-Of these we mention only the following:
-
-_First._—Since the proofs of Christ’s Resurrection are incomparably
-greater than those of any other miracle, and its consequences are beyond
-conception more glorious, it is the part of wisdom to force the issue
-upon it. The decisive battle of the world in respect to the miraculous
-in Christianity is to be fought right here, and all other engagements
-are mere skirmishes. It is well it is so. Christ’s Resurrection is our
-Gibraltar. If we cannot hold this position, we cannot hold any. But we
-do hold it, and with it the whole field of controversy upon the subject.
-Let any one who doubts or denies the reality of miracles, meet the
-overwhelming proofs of this the greatest of all miracles. If he cannot do
-it, he should yield; and it is no dishonor to be vanquished by the truth.
-If, after examining these proofs, he still imagines that he can overcome
-them, he is beyond the reach of argument.
-
-_Second._—As it is the central fact of Christianity, the keystone in
-the arch of the Christian Faith, those who reject it have no right to
-the Christian name. Strauss is so far to be commended that, when by his
-myths and sophistries he had brought himself to deny the one, he had the
-manliness not to appropriate the other. And of those of his fellows who
-still cling to it for its supposed advantages, he sarcastically says:
-“Reasons they may have, but reason they have none.” Chadwick, Hooykaas,
-Miln, Savage and others,[1] who talk of their “Church of the Future,”
-may well follow his example. If they refuse, there is as little sense
-as piety in a recognition, or _quasi_ recognition, of them as ministers
-of the Gospel, when at the best they are only popular lecturers to mere
-social or literary, if not infidel clubs, that choose to be called
-Churches or Religious Societies. This no doubt is distasteful to those
-who are looking for the time when all sects shall fraternize on a common
-level of skepticism and indifference. But if we have any colors we should
-stand by them. Fidelity to truth and to the Master requires a separation
-uncompromising and complete from all who deny Him. It is safe to be as
-tolerant as Jesus and his Apostles. (See John viii. 21; 2 Corinthians vi.
-14, 15; Revelation i. 4, 5; 1 Corinthians xv. 16, 17, 18; 1 John ii. 12,
-23; 1 Peter i. 3, 4; 2 Peter ii. 1, 2; Revelation ii. 6; Acts v. 30-33;
-Acts iv. 11, 12.)
-
-_Third._—It authenticates his mission and vindicates his claims to the
-utmost. By it God affixed the seal of his approval, and evermore declares
-as by a voice from heaven, “This is my beloved Son in whom I am well
-pleased: hear ye Him.”
-
-His teachings are no longer opinions to be accepted or rejected as they
-meet with our approval, but authoritative and final. They are not the
-speculations of sages and philosophers, either of olden or recent times,
-to be weighed in the balance of human reason, but everlasting truth to be
-received and obeyed without doubting or questioning.
-
-Since Christ’s resurrection is assured, Webster well declared,[2] as
-every man in the exercise of right reason must, “I hold it my duty to
-believe, not what I can comprehend or account for, but what my Master
-teaches me.”
-
-By this, of course, it is not intended that we are not to exercise our
-reason as to the genuineness of the teachings ascribed to him, or their
-proper meaning, or, in other words, as to textuality, inspiration,
-translation, and interpretation. In each of these departments there
-is and will be ample room for the greatest research, and the ripest
-scholarship. In respect to all these, is doubtless true now, as when
-spoken by Robinson, that, “The Lord has more truth yet to break forth out
-of his holy word.”
-
-But when in a teachable spirit, we know what Jesus taught, it is the end
-of controversy.
-
-_Fourth._—A necessary consequence from his Resurrection must be an
-undoubted assurance that we have the means of knowing what his teachings
-were, so far as they are essential to our guidance in this life and
-preparation for that which is to come. The very idea of a revelation is
-that it shall be so made known, that it can be understood, trusted in,
-and obeyed, by those to whom it is given, and for whom it is intended,
-so far at least, as shall be necessary for the regulation of their own
-conduct.
-
-_Beyond this_, we cannot claim, as a logical result of Christ’s
-Resurrection, and do not now inquire. And we find that through all the
-years since our Lord’s ascension, while the church has had essential
-truth, and there has been substantial[3] agreement in different copies
-and versions, there have always been and still are, unsolved questions of
-genuineness, translation, interpretation, and inspiration. In respect to
-the last, Ingersoll’s demand[4] that if the writers of the Gospels were
-inspired there should be but one account, or, if more than one, there
-should be _no_ contradiction, is unwarrantable; and his own concession
-proves it. “As a rule,” he says, “where several persons testify to the
-same transaction, while agreeing in the main points they will disagree
-upon many minor things, and such disagreement upon minor matters is
-generally considered as evidence that the witnesses have not agreed
-among themselves upon the story they should tell. These differences in
-statement are accounted for from the facts that all did not see alike,
-and that all did not have the same opportunity for seeing, and that all
-had not equally good memories. But when we claim that the witnesses
-were inspired, we admit that he who inspired them did know exactly what
-occurred, and consequently there should be no contradiction in the
-minutest detail.” This is very poor logic. For although “He who inspired”
-did know exactly what occurred, there may have been the best of reasons
-for not inspiring a full record of all that occurred, or an exact record
-in all respects of what is recorded; and it must be presumed that such
-an inspiration would be given as would be most conducive to the end in
-view. And a like answer disposes of his confident assertion, that “_one_
-inspired record of all that happened ought to be enough.” _He_ would have
-Divine wisdom sacrifice everything else for the sake of uniformity and
-precise accuracy in incidental and immaterial matters. In other words he
-would tithe “mint and anise and cummin,” at the expense of “weightier
-matters.” The Gospels were separately written at different times,
-according to the needs in the first instance of the particular classes
-for which they were immediately intended, and ultimately for the wants of
-the whole world. Each by itself was as complete and accurate as it was
-best it should be; and the whole taken together are as full and exact,
-as it is best they should be. And looking beyond the particular classes
-to whom they were first given, to all generations and peoples, it was of
-supreme importance that they should be _believed_; and in order to this,
-that they should be so written as not to carry suspicion of collusion
-or fabrication upon their face. Mr. Ingersoll knows that the testimony
-of four witnesses agreeing in the main points, while differing in minor
-matters, is more satisfactory than the testimony of one. If there were
-nothing to be counted but numbers, the evidence would be four times
-as strong. It is more than four times as strong. For, as Mr. Starkie
-says,[5] and every lawyer knows, “The credibility of testimony frequently
-depends upon the exercise of reason, on the effect of _coincidences in
-testimony_, which, if collusion be excluded, cannot be accounted for
-but upon the supposition that the testimony of concurring witnesses
-is true; so much so that their individual character for veracity is
-frequently but of secondary importance.” But to have this effect it is
-_indispensable_ that _collusion_ be excluded. And it is of vastly greater
-consequence that we be certain that we have (as it is conceded we have)
-independent accounts of the crucifixion than it is, for instance, that
-the inscriptions over the cross as given by the four Evangelists should
-precisely agree, or that either should have been the exact words that
-were written. In fact, while they all agree that the accusation was “_The
-King of the Jews_” (which is all that is material), no two of them agree
-with each other. But as Professor Greenleaf says, no greater certainty
-is called for. “The same[6] verbal exactness is not necessary in
-historians whose aim is religious instruction, as in recorders of public
-inscriptions.”
-
-If but one account, there would be the absence of that personality
-and variety, which we now have, and more especially the want of that
-conclusive proof which comes from independent witnesses.
-
-If the Gospels had been written as Mr. Ingersoll says they should have
-been if inspired, the objections against them, if not insurmountable,
-would have been tenfold stronger. And why should not Divine wisdom so
-inspire as to secure the best possible results? And although two of the
-writers were Apostles, and to the Apostles was the Holy Spirit given to
-teach them “all things,” and bring to their remembrance “all things”
-which Jesus had said unto them (John xiv. 26), this does not necessarily
-imply an exact transmission of all the words spoken. Regard should be had
-to the substance of things in this, as in other matters, and not to mere
-verbal accuracy, except in those rare cases in which it is important to
-know the precise language used.
-
-It may safely be affirmed that there is _no_ discrepancy in relation to
-any essential fact, or important doctrine or duty. And it is just this
-degree of certainty and accuracy, that we should expect from our Lord’s
-true Messiahship as proved by his Resurrection.
-
-_Fifth_.—By it, we know that he had power to impart to his Apostles to
-whom he entrusted the establishment of his church, and to Paul whom he
-especially selected as an Apostle to the Gentiles, inspiration and the
-gift of miracles. As the Father sent him into the world, even so he sent
-them into the world (John xviii. 18); and what things soever they should
-bind, or loose, on earth, should be bound or loosed in heaven (Luke
-xxi. 14-16). Miracles were attestations of their Apostleship, “God also
-bearing witness with them, both by signs and wonders, and by manifold
-powers and by gifts of the Holy Ghost, according to his own will.”
-(Hebrews ii. 4.)
-
-With the writings of John the volume of inspiration was complete. If any
-miracles were wrought after his time (which is questioned by many[7]),
-there are none sufficiently authenticated to be of any evidential value
-to us.
-
-But there is in every true Church, and will be to the end of time, what
-is of greater importance than the working of miracles, the convicting and
-transforming power of the Holy Ghost; and any community, by whatever name
-it may be called, that has not this attestation is not a true Church of
-the Lord Jesus Christ. The promise of the Comforter who shall “convict
-the world of sin and of righteousness and of judgment;” and “Lo! I am
-with you alway, even unto the end of the world,” are as immutable as the
-throne of God.
-
-If the Gospel had been only a “civilization,” as Mr. Chadwick terms it,
-it had never been known outside of Judea. It is because it is the “wisdom
-of God, and the power of God unto salvation to every one that believeth,”
-that it has gained its marvellous victories, overturning Pagan Rome, and
-in these later days transforming even Madagascar, the Sandwich Islands,
-and the cannibals[8] of the Fiji Islands into Christian communities.
-
-_Sixth_.—In our conception of Jesus as our Saviour, we should not
-separate his death from his resurrection and ascension. If he died for
-our sins, he rose again for our justification. He is now exalted as a
-Prince and a Saviour at the right hand of the Father, to give repentance
-and the remission of sins. United to him by faith, and changed into his
-image, our resurrection is assured by his, and because he lives we shall
-live also. As oft as we “eat this bread and drink this cup,” we do show
-forth his death TILL HE COME. “Henceforth,” (said[9] the great Apostle)
-“there is laid up for me the crown of righteousness which the Lord, the
-righteous judge, shall give to me at that day, and not only to me, _but
-also to all them that leave loved his appearing_.” “And[10] the Spirit
-and the Bride say, Come; and he that heareth let him say, Come; and he
-that is athirst let him come; he that will, let him take the water of
-Life freely.”
-
-[1] It is one of the marvels of sin and shows the effrontery of Satan,
-that Hooykaas, who is about as rank an infidel as Strauss himself, should
-be pastor at Rotterdam, a Doctor of Divinity, and entitle his book, which
-laboriously excludes everything miraculous or supernatural in relation
-to Jesus, “The Bible for Learners.” Mr. Chadwick, while admitting that
-he is not a Christian in the original sense of the word, argues against
-Strauss (with whom he agrees in sentiment) the right to apply the term
-to himself, but meaning by it only “a stream of tendency,” “freedom,
-progress and civilization.” “It may be,” he says, “that some of you
-conceive that my definition of Christianity does worse than include
-those who are at pains to prove themselves not Christians. It includes
-the dangerous classes of society; it includes the men of vice and crime.
-There is no doubt of it.” (See _Free Religious Index_ for March 17,
-1881, March 24, 1881, and March 31, 1881.) Mr. Miln recently _preached
-a sermon_ upon “The Church of the Future,” from which he said all
-speculative beliefs as a condition of membership will be excluded, even
-the belief in a personal Deity. (See _Index_ for February 23, 1882.) He
-does not believe in prayer other than communion with himself. (See _New
-York Observer_ of February 23, 1882.) If Mr. Savage has not yet gone as
-far, he stops but little short of it.
-
-[2] So expressed in a creed drawn up by him in 1807. (See
-_Congregationalist_ of February 15, 1882.) A copy of this creed was
-read at the centennial anniversary of his birth (January 18, 1882) by
-the Congregational Church of Salisbury, New Hampshire. He joined this
-church on profession of faith September 13, 1807, and never removed his
-connection. (See _New Hampshire Journal_ of January 28, 1882.)
-
-[3] See chap. xiii. p. 67, _ante_.
-
-[4] In the _North American Review_ for August, 1881, p. 118.
-
-[5] Starkie on Evidence, Vol. II., Sec. 10, and note upon Hume.
-
-[6] Greenleaf’s Testimony of the Evangelists, p. 478.
-
-[7] History of God’s Church, by Enoch Pond, D.D., p. 606. And as to Judge
-Waite’s “many cases of resurrection from the dead, handed down in the
-ancient mythologies” and by heathen writers, it will be soon enough to
-notice them whenever there shall be a serious attempt to run a parallel
-between the evidence in support of them, and that which proves the
-resurrection of our Lord. And so of the whole swarm of lying wonders,
-whether found in heathen writers, the Apocryphal Gospels, or exhibited
-by modern conjurors or spiritualists,—senseless, frivolous, for no
-worthy object, and, beyond the mystery accompanying them, supported by
-no reasonable proof. Our Saviour told his disciples “beforehand” that
-“there shall arise false Christs and false prophets, and shall show great
-signs and wonders, so as to lead astray, if possible, even the elect.”
-(Matthew xxiv. 24.) Paul told Timothy that “the Spirit saith expressly
-that in later times some shall fall away from the faith, giving heed to
-seducing spirits and doctrines of demons, through the hypocrisies of men
-that speak lies, branded in their own conscience as with a hot iron.”
-(1 Timothy iv. 1, 2.) This will be strange to any modern Sadducee who
-believes there is “neither angel nor Spirit,” but the Christian will do
-well to give heed.
-
-[8] Within the last thirty years, through the labors of English Wesleyan
-missionaries, there has been an entire moral renovation of cannibals,
-once revelling and rioting in every excess of atrocity and bestial shame.
-Now there are nine thousand churches and thousands of communicants,
-fourteen thousand schools and nearly fifty thousand scholars: and out
-of a population of about one hundred and twenty thousand, over one
-hundred thousand are reckoned as regular attendants at the churches.
-Cannibalism has been voluntarily abandoned, save by a single tribe, in
-eighty inhabited islands: idolatry has been abjured, and all traces of
-it swept away. And to-day a gentle and refined English woman, as Miss
-Gordon-Cumming in her book, At Home in Fiji, testifies, can travel these
-islands alone, mingling with the people, rambling through their villages,
-sleeping in their huts and eating at their tables, with none to molest
-her or make her afraid. (See Rev. Edward Abbott, in _Congregationalist_
-of February 15, 1882.)
-
-[9] 2 Timothy iv. 8.
-
-[10] Revelation xxii. 17.
-
-
-
-
-INDEX A.
-
-ALPHABETICAL INDEX TO SUBJECTS AND ANCIENT AUTHORS AND WRITINGS.
-
-
- Absence of the body of Jesus. See Empty Tomb.
-
- Acts and Luke, have one author, 9, 77.
-
- Acts, quoted from, by Justin, 23, 24, 26.
- when written, 79.
-
- Acts of Peter and Paul (Apocryphal), 37, 38.
-
- Acts of Pilate (Apocryphal), 34, 35, 36, 41, note 5.
-
- Admissions and Presumptions, 9, 12, 13, 22, 43.
- See, also, Renan, Strauss, Waite.
-
- After-thought, Resurrection is not an, 6, 86.
-
- Aged disciples, 55, 57, 59, 60, 62, note 4.
-
- Agrippa Castor, testimony of, 45.
-
- Alexandrian Codex, 70, 71, 73, note 10.
-
- Alogi, 47, 48, 53, 60, with 62, note 5.
-
- Ambrose, 48, note 5.
-
- Ancient Deeds and Records, are evidence, 58, 59, 64, 65.
-
- Andrew, the Apostle, 14.
-
- Angels, as porters, 124.
- at the Sepulchre, 104, 106, 118, 127, 130.
-
- Announcement, to Mary, 25, 35, 41, note 3.
-
- Antoninus, 10, 18.
-
- Apelles, testimony of, 45.
-
- Apocalypse, authorship of, 12, 48, 80, note 4, 88, note 3.
- Quotations from, 32, 81, 82.
-
- Apocryphal Gospels, 34-42, 140, note 7.
- Justin did not use, 34-42.
-
- Apologies of Justin Martyr, 18-67.
- dates of, 5, 10, 11, note 3, 18, 57, 58, 61, note 1.
-
- Apollinaris, testimony of, 27, 29, note 3, 45.
-
- Apostles, sincerity of, 74, 78, 86, 114.
-
- Apostleship, requisite for, 116, 119, note 14.
-
- Appearances, of the Risen Lord, 7, 81-89, 105-109, 115-126.
- corporeal and material, 26, 66, 85, 107, 114, 122-124, 132, note 5.
- Jerusalem, 105-108, 115, 121.
- none such after Ascension, 126,
- on the mountain, 85, 87, 107, 108, 109, note 10, 121.
- Paul’s enumeration of, 85, 87, 107, 108, 125, 133, note 7.
- sea of Galilee, 108, 121, 125.
- to James, 87, 108, 121.
- to Mary Magdalene, 105, 106, 116, 117, 121, 123.
- to Peter, 85, 87, 107, 123.
- to the Eleven, 85, 87, 107, 108, 109, note 10, 113, 121.
- to the five hundred, 85, 87, 108, 109, note 10, 121, 125.
- to the two disciples, 106, 107, 116, 118, 121, 123, 124.
- to the women, 106, 109, notes 5 and 7, 115, 116, 118, 121, 123,
- 125.
- to Thomas, 107, 108.
- why not to Sanhedrim, 110, 122.
-
- Appearance, to Paul, 130, 131.
- in the Apocalypse, 130.
- to Stephen, 126, 130.
-
- Aretus, the King, 83.
-
- Aristion, 14, 16, note 1.
-
- Ascending the Stream, 50-66.
-
- Ascension, change at, 108, 124.
- Luke’s, account of, 125.
-
- Athenagoras, testimony of, 45, 47, 51.
-
- Authority of Jesus, vindicated, 135.
-
- Authorship of Acts, 9, 46, 77.
- of Apocalypse, 12, 32, 48, 88, note 3.
- of the Fourth Gospel. See same.
-
-
- Barnabas and Titus, 10, 53, 83.
-
- Barnabas, Epistle of, 10, 23, 53.
- Date of, 10, 67, 72, note 1.
- Quotes Matthew as Scripture, 22, note 4.
- Uses the Fourth Gospel, 23, 26.
-
- Bar-Salibi, on Tatian, 47.
-
- Bartholomew, 54.
-
- Basilides, used the Fourth Gospel, 10, 11, note 4, 27, 28, 45.
- time of, 10, 28, 34.
-
- Begging the question, 7.
-
- Best evidence, what is, 10.
-
- Blasphemy, or a true Resurrection, 129.
-
- Bodily senses may be trusted, 124, 125.
-
- Brethren of Jesus, 39.
-
- Burial of Jesus, certainty of, 102, 103, 109, note 2.
-
-
- Cæsarea Philippi, 91.
-
- Caius, of Rome, testimony of, 51.
-
- Canon of Muratori, see Muratori Canon.
-
- Cappadocia and Pontus to Gaul, 9, 50.
-
- Cave, birth of Jesus in, 35, 36, 41, note 4.
-
- Celsus, first Heathen writer against Christianity, 45-48, 110.
- Date of his writing, 46, 48, note 6.
- Quoted our Gospels, 45, 46, 47.
- Theory of, 81, 88, note 1.
- Makes no reference to Cyrenius, 79, note 1.
-
- Census in Judea, 36, 41, note 8, 42, 79, note 1.
-
- Central Fact of Christianity, 134.
-
- Central Truths of the Gospel, 129.
-
- Cerinthians, 37.
-
- Cerinthus and John, 48, 66, note 3. time of, 66, note 3.
-
- Certainty in courts, 99.
-
- Children of Joseph, 39.
-
- Christian Era, true date of, 11, note 3, 12, 61, note 1.
-
- Christianity, supposed extinction of, 70.
- not a mere civilization, 139.
-
- Chronology of the Gospels, 76, 77, 80, note 5.
-
- Church at Lyons, 45.
-
- Church at Vienne, 45.
- of Rome to Corinth, 10. See Clement of Rome.
-
- “Church of the future,” 134, 140, note 1.
-
- Chuza, Herod’s Steward, 109, note 5.
-
- Chrysostom, 48, note 5.
-
- Citations by Justin and others, 23-40.
-
- Claudius Apollinaris, testimony of, 45, 51.
-
- Clement of Alexandria, 45, 46, 51, 53, 54, 56, 68, 72, note 3.
-
- Clementine Homilies, 45.
-
- Clement of Rome, 10, 15, 59, 60, 66, note 1, 72, note 2.
- date of his Epistle, 10.
- quotations in, 23, 32, 66, note 1, 72, note 2.
- upon the Resurrection, 66, note 1, 67.
-
- Cleopas and Luke, 106.
-
- Cock-crowing, 97, 100, note 4.
-
- Codex, Alexandrian, 70, 71, 73, note 10.
- Sinaitic, 70, 71, 73, note 10, 109, note 7.
- Vatican, 70, 71, 73, note 10, 109, note 7.
-
- Commentaries and Harmonies, 45, 47.
-
- Coming of Christ, 81, 126, 139.
-
- Coming out of the tombs, 130, 133, note 13.
-
- Confucius, 12.
-
- Constantine, 70.
-
- Copies, multiplication of, 69, 70.
-
- Coptic Version, 69.
-
- Corporeal Resurrection, 26, 66, note 1, 67, 85, 122, 123, 124, 132,
- notes 4, 5.
-
- Corinthian church, 10. See Clement of Rome.
-
- Corinthians, Epistles to,
- conceded to be genuine, 12, 86.
- quotations from, 16, 17, 18, note 3, 31, 32, 81-87.
- upon the Resurrection, 81-87.
- when written, 79, 82, 88, note 2.
-
- Corpus Juris Civilis (Body of the Civil Law), 72.
-
- Credibility of the Evangelists, 74-81, 99, 101, 108, 114, 122, 124,
- 125, 131, 132, 136, 138.
- Of witnesses, tests of, 75, 77, 78, 99, 124, 131, 132, 136, 137.
-
- Cross, inscription upon, 138.
-
- Crucifixion of Jesus—conceded, 12, 101.
- differing accounts of, 101, 125.
-
- Crucifixion of Jesus, surrounding circumstances, 130, 133, notes 13,
- 14.
-
- Cursive manuscripts, 73, note 10.
-
- Cyrenius, taxing under, 36, 41, note 8, 79, note 1.
-
-
- Damascus, Paul at, 82, 83.
-
- Darkness over the land, 130, 133, note 14.
-
- Day, how reckoned, 90, 100, notes 2, 3.
-
- Death of Jesus, certainty of, 101, 102, 103, 114, 117.
-
- Denial of Peter, predicted, 97, 98.
-
- Destruction of copies, 73, note 9.
- of Jerusalem, 79.
-
- Diatessaron of Tatian, 45, 47.
-
- Diocletian, 70.
-
- Diognetus, letter to, 10, 23, 27.
-
- Dionysius of Corinth, 51.
-
- Disagreement of witnesses against Jesus, 89.
-
- Docetæ, 38.
-
- Domitian, persecutions under, 11.
-
-
- Earlier writings, use of in Gospels, 78.
-
- Ebionites, 37, 39.
-
- Elders or Presbyters, testimony of, 17, note 3, 55, 60, 80, note 2.
-
- Elijah’s ascension, 124.
- His coming, 92.
-
- Emmaus, locality of, 107, 109, note 9.
- journey to, 106, 107, 121.
- was late in the day, 106, 107.
-
- Empty Tomb, must be accounted for, 104, 106, 116, 118, 119, note 18,
- 120, 132, note 2.
-
- Ephesus, tombs at, 14.
-
- Ephræm (the Syrian Father), 47.
-
- Epistles, that are conceded, 12, 84.
- quotations from, 31, 32, 81-87.
- when written, 79, 82, 85.
-
- Epistle of John, 9, 15, 123.
-
- Epistles of Paul, 12, 31, 32, 79, 81-87.
-
- Errors in copying, 71, 72.
- of witnesses. See Credibility.
-
- Eusebius, fifty copies by, 70.
- on different subjects, 14, 15, 16, note 2, 37, 38, 53, 70, 88,
- note 3.
-
- Evidence, rules of, 9, 13, 22, 43, 77, 78, 124, 131, 136, 138.
-
- Experience, reasoning from, 12, 43, 112, 124.
-
-
- False Assumptions, corrected, 110-117.
-
- Fifty copies by Eusebius, 70.
-
- Fire in the Jordan, 37.
-
- Flesh, implies blood, 123.
-
- Flight into Egypt, 78.
-
- Forgery of John’s Gospel, absurdity of, 52, 60, 64.
-
- Fourth Gospel, early use of, by or in,
- Agrippa, Castor, 45.
- Alogi, 47, 48, 53, 60, with 62, note 5.
- Apelles, 45.
- Apollinaris, 27, 29, note 3, 45.
- Athenagoras, 45, 47.
- Barnabas, 23, 26.
- Basilides, 10, 11, note 4, 27, 28, 45.
- Caius, of Rome, 51.
- Canon of Muratori, 45, 48, note 5, 53, 56.
- Celsus, 45, 46, 47, 48, note 6.
- Church of Lyons and Vienne, 45.
- Claudius Apollinaris, 45, 51.
- Clement of Alexandria, 45, 46, 51, 54, 56, 68, 72, note 3.
- Clementine Homilies, 45.
- Commentaries and Harmonies, 45, 46, 47, 53.
- Coptic Version, 45, 69.
- Diatessaron of Tatian, 45, 47.
- Diognetus, 23, 27.
- Dionysius of Corinth, 51.
- Elders at Ephesus, 55.
- Hegesippus, 51.
- Heracleon, 45, 47, 49, note 8.
- Hermas, 23, 27, 51.
- Hippolytus, 27, 28.
- Irenæus, 45, 51, 55, 56, 72, note 3.
- Justin Martyr, 23, 30, 31, 34-67.
- Leonides, 51.
- Melito of Sardis, 45.
- Muratori Canon, 45, 48, note 5, 53, 56.
- Origen, 39, 45, 51, 54, 56, 72, note 3.
- Pantænus, 45, 51, 54, 55, 56.
- Papias, 15, 16, note 3, 23, 27, 33.
- Polycarp, 45, 51, 55, 56.
- Polycrates, 51.
- Pothinus, 51, 55, 56.
- Serapion, 38, 39, 45, 51, 56.
- Tatian, 45, 47.
- Tertullian, 45, 51, 54, 55, 56, 72, note 3.
- Theophilus of Antioch, 45, 46, 47, 51, 53, 56.
- Translations, 45, 51, 69, 70.
- Valentinus, 45, 47.
- Victor of Rome, 51.
-
-
- Galatians, conceded genuineness of, 12.
- evidential value of, 82-87.
- quotations from, 32, 80-87.
- when written, 79, 82, 88, note 2.
-
- Galicinium or cock-crowing, 97, 100, note 4.
-
- Galilee, appearances, 85, 87, 107, 108, 115, 121, 125, 133, note 7.
- meeting in, 97, 104, 108, 109, note 10.
- predictions of His death, 93 to 100.
-
- Gelasius, Decree of Canonicity, 34.
-
- Genuineness of Canonical Gospels, 67-73.
- legal presumption of, 13, 22, 43, 63, 64, 65.
- See, also, Credibility, Memoirs.
-
- Gnostic Heretics, 10, 45, 51.
-
- Good Shepherd, 93, 94.
-
- Going up to Jerusalem, 94.
-
- Gospel of Nicodemus (Apocryphal), 35, 36.
-
- Gospel of Hebrews (Apocryphal), 35, 37, 40, 42.
-
- Grand motive for Resurrection of Christ, 111, 129, 130.
-
- Grave clothes, evidence from, 105, 109, note 6, 119, note 18.
-
- Greek Classics, manuscripts of, 71, 73, note 11.
-
- Greek and Roman historians, 9, 10, 11, 130, with 133, note 14.
-
- Greeks, interview of, with Jesus, 95.
-
- Guard of soldiers, 103, 104, 109, notes 3 and 4, 124.
-
-
- Hades not the grave, 115.
-
- Hebrew, Matthew written in, 15, 37.
-
- Hebrews, (Apocryphal), Gospel of, 35, 37, 40, 42, note 10.
-
- Hegesippus, testimony of, 51.
-
- Heracleon, testimony of, 45, 47, 49, note 8.
-
- Heretics, testimony of, 45, 47, 51.
-
- Hermas, authorship of, 10, 18, 48, note 5, 52, 53.
- citations in, 27.
- date of, 10, 48, note 5.
- used John’s Gospel, 23, 27.
-
- Hermas, Bishop of Rome, 48, note 5.
-
- Hippolytus, 27, 68.
-
- Historical difficulties, 65, 67, 68, 79, note 1.
- See, also, Credibility.
-
- Historical facts, how proved, 9, 131.
- See, also, Legal Presumption.
-
-
- Ignatius, Epistles of, 10, 28.
-
- Inspiration, extent of, 75, 132, 136.
-
- Irenæus, testimony of, 14, 16, note 3, 45, 55, 56, 66, note 3, 72,
- note 3.
- on Papias, 14, 15, 16, note 3, 27.
- on Presbyters, 16, note 3, 27.
- to John’s Gospel, 45, 51, 55, 56.
-
- Integrity of the Gospels, 67.
-
- Intervals between appearances, 121, 122.
-
-
- James, appearance to, 87, 108, 121.
-
- James, the Apostle, 14, 83, 85.
-
- James, the Lord’s brother, 83, 85.
-
- Jairus’ daughter, 110.
-
- Jerome’s translation, 37.
- testimony of, 45.
-
- Jerusalem, appearances at, 105-108, 115, 121.
-
- Jewish Sabbath, displaced by Lord’s Day, 81, 82.
-
- Jewish Passover, displaced by Lord’s Supper, 81, 82.
-
- Joanna, wife of Chuza, 109, note 5.
-
- John and Cerinthus, 66, note 3.
-
- John, the Apostle, 14, 15, 102, and _passim_.
- at the Cross, 115.
- at the Sepulchre, 105, 106, 120.
- time of his death, 15, 56, 57, 58, 64, 66, note 3.
- See Apocalypse and Fourth Gospel.
-
- John, the Baptist, 92.
-
- John, the Presbyter, 13, 14, 15, 17, note 3, 21, 88, note 3.
-
- John’s Epistle, 9, 15, 123.
-
- John’s Gospel, character of, 75, 76, 78.
- See Fourth Gospel.
-
- Josephus, testimony from, 12.
- compared with Luke, 77, 78.
- silence of, no proof, 77, 78, 130.
- when born, 130.
-
- Joseph of Arimathea, 90, 103, 122.
-
- Justin Martyr’s writings, 14.
- birth, character and martyrdom, 14, 18, 36, 51, 61, note 1.
-
- Justin Martyr, on the Apocalypse, 80, note 4, 88, note 3.
- does not quote Epistles, 31, 32, 33.
- on Cyrenius, 79, note 1.
- on guard of soldiers, 104, 109, note 4.
- used the Fourth Gospel, 30-67.
-
- Justin’s Apologies. See Apologies, etc., and Memoirs Intended, by
- Justin.
-
-
- Lactantius, time of, 37.
-
- Lapse of time as evidence, 13, 22, 64, 65.
-
- Latin Version, 69.
-
- Law, the Resurrection conformable to, 111, 112.
-
- Lawyers should investigate, preface and 131.
-
- Laying down His life, 93, 94.
-
- Legal presumptions,
- of genuineness, 13, 22, 43, 67.
- of permanency, 13, 22, 43, 50, 59, 62, note 3.
- of rightfulness, 13, 22, 43, 65, 66.
-
- Leonides the martyr, 51, 54.
-
- Lifting up the Serpent, 30, 89, 90, 129.
-
- Lineage of David, 36, 42, note 9.
-
- Literal Resurrection, 66, note 1, 85, 112, 123, 124, 132, note 5.
-
- Logical Results of the Resurrection, 134.
-
- Lord’s Day, evidential value of, 81, 82.
- displaced the Jewish Sabbath, 81, 82.
-
- Lord’s Supper, evidential value of, 81, 82, 96, 97, 102, 129.
- displaced the Passover, 81, 82.
-
- Lost Tributaries, 9, 67.
-
- Lucius, time of, 61, note 1.
-
- Luke’s qualifications as a witness, 21, 45, 57, 77, 78.
- compared with Josephus, 77, 78.
- was a companion of Paul, 21, 45.
-
- Luke’s Gospel, character of, 9, 48, note 5, 76, 77, 78.
- was mutilated by Marcion, 38, 45, 54, 68, 69, 72, note 7.
- quotations from, by Justin, 25, 26, 33. See Memoirs, etc.
-
- Lyons and Vienne, 45.
-
-
- Manuscript copies of Gospels, 69, 70, 71, 72.
-
- Marcion, time of, 61, note 1, 68.
- “Wolf of Pontus,” 38, 61, note 1, 69, 72, note 7.
-
- Marcion’s Gospel, date of, 68.
- an abridgment of Luke’s, 38, 45, 54, 68, 69, 72, note 7.
- proves genuineness of Luke, 45, 68, 69.
-
- Mark as Peter’s interpreter, 15, 21, 38, 39, 45, 46, 57, 61, 76.
- character of his Gospel, 76, 77.
- See Memoirs, etc.
-
- Material Resurrection, 26, 66, note 1, 85, 122, 123, 124, 132, note 5.
-
- Martha and Lazarus, 94.
-
- Matthew’s qualifications, 14, 15, 75, 103.
- character of his Gospel, 15, 37, 76 to 78, 80, note 6.
- first in Hebrew, 15, 37.
- See Memoirs, etc.
-
- Mary Magdalen, not mentioned by Paul, 116.
- at the Sepulchre, 104, 105.
- beholds the Risen Lord, 105, 106, 117, 121, 123.
- but disciples incredulous, 105, 106, 116.
- Renan’s empty boast, 116, 119, note 12.
-
- Mary the Mother of James, 109, note 5.
-
- Maximian, 70.
-
- Melito of Sardis, testimony of, 45, 51.
-
- Memoirs Intended by Justin, 18, 34, 45, 50-67.
- of the year one hundred and eighty, 45, 64.
- no others proved, 34, 64.
- no others substituted, 50 to 57, 64.
- summary of evidence, 63, 64.
- were Our Gospels, 18 to 67.
-
- Miracles, cessation of, 139, 140, note 7.
- are not impossible, 7, 65, 111, 118, note 2, 3.
- conformable to law, 111, 112.
- gift of, to the Apostles, 138, 139.
- grand motive for, 111, 129, 130.
- may be proved, 8, 111, 112, 113, 118, note 2, 3.
-
- Mythological resurrections, 140, note 7.
-
- Moral necessity of Christ’s Resurrection, 128, 129.
-
- Multiplication of copies, insures correctness, 69, 70, 71.
-
- Muratori Canon, date of, 48, note 5.
- where found, 48, note 5.
- what it is, 45, 48, note 5, 53, 56.
-
- Myths and Legends, disproved, 86, 87, 88.
-
-
- Nazarenes, 37.
-
- Nero’s Persecution, 9, 11.
-
- Nicodemus, 31, 52, 89, 90, 103, 122.
-
- Nicomedia, Persecution at, 73, note 9.
-
-
- Omission is not Contradiction, 16, 16, note 3, 32, 36, 67, 77, 124,
- 125.
-
- Opening of prison doors, 124.
-
- Order of Events, 101.
-
- Origen, 39, 45, 47, 49, 51, 54, 56, 72, note 3, 122, 132, note 4.
- against Celsus, 47, 49, 132, note 4.
- against “Peter’s Gospel,” 39, 45.
- on genuineness of Our Gospels, 45, 54, 72, note 3.
- on Resurrection Body, 122, 132, note 4.
-
-
- Pagan Nations, Christianized, 9, 10, 12, 13, 139, 141, note 8.
-
- Pagan Persecutions. See Ten Persecutions.
-
- Pantænus, testimony of, 45, 51, 53, 54, 56.
-
- Papias, character and martyrdom, 14, 15.
-
- Papias, fragments of his writings, 10, 14, and note 3 on pp. 16-17,
- 37.
- on Mark’s Gospel, 14, 15, 37, 56.
- on Matthew’s Gospel, 14, 15, 37, 56.
- probably used John’s Gospel, 15, 16, note 3, 33.
-
- Passover and the Lord’s Supper, 81, 82.
-
- Passover week, 115.
-
- Pastor Hermas, see Hermas.
-
- Part of a day for the whole, 90, 100, notes 2, 3.
-
- Paul’s conversion, date of, 83, 88, note 2.
- testimony to the Resurrection, 81 to 87.
- visits to Jerusalem, 82, 83.
-
- Paul’s conceded Epistles, 12, 67, 84, 86.
- when written, 79, 82, 85, 88, note 2.
- their great value as evidence of Christ’s Resurrection, 12, 81 to
- 88.
-
- Peter’s change of character, 127, 128.
- at the tomb, 104, 105.
- charge to, 108.
- denial, 97, 98.
- rebuked, 92, 97.
- See Appearances.
-
- Peter’s Gospel (Apocryphal), 20, with 22, note 2, 38, 39, 40, 42,
- note 14, 45, with 48, note 1, 62, note 6.
-
- Philip, the Apostle, 14.
-
- Philippians, Epistle to, 12.
-
- Physical cause of Christ’s death, 102, 108, note 1.
-
- Pilate, assured of Christ’s death, 103, 114.
-
- Pliny’s Letter to Trojan, 9, 12, 59.
-
- Ploughs and Yokes, 35.
-
- Polycarp, testimony of, 10, 23, 33, 45, 51, 55, 56.
- his Epistle, 10, 33.
- his martyrdom, 55.
-
- Polycrates, Bishop of Ephesus, 51.
-
- Positive and Negative Evidence, 32, 36, 67, 77, 124, 125.
-
- Pothinus, testimony of, 51, 55, 56.
-
- Preaching of the Resurrection,
- as early as Day of Pentecost, 83, 84, 101.
- disproves Myths or Legends, 85, 86.
- must be accounted for, 113, 114.
- theories upon, 113, 114.
-
- Preaching of Paul, (Apocryphal,) 37.
-
- Predictions of His Death and Resurrection,
- by Himself, 89 to 97, 102, 128, 129.
- by the Prophets, 127, 128.
- why not understood, 100.
- their great force as evidence, 102.
-
- Preface, 5.
-
- Presumptions, see Legal Presumption.
-
- Presentation at the Temple, 78.
-
- Previous Resurrections, 116, 117.
-
- Proclamation of the Resurrection. See Preaching, etc.
-
- Proof of the Resurrection possible, 111, 112.
- and sufficient, 115 to 133.
-
- Prophecies of the Resurrection. See Predictions, etc.
-
- Protevangelium (Apocryphal), 34 to 42.
-
- Public Ministry, termination of, 76, 80, note 5, 96.
-
-
- Quotations in the Second Century,
- from Old Testament, not exact, 24, 31.
- from Gospels, not exact, 23, 24, 31, 47.
- name of writer not given in quoting, before Theophilus, 45, 46, 47,
- 53, 56, 67.
- See Barnabas, Clement, Hermas.
-
- Quotations by Justin Martyr,
- from Acts, 23, 24, 33.
- from John, 23, 30, 31, 32.
- from Luke, 23 to 27, 33.
- from Mark, 23, 24, 32.
- from Matthew, 23, 24, 33.
-
- Quotations, by Irenæus, 45, 51, 55, 56.
- by Origen, 45, 72, note 3.
- by Papias, 15, 16, note 3.
- by Presbyters, 16, note 3.
- by Theophilus, 45, 46, 47, 51, 53, 56.
- by Tertullian, 38, 45, 54, 55, 68, 69, 72, note 3.
-
-
- Relation of Gospel to Epistles, 87, 88.
-
- Reminiscences, and not connected Histories, 77.
-
- Rending the Veil, 130.
-
- Repositories for the Gospel, 63, 64.
-
- Resurrection of Jesus Christ, antecedently probable, 128, 129.
- sufficiently proved, 112 to 133.
-
- Resurrection Body, 26, 66, note 1, 67, 85, 122, 123, 124, 132, notes
- 4, 5.
-
- Revelations, generally conceded, 12, 88, note 3.
- quotations from, 32, 81, 82.
- style differs from Gospel, 76, 80, note 4.
- sufficiently accounted for, 76, 80, note 4.
-
- Revised Version, 72, 100, note 1, 109, note 7.
-
- Roman Civil Law, text of, 72, 73, note 13.
-
- Romans, Epistle to, conceded, 12.
- quotations from, 31, 32, 81 to 87.
- when written, 79, 82.
-
-
- Salome, 109, note 5.
-
- Sanhedrim, 82, 98, 101, 103, 109, note 3, 110, 113, 120, 122.
-
- Saturn-day, Sunday, 19.
-
- Septuagint, 19.
-
- Serapion, testimony of, 38, 39, 45, 51, 56.
-
- Severus, persecution under, 10.
-
- Slaying of the children, 78.
-
- Shepherds, visit of, 78.
-
- Sinaitic Codex, 70, 71, 73, note 10, 109, note 7.
-
- Sincerity of the witnesses conceded, 74, 86, 87, 114.
-
- Sign of Jonah, 90, 100, notes 2, 3.
- of temple of his body, 89.
- of Brazen Serpent, 89, 90, 129.
-
- Silence not contradiction, 16, 16, note 3, 32, 36, 67, 77, 124, 125.
-
- Socrates, 12.
-
- Soldiers’, fabrication, 103, 104, 109, note 4, 124.
-
- Sources of Evidence, 7 to 10.
-
- Spear of the Soldier, 102, 114.
-
- Stephen’s vision of Christ, 126, 130.
-
- Substitution of Gospels, disproved, 50 to 67.
-
- Sufficiency of the Proofs, 110 to 130, 132, 137, 138.
-
- Superscription on the Cross, 138, 140, note 6.
-
- Suppression of Evidence, 115.
-
- Survival of the fittest, 13.
-
- Sybilline writings, 37.
-
- Synoptics, meaning of, 76, 80, note 3.
-
- Syria and Cilicia, 83.
-
- Syriac Version, 69.
-
-
- Tabernacle predictions, 93.
-
- Tacitus, the Historian, 9, 12.
-
- Tatian, the Heretic, 45, 47, 48. See Diatessaron.
-
- Ten Persecutions, 11.
-
- Tertullian, the distinguished Lawyer, 38, 45, 53, 54, 55, 56, 60, 68,
- 72, note 3.
-
- Theophilus of Antioch, 45, 46, 47, 51, 53, 56.
-
- Theophilus of Antioch, quoted John by name, 46, 51, 53.
-
- Theophilus, the friend of Luke, 77.
-
- Thessalonians, Epistles to, 12.
-
- Thomas the Apostle, 14.
-
- Tiberias, appearances at, 108, 121, 125, 133, note 7.
-
- Time, how reckoned by the Jews, 90, 100, note 3.
-
- Titus and Barnabas, 83. See Barnabas.
-
- Toleration, rule for, 135.
-
- Tombs, at Ephesus, 14.
-
- Tradition, 9, 53, 54, 66, 67, 68.
-
- Trajan, persecution under, 9, 10, 12, 59.
-
- Transfiguration, 92, 123.
-
- Translations, 69, 70.
-
- Trypho the Jew, 18, 19, 20, 21, 104, 109, note 4.
- See Justin Martyr.
-
-
- Uncial manuscripts, 73, note 10.
-
- Unity of Gospels, 79.
-
- Usages in Justin’s time, 19.
-
-
- Valentinus, evidence from, 45, 47.
-
- Vatican Codex, 70, 71, 73, note 10, 109, note 7.
-
- Victor, Bishop of Rome, 51.
-
- Vienne and Lyons, 45.
-
- Vision, theory stated, 114.
- disproved, 114 to 132.
-
-
- Walking on the Sea, 123.
-
- Wise men of the East, 78.
-
- Witnesses in Court,—see Credibility, etc.
- women not competent, 116, 119, note 13.
-
- Women at the Sepulchre, 104 to 106, 109, note 5, 115, 116.
-
-
- Yielding up the Ghost, 99.
-
-
- Zebedee’s Sons, 42, note 14, 90 to 100.
-
-
-
-
-
-INDEX B.
-
-ALPHABETICAL INDEX TO MODERN AUTHORS, EVENTS, AND WRITINGS.
-
-
- Abbot, E. A., D.D., on date of Muratori Canon, 48, note 5.
-
- Abbott, Rev. Edward, on Fijis, 141, note 8.
-
- Abbot, The Authorship of the Fourth Gospel by Ezra Abbot, D.D., LL.D.
- (Boston, 1880.) Frequent citations from, 10 to 48.
-
- Abbott, Cyclopædia of Religious Knowledge, by Lyman Abbott, D.D.,
- LL.D., cited, 122, 132, note 5, with 122.
-
- Adams’ Roman Antiquities, 119, note 13.
-
- Alford (Dean) 103, 108, note 1, with 102.
-
- Ambrosian Library, 48, note 5.
-
- Ante-Nicene Christian Library, 16, notes 1, 3, 22, 23, 30, 34.
-
- Arnold, Matthew, on Basilides, 28, with 10, and 11, note 4.
-
-
- Bampton Lectures, 40 with 42, note 17, 68 with 72, note 6.
-
- Barnes, Albert, on site of Emmaus, 109, note 9.
- on the Resurrection Body, 123, 132, note 5.
-
- Bartlett, Pres., on the slight historical errors, 79, note 1.
-
- Baur, J. C., on Fourth Gospel, 52.
-
- Bentley, on genuineness of Gospels, 71.
-
- Blackstone, 32, 132.
-
- Bleek, on date of Muratori Canon, 48, note 5.
-
- Buck’s Theological Dictionary, 11, note 5.
-
-
- Cannibals Christianized, 139, 141, note 8.
-
- Canonicity,—See Charteris.
-
- Chadwick’s Views of Christianity, 134, 139, 140, note 1.
-
- Charteris, Prof. A. H., D.D., on Basilides, 28.
- date of Celsus, 49, note 6.
- date of Justin’s Apology, 61, note 1.
- early universal use of Gospels, 47.
- Fourth Gospel, 17, 27, 28, 47.
- Marcion’s Gospel, 72, note 7, with 69.
- Papias, 17.
- Pastor Hermas, 27.
-
- Child, L. Maria, 119, note 13.
-
- Congregationalist, 58, note, 140, note 2, 141, note 8.
-
- Conybeare and Howson’s Life of Paul, 82, 83, with 88, notes 2, 4.
-
- Credner, on date of Muratori Canon, 48, note 5.
-
- Curtiss, Prof. Samuel Ives, D.D., on Apocryphal Gospels, 34, 35, 39,
- and 40 with 42, notes 15, 16.
- date of Celsus, 48, note 6.
- date of Muratori Canon, 48, note 6.
- Judge Waite, 35, 48, note 6.
-
- Cursive manuscripts of Gospels, 73, note 10.
-
-
- Davidson, Samuel, cited by Waite, 29, note 4.
-
- De Soto, 52.
-
- Donaldson and Roberts, 16, notes 1, 3, 20, 22, note 1, 23, 30, 61,
- note 1.
-
- Dorner on use by Papias of John’s Gospel, 17.
-
- Drummond, Prof., on Justin’s use of John’s Gospel, 30.
-
-
- Early settlements in New Hampshire, 58.
-
-
- Farrar, (Canon), 100, note 1, 109, note 3.
-
- Fisher, Prof. George P., D.D., on Alogi, 62, note 5.
- date of Apocryphal Gospels, 41, note 2, with 34.
- date of Celsus, 49, note 6, with 46.
- date of Justin’s Apology, 61, note 1.
- date of Muratori Canon, 46, 48, note 5.
- genuineness of text of Gospels, 67, 71, 72, note 4, 73, note 12.
- John’s Gospel, 27, 29, note 3, 33, note 3, with 30.
- Justin’s Quotations, 46, 48, notes 2, 4, 62, note 5, 67, 68, 72,
- note 4.
- Marcion’s Gospel, 72, note 4, with 68.
- Theophilus, 46, 48, note 4.
-
- Free Religious Index, 140, note 1.
-
- Friedlieb, on physical Cause of Death, 102, 108, note 1.
-
-
- Geikie, The Life and Words of Christ, by Cunningham Geikie, D.D.,
- (1880), cited page 109, note 10, with page 108.
-
- Gibbon’s Rome, 9.
-
- Gibson, Ch. Justice, 131.
-
- Gilbert West,—See West.
-
- Godet, Prof. F., D.D., 88, note 1, 90, 100, note 3, 126, 132, notes
- 1, 2, 133, note 8.
- upon Possibility of Miracles, 132, notes 1, 2, with 111.
- upon Sign of Jonah, 88, note 1, 90, 100, note 3.
- upon Vision Theory, 126, 133, note 8.
-
- Gordon-Cumming, in Fiji, 141, note 8.
-
- Granite Monthly, 58.
-
- Greenleaf, Prof. Simon, LL.D., on cock-crowing, 100, note 4, with 97.
- credibility of witnesses, 78, 137, 138, 140, notes 3, 6.
- genuineness of Gospels, 13, 72, 73, note 13.
- presumption of Permanency, 43, 44, note 1, 66.
- presumption of Rightfulness, 13, 44, note 1, 66.
- sign of Jonah, 100, note 3, with page 90.
- superscription on the Cross, 138, 140, note 6.
- truth of Christianity, 132, 138, 140, note 6.
-
-
- Hanna, Rev. William, LL.D., on cause of death, 109, note 1, with 102.
- empty tomb, 105, 109, note 6.
- Galilee meeting, 109, note 10, with 108.
-
- Hilgenfeld on Justin’s use of John’s Gospel, 30, 33, note 3.
- on date of Muratori Canon, 48, note 5.
-
- Hooykaas and his Bible for Learners, 114, 119, note 8, 128, 133, note
- 12, 134, 140, note 1.
-
- Holtzmann, on Apocryphal Gospels, 35.
-
- Hume’s argument from experience, 43, 112.
-
-
- Ingersoll on inspiration, 136, 137, 138.
- on miracles, 112, 118, note 3.
-
- Inter-Ocean (Chicago), 41, note 2, 42, note 15, 16.
-
-
- Kent, Chancellor, 32, 132.
-
- Keim, Dr., on date of Celsus, 48, 49, note 6.
- on the empty tomb, 120, 132, note 2.
-
-
- Lafayette’s visit, 57, 62, note 2.
-
- Landing of the Pilgrims, 58.
-
- Lange’s Life of Jesus, on cause of death, 108, note 1, with 102.
- Cleopas and Luke, 106, 109, note 8.
- Galilee meeting, 108, 109, note 10.
- guard of Soldiers, 109, note 3, with 103.
- journey to Emmaus, 106, 109, note 8.
- lifting up the Serpent, 89, 90, 100, note 1.
- locality of Emmaus, 109, note 9.
- sign of Jonah, 100, notes 2, 3, with 90.
- women at the Sepulchre, 104, 109, note 5.
-
- Lemisch on date of Justin’s Apology, 61, note 1.
-
- Light Infantry Poor, 62, note 2, with 57.
-
- Lipsius, Prof. of Jena, on date of Apocryphal Gospels, 35.
- that Justin did not use them, 40, 42, note 15.
-
- Lord Brougham, 132.
-
-
- Madagascar Christianized, 139.
-
- Mason, Jeremiah, 132.
-
- Marshall, Ch. Justice, 132.
-
- Matthew Arnold. See Arnold.
-
- McClintock and Strong’s Cyclopedia, on Cerinthus, 66, note 3.
- Pagan Persecutions, 11, note 5, 73, note 9.
- Resurrection Body of Christ, 123.
-
- Meyer’s Lexicon, on date of Apocryphal Gospels, 35.
-
- Mill, J. S. concedes, Christ Historical, 128, 133, note 11.
- miracles possible, 8.
-
- Miln, on “Church of the Future,” 134, 140, note 1.
-
- Milligan, The Resurrection of Our Lord, by William Milligan, D.D.,
- Prof. etc. in the University of Aberdeen. (London, 1881),
- Cited, 114, 119, notes 5, 7.
-
- Morrison, James, D.D., on Empty Tomb, 119, note 18.
-
-
- New Hampshire Journal, Preface and 140, note 2.
-
- New York Observer, 140, note 1.
-
- Neander, on the date of Justin’s Apology, 61, note 1.
- destruction of Church, etc., at Nicomedia, 73, note 9.
-
- New Revision, 72, 100, note 1.
-
- North American Review, 118, note 3, 140, note 4.
-
- Norton, on Peter’s Gospel, 39, 42, note 12, 56, note 2.
- on Genuineness of Our Gospels, 54, 56, 76, 80, note 6.
- on number of Copies of Gospels, 73, note 8, with 70.
-
-
- Page on date of Justin’s Apology, 61, note 1.
-
- Parker, Joel, Ch. Justice, 43.
-
- Parmelee, Dr. Simeon, great age of, 57.
-
- Parsons, Theophilus, Ch. Justice, 132.
-
- Patten’s Diaries, 58.
-
- Paulus, Theory of, 114.
-
- Phillips, on Presumptions, 43, 44, note 1.
-
- Pond, Dr. Enoch, as to cessation of Miracles, 140, note 7.
-
- Princeton Review, 68, 72, note 4, 79, note 1.
-
-
- Renan, Ernest, admissions by, 12, 13, note 1, 84, 112, 130, 133,
- notes 12 and 14.
- demands expert testimony, 7.
- denials, 7, 11, note 1, 112, 118, note 3.
- idle boasting, 84, 116, 119, note 12.
- upon Christ’s teachings, 128, 133, note 12.
- upon silence of Historians as to occurrences at the Crucifixion,
- 130, 133, note 14.
-
- Reuss, on date of Muratori Canon, 48, note 5.
-
- Riggenback, on use by Papias of John’s Gospel, 17.
-
- Roberts and Donaldson, 16, notes 1 and 3, 20, 22, note 1, 23, 30, 61,
- note 1.
- that Justin did not cite Peter’s Gospel, 20.
-
- Robinson’s Holy Land, 109, note 9.
-
- Robinson, John, the Pilgrim Father, 135.
-
- Robinson, Prof., on the Resurrection Body, 122, 132, note 5.
-
- Routh, on Papias’ use of John’s Gospel, 17.
-
- Rowe, Prof. See Bampton Lectures.
-
-
- Salisbury Church. See Webster.
-
- Sanday, Dr., on quotations by Justin, 24.
- by Irenæus, 56.
- dates of Celsus, Muratori Canon, 48 and 49, notes 5, 6.
- that Marcion’s Gospel is an abridgment of Luke, 68, 69, 72, note 7.
-
- Sandwich Islands Christianized, 139.
-
- Savage, on the “Church of the Future,” 134, 140, note 1.
-
- Schleiermacher, theory of, 81, 88, note 1.
-
- Schenkel’s Lexicon, on date of Apocryphal Gospels, 35.
-
- Scott, Thomas, D.D., that part of the day is counted for the whole,
- 90, 100, note 3.
- upon Resurrection Body, 122, 132, note 5.
-
- Scribner’s Monthly, 73, note 12.
-
- Sears’ “Heart of Christ,” 30, 33, note 3, 49, note 6, 61, note 1, 80,
- note 4.
-
- Smith and Wace’s Dictionary, 35.
-
- Spiritualists, 140, 141, note 7.
-
- Stanley (Dean) as to date of Polycarp’s Epistle, 10.
-
- Starkie, on coincidences, 137, 140, note 5.
- on Christianity, 132.
-
- Stier, that part of a day is counted for the whole, 90, 100, note 2.
-
- Story, Judge, 32, 132.
-
- Stowe, Prof. C. E., on Apocryphal Gospels, 35, 41, note 2.
- Elders at Ephesus, 56, note 4, with 55.
- Gospel to Hebrews, 37, 42, note 10.
- Greek Classic Copies, 71, 73, note 11.
- John’s Gospel, 48, note 4.
- Theophilus, 48, note 4.
-
- Strauss, David, Admissions by:
- actual death of Jesus, 81, 102, 114, 119, note 6.
- sincerity of witnesses, 86.
- universal use of the Gospels, by the end of the Second Century, 45,
- 46.
- false theories of, 7, 8, 81, 88, note 1, 106, 115.
- became an atheist, 8.
- how far commended, 38, 134.
- more candid than Waite, 38.
-
- Stroud, on physical cause of Death, 102, 108, note 1.
-
- Supernatural Religion. An Inquiry into The Reality of Divine
- Revelation. (Anonymous.) Referred to pp. 17, 42, note 14, 68,
- 69, 112, with 118, note 3.
-
-
- Taylor, William, D.D., on Miracles, 111, 118, note 1, 128, 133, note
- 10.
-
- Thomson’s “Land and Book,” 35, 36, 41, note 4.
-
- Tischendorf, Constantine, discoverer of the Sinaitic Codex, 70.
- on Commentary of Heracleon, 47, 49, note 8.
- on difference in Manuscripts, 73, note 10.
- on number of manuscript copies, 71, 73, note 10.
- on quotations by Irenæus, 56, note 3, with 55.
- on use, by Papias, of John’s Gospel, 17.
-
- Tübingen School, 8, 30.
-
-
- Uncials, number of, 73, note 10.
-
-
- Waite, History of the Christian Religion to the year Two Hundred. By
- Charles B. Waite, A. M. Second Edition, Chicago (1881), 34.
-
- Waite, C. B., admits Gospels do not copy from each other, 74.
-
- Waite, C. B., his mistakes as to Apocalypse, 88, note 3.
- Apocryphal Gospels, 35, 36, 41, note 5.
- Basilides, 29, note 4.
- Clement of Rome, 32, 66, note 1, 67, 72, note 2.
- Celsus, 48, note 6.
- Cerinthus, 66, note 3.
- Justin Martyr, 5, 10, 11, note 3, 61, note 1.
- Marcion’s Gospel, 38, 45, 54, 68, 69, 72, note 7.
- Muratori Canon, 48, note 5.
- Peter’s Gospel, 20, note 2, 38, 39, 40, 42, note 14, 48, 62, note 6.
- Resurrection body, and Paul, 85, 114, 119, note 8, 122.
- with other matters too numerous to mention.
-
- Walker, Timothy, Diaries of, 58.
-
- Webster, Daniel, 132, 135, 140, note 2.
- his creed, 135, 140, note 2.
- his church membership, 140, note 2.
-
- Warrenton, on quotations from O. T., 80, note 1.
-
- Weiseler, on date of Muratori Canon, 48, note 5.
-
- Westcott, 17, 80, note 6.
-
- Wesleyan Missionaries, 141, note 8.
-
- West, Gilbert, on resurrection, 117, 119, note 16.
-
- Whitby, that a part of a day is put for the whole, 100, note 3.
-
- Whittier’s Poem, 57.
-
- Wright. The Logic of Christian Evidences. By Rev. G. Frederick
- Wright, Andover, Mass. (1880), cited or quoted, 18, 24, 28,
- note 1, 56, notes, and 80, note 6.
-
-
- Yorktown Scammel, 62, note 2.
-
-
-
-
-
-ANDOVER PUBLICATIONS.
-
-W. F. DRAPER, PUBLISHER, ANDOVER, MASS.
-
-
-Among the Andover Publications will be found choice and valuable books
-for intelligent readers; also works for the special use of Theological
-Students and Clergymen. The Catalogue embraces works on the Evidences
-and Defences of Christianity, Devotional books, Essays in Philosophy
-and Theology, Church History, Discrepancies of the Bible, Hermeneutics,
-Commentaries on various books of the Old and New Testaments, Harmonies of
-the New Testament in Greek and in English, Grammars of the New Testament
-Greek, Hebrew Lexicon and Grammars, etc.
-
-Descriptive Catalogues sent free on application. All books sent by
-mail postpaid, at the prices annexed. A special discount of twenty per
-cent is given to clergymen and theological students, excepting on the
-“Bibliotheca Sacra” and those books which are marked by a *.
-
-Address
-
-W. F. DRAPER, PUBLISHER, ANDOVER, MASS.
-
-
-_Books Published by W. F. Draper._
-
-=Remarks on the Internal Evidence for the Truth of Revealed Religion.= By
-THOMAS ERSKINE, Esq., Advocate. Third American, from the Fifth Edinburgh
-Edition. 16mo. 75 cents.
-
- “The entire treatise cannot fail to commend the positions which
- it advocates to intelligent and considerate minds. It is one of
- the best, perhaps _the_ best, of all the discussions of this
- momentous subject.”—_Congregationalist._
-
- “This argument of Erskine for the Internal Evidence of the
- Truth of Revealed Religion, is the most compact, natural, and
- convincing we have ever read from any author.”—_Christian
- Chronicle._
-
- “No man ought to consider himself as having studied theology
- unless he has read and pondered and read again ‘Erskine on the
- Internal Evidence.’”—_Independent._
-
-=Five Discourses on St. Paul.= To which is added a Discourse on Fatalism.
-By ADOLPHE MONOD. Translated from the French by Rev. J. H. MYERS, D.D.
-12mo. 90 cents.
-
- “The aim of the author is to present an estimate of the
- character, labors, and writings of the Apostle Paul in the
- light of an example, and to apply the principles which actuated
- him, and which he maintained, to Christians of the present
- day.”—_Boston Journal._
-
- “A book unsurpassed in its department, in any language, for
- manly eloquence, thorough research, profound reflection, a most
- earnest, glowing, winning Christian spirit, united with an
- exact appreciation of the great Apostle’s character and work,
- and a wise, cautious, but bold and unflinching, application of
- his teachings to the times in which we live.”—_The Translator._
-
- “A masterly and most eloquent delineation of the inner life of
- the great Apostle.”—_Evangelical Quarterly._
-
-=_Writings of Archbishop Whately._= Published under the sanction of the
-author, from the latest revised edition; viz.
-
-=Essays on some of the Difficulties in the Writings of St. Paul.= 12mo.
-Cloth extra, gilt tops. $1.50
-
- “Dr. Whately’s writings are characterized by sound thought
- and solid judgment. Clear and solid sense is his peculiar
- characteristic. He is often ingenious, generally candid, almost
- always plain and transparent.”—_Bibliotheca Sacra._
-
- “An excellent work.”—_New York Evangelist._
-
- “The Archbishop’s writings are a part of the sterling
- theological letters of the age, and ought to be possessed by
- all the studious and thoughtful.”—_Journal and Messenger._
-
- “This book had passed through at least eight editions in
- England before its publication in this country. Dr. Whately
- is always entitled to a hearing. Never profound, he is always
- clear; never very original, he is always instructive; never
- disgustingly dogmatic, he always seems to feel a serene
- assurance that he has exhausted the whole subject, and that
- his verdict is final; always positive and didactic, he is
- yet never extreme, but always takes the middle and moderate
- view.”—_Watchman and Reflector._
-
-=Essays on some of the Peculiarities of the Christian Religion, and
-Historic Doubts concerning Napoleon.= 12mo. pp. 264 and 48. Bound in 1
-vol. Cloth extra, gilt tops. $1.50
-
-=Historic Doubts concerning Napoleon.= 12mo. Paper covers. 25 cents;
-cloth, 40 cents.
-
- About the year 1821 Whately published this Essay anonymously.
- It was designed as an answer to Hume’s objections to the
- credibility of the Christian miracles. Following Hume’s method,
- Whately gravely argued the improbability of the existence
- of the first Napoleon, and demonstrated that, on Hume’s
- principles, the testimony in relation thereto could not be
- credited.
-
-=The Contemplations and Letters of Henry Dorney of Uley,
-Gloucestershire.= 12mo. $1.00
-
- The Contemplations and Letters of Henry Dorney were held in
- high estimation by Madam Phebe Phillips. The copy which she
- used, came down to her as an heirloom from her pious ancestors,
- and was ranked, on her private table, next to her Bible and
- hymn-book. So highly did she esteem the work, that she copied
- out, with her own hand, a large part of the volume for the use
- of a friend. It is now reprinted as a precious memorial of one
- of the honored founders of the Theological Institution.
-
-=Bible History of Prayer.= By C. A. GOODRICH. 12mo. $1.25
-
- “The aim of this little volume is to embody an account of the
- delightful and successful intercourse of believers with heaven
- for some four thousand years. The author has indulged a good
- deal in narrative, opening and explaining the circumstances
- which gave birth to the several prayers.
-
- “The author does not aim to write a treatise on prayer, or to
- comment on all the references to prayer in chronological order,
- but to dwell on its nature and importance, and make suggestions
- on the most important allusions to prayer, as indicated all
- along for four thousand years. He explains the circumstances
- connected with the prayers of these holy men.”—_Religious
- Union._
-
-=Messianic Prophecy and the Life of Christ.= By Rev. W. S. KENNEDY. 12mo.
-$1.25
-
- “The plan of the author is to collect all the prophecies of
- the Old Testament referring to the Messiah, with appropriate
- comments and reflections, and then to pursue the subject
- through the New Testament in the life of Christ as he appeared
- among men. The reader will find the results of Hengstenberg
- and Neander here gathered up, and presented in a readable
- shape.”—_The Presbyterian._
-
- “This work exhibits the prophetic element in the Messianic
- argument in an analytical shape, and with peculiar
- force.”—_Episcopal Recorder._
-
- “The general idea of the book is a very happy one, and it has,
- on the whole been well wrought out.”—_The Lutheran._
-
-=Theologia Germanica.= Which setteth forth many fair Lineaments of
-Divine Truth, and saith very lofty and lovely things touching a Perfect
-Life. Edited by DR. PFEIFFER, from the only complete Manuscript yet
-known. Translated from the German by SUSANNA WINKWORTH. With a Preface
-by the Rev. CHARLES KINGSLEY, Rector of Eversley; and a Letter to
-the Translator, by the CHEVALIER BUNSEN, D.D., D.C.L., etc.; and an
-Introduction by PROF. CALVIN E. STOWE, D.D. 16mo. Cloth, $1.25; calf,
-$2.50
-
- This treatise was discovered by Luther, who first brought it
- into notice by an edition which he published in 1516, of which
- he says: “And I will say, though it be boasting of myself, and
- ‘I speak as a fool,’ that, next to the Bible and St. Augustine,
- no book hath ever come into my hands whence I have learnt, or
- would wish to learn, more of what God and Christ, and man, and
- all things, are.” “A precious lump of pure gold in a flag of
- earth and stone.”
-
- “This little volume which is brought out in antique style, is,
- apart from its intrinsic value, a curiosity of literature. It
- may be regarded as the harbinger of the Protestant Reformation.
- No fewer than seventeen editions of this book appeared in
- his lifetime, and up to the present day it has continued to
- be a favorite manual of devotion in Germany, where it has
- passed through certainly as many as sixty editions.”—_Evening
- Traveller._
-
- “I value it _exceedingly_, so vivid and so rich is it,
- on the great ideas of _sin_, and _salvation through
- Christ_.”—_Congregational Herald._
-
- “A most valuable, interesting, and instructive volume, upon the
- most vital points of Christianity.”—_Lutheran Standard._
-
-_=Haley. An Examination of the Alleged Discrepancies of the Bible.=_ By
-John W. Haley, M.A. With an Introduction by Alvah Hovey, D.D., Professor
-in the Newton Theological Institution. Crown 8vo. pp. xii and 473. $1.75
-
- =From Professor Edwards A. Park.=—“I do not know any volume
- which gives to the English reader such a compressed amount of
- suggestion and instruction on this theme as is given in this
- volume.”
-
- =From the Presbyterian Quarterly.=—“The book is honest, candid,
- and painstaking. It will be found useful to all students of the
- sacred volume.”
-
- “An able book, containing a clear and dispassionate discussion
- of a momentous subject. It stands unique in a field of its
- own.”—_Independent._
-
- “As an example of thorough and painstaking scholarship, as a
- serviceable handbook for all Bible students, and as a popular
- defence of revealed truth, it will take high rank, and fill an
- important place which up to this time has been conspicuously
- vacant.”—_Congregationalist._
-
- “It would be difficult, by any amount of labor, to produce
- anything more convincing and satisfactory.”—The _Interior._
-
-_=Haley. The Hereafter of Sin=_: What it will be; with Answers to Certain
-Questions and Objections. By Rev. John W. Haley, author of “Alleged
-Discrepancies of the Bible.” 16mo. 75 cents.
-
- “It presents, in a calm and admirable manner, the Scriptural
- doctrine of future retribution, divested, indeed, of the
- literalism with which it is sometimes presented, and
- showing its accordance with the deductions of a sound
- philosophy.”—_Zion’s Herald._
-
- “It is a scholarly, clear, dispassionate, and conclusive
- argument in favor of what is known as the common or orthodox
- view of future punishment. The whole discussion is conducted in
- a spirit of courtesy and fairness towards all opponents which
- does credit to our current controversial literature.”—_The
- Interior._
-
-_=Wright. The Logic of Christian Evidences.=_ By Rev. G. Frederick
-Wright. 16mo. $1.50
-
- “Beginning with a general statement of the principles of
- inductive and deductive logic, which are illustrated by ample
- examples drawn from the whole field of modern science, it
- advances to the consideration of the personality, wisdom, and
- benevolence of the Creator, as seen in nature; to the place of
- miracles in the Christian system; to the specific evidences
- of Christianity as discerned in the early history of the New
- Testament, and in the characteristics of the Christians of the
- first and second centuries; and to the historical probability
- of Jesus and his immediate followers having been either
- impostors or deluded enthusiasts.”—_Literary World._
-
- “The book would form an admirable text-book for Bible-classes
- or college classes, and will give solid comfort and strength to
- all readers who have any desire to be able to give a reason for
- believing.”—_Rev. Dr. Thomas Hill in the Bibliotheca Sacra._
-
-_=Wright. Studies in Science and Religion.=_ By Prof. G. Frederick
-Wright, author of “The Logic of Christian Evidences.” 16mo. $1.50
-
- “The chapter on inductive reasoning, with which the book opens,
- is as full, explanatory, and convincing as any one could wish,
- despite the fact it occupies only twenty-six pages.... The
- grand point contended for and carried is that ‘Christianity,
- in its appeal to historical evidence, allies itself with
- modern science rather than with the glittering generalities of
- transcendentalism,’ and that in its beginnings science has no
- advantage over religion in solidity of basis.”—_The Leader._
-
- “The article on Prehistoric Man, now appears for the first
- time. It is illustrated by a number of maps and cuts which
- enhance the interest of the story. The southern limit of the
- ice of the Glacial Epoch in North America is traced, and the
- connection of human implements therewith is shown.”—_Oberlin
- Review._
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE PROOFS OF CHRIST'S
-RESURRECTION; FROM A LAWYER'S STANDPOINT ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/67151-0.zip b/old/67151-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index a851fef..0000000
--- a/old/67151-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67151-h.zip b/old/67151-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index c93e203..0000000
--- a/old/67151-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67151-h/67151-h.htm b/old/67151-h/67151-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 28af84f..0000000
--- a/old/67151-h/67151-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,8497 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Proofs of Christ’s Resurrection, by Charles R. Morrison.
- </title>
-
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-
-<style type="text/css">
-
-a {
- text-decoration: none;
-}
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-h1,h2,h3 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-h2.nobreak {
- page-break-before: avoid;
-}
-
-hr.chap {
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- clear: both;
- width: 65%;
- margin-left: 17.5%;
- margin-right: 17.5%;
-}
-
-div.chapter {
- page-break-before: always;
-}
-
-ul {
- list-style-type: none;
-}
-
-li.indx {
- margin-top: .5em;
- padding-left: 2em;
- text-indent: -2em;
-}
-
-li.ifrst {
- margin-top: 2em;
- padding-left: 2em;
- text-indent: -2em;
-}
-
-li.isub1 {
- padding-left: 4em;
- text-indent: -2em;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: 0.5em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- text-indent: 1em;
-}
-
-table {
- margin: 1em auto 1em auto;
- max-width: 40em;
- border-collapse: collapse;
-}
-
-td {
- padding-left: 2.25em;
- padding-right: 0.25em;
- vertical-align: top;
- text-indent: -2em;
-}
-
-.tdr {
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.tdpg {
- vertical-align: bottom;
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.blockquote {
- margin: 1.5em 10%;
-}
-
-.center {
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-.footnotes {
- margin-top: 1em;
- border: dashed 1px;
-}
-
-.footnote {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- font-size: 0.9em;
-}
-
-.footnote .label {
- position: absolute;
- right: 84%;
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align: super;
- font-size: .8em;
- text-decoration: none;
-}
-
-.hanging {
- margin-top: 2em;
- padding-left: 2em;
- text-indent: -2em;
-}
-
-.larger {
- font-size: 150%;
-}
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- right: 4%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
-}
-
-.poetry-container {
- text-align: center;
- margin: 1em;
-}
-
-.poetry {
- display: inline-block;
- text-align: left;
-}
-
-.poetry .stanza {
- margin: 1em 0em 1em 0em;
-}
-
-.poetry .verse {
- padding-left: 3em;
-}
-
-.poetry .indent0 {
- text-indent: -3em;
-}
-
-.poetry .indent6 {
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.right {
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.smaller {
- font-size: 80%;
-}
-
-.smcap {
- font-variant: small-caps;
- font-style: normal;
-}
-
-.titlepage {
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 3em;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker img {
- max-width: 100%;
- width: auto;
- height: auto;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .poetry {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 1.5em;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .blockquote {
- margin: 1.5em 5%;
-}
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Proofs of Christ's Resurrection; from a Lawyer's Standpoint, by Charles R. Morrison</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: The Proofs of Christ's Resurrection; from a Lawyer's Standpoint</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Charles R. Morrison</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: January 12, 2022 [eBook #67151]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: Stephen Hutcheson, Bryan Ness and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This book was produced from images made available by the HathiTrust Digital Library.)</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE PROOFS OF CHRIST'S RESURRECTION; FROM A LAWYER'S STANDPOINT ***</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_1"></a>[1]</span></p>
-
-<p class="titlepage larger">THE PROOFS<br />
-<span class="smaller">OF</span><br />
-CHRIST’S RESURRECTION;</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">FROM A LAWYER’S STANDPOINT.</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">BY<br />
-CHARLES R. MORRISON.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter titlepage" style="width: 150px;">
-<img src="images/title.jpg" width="150" height="200" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="titlepage"><span class="smaller">ANDOVER:</span><br />
-WARREN F. DRAPER.<br />
-<span class="smaller">1882.</span></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_2"></a>[2]</span></p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">Entered, according to Act of Congress, in the year 1882,<br />
-<span class="smcap">By WARREN F. DRAPER</span>,<br />
-In the Office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington.</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage"><i>All Rights Reserved.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_3"></a>[3]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="PREFACE">PREFACE.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The present treatise is intended to give what the author
-has often felt the need of—a compact and thoroughly reliable
-statement of the principal historical facts to the authenticity
-and integrity of the New Testament writings concerning our
-Lord, and the presumptions from them which establish his
-claims as our Divine Redeemer and Saviour.</p>
-
-<p>The question of his Resurrection from the dead is selected
-as the pivot, because everything hinges upon it. This question,
-whichever way it is determined, is decisive. It is a
-question which greatly concerns every one. It is a question
-of evidence, and as such is especially deserving of careful
-inquiry by members of the legal profession. For, as Prof.
-Greenleaf observed in his work hereafter cited,—“If a close
-examination of the evidences of Christianity may be expected
-of one class of men more than another, it would seem incumbent
-on us, who make the law of evidence one of our peculiar
-studies.”</p>
-
-<p>As the question of Christ’s Resurrection is the objective
-point of our inquiries, all other questions are subordinated
-to it, and examined so far only as deemed material to the
-main question.</p>
-
-<p>The author has availed himself of a lawyer’s privilege, and
-made use of the researches, arguments, and conclusions of
-others who may justly be regarded as authority, and to
-whom he has given credit as far as practicable, but has endeavored
-to form an independent judgment in view of all
-accessible sources of information.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_4"></a>[4]</span></p>
-
-<p>The work is, in the main, as published in a series of articles
-in the <i>New Hampshire Journal</i>, and also in the <i>Vermont
-Chronicle</i>, from March 5, 1881, to April 1, 1882, which will
-explain the use of the common version in the earlier chapters
-and the New Revision in the later ones.</p>
-
-<p>While the proofs have been marshalled around the principal
-fact, those to establish the subsidiary question of our
-Four Gospels and the Book of Acts have been largely
-centered upon the “Memoirs” mentioned in the confessedly
-genuine writings of Justin Martyr. Justin, in his First
-Apology, so called, written before the year one hundred and
-fifty of our era, and probably ten years earlier, has given a
-graphic account of the usages in the churches generally.
-In this account he says that, on the “day called Sunday,”
-Memoirs of Christ were read with the Prophets, in all their
-assemblies. Hence, when it is ascertained that these Memoirs
-were our Canonical Gospels, we make a long stride toward
-the conclusion of their undoubted authenticity and genuineness.</p>
-
-<p>To all questions of evidence which arise, the author applies
-legal principles and presumptions derived from experience
-and constantly acted upon in courts of justice. He asks of
-the reader a patient perusal to the end, for he confidently
-believes that the vital fact of Christ’s Resurrection, with all
-the grand consequences which necessarily follow it, is as
-susceptible of proof, from undoubted historical facts and solid
-argument, as any other event in history.</p>
-
-<p>The work is written for busy men in all the walks of life,
-and the writer has endeavored to make himself understood.</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">Charles R. Morrison.</span></p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Manchester, N. H.</span>, August, 1882.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_5"></a>[5]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CONTENTS.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<table summary="Contents">
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr smaller">CHAPTER</td>
- <td></td>
- <td class="tdpg smaller">PAGE</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">I.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Sources of Evidence</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_I">7</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">II.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Admissions and Presumptions</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_II">12</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">III.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Papias and Justin Martyr</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_III">14</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IV.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">The Memoirs intended by Justin Martyr</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_IV">18</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">V.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Quotations and Citations</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_V">23</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VI.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Justin’s Use of the Fourth Gospel</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_VI">30</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VII.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">No others proved</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_VII">34</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VIII.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Presumption of Permanency</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_VIII">43</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IX.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">The Memoirs of the Year One Hundred And Eighty</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_IX">45</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">X.</td>
- <td> <span class="smcap">Ascending the Stream</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_X">50</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XI.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Still ascending the Stream</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XI">57</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XII.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">In their proper Repositories</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XII">63</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIII.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Integrity of the Gospels</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII">67</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIV.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">The Credibility of the Evangelists</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIV">74</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XV.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">The Apocalypse and the Four Epistles</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XV">81</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XVI.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">His Predictions concerning Himself</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVI">89</a><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_6"></a>[6]</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XVII.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Order of Events</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVII">101</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XVIII.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Sufficiency of the Proofs</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVIII">110</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="smaller">(<i>False Assumptions.</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdpg"></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIX.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Sufficiency of the Proofs</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIX">120</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr"></td>
- <td class="smaller">(<i>Affirmative Evidence.</i>)</td>
- <td class="tdpg"></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XX.</td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Logical Results</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XX">134</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr"></td>
- <td><span class="smcap">Index</span></td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#INDEX_A">143</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_7"></a>[7]</span></p>
-
-<h1><span class="smaller">THE</span>
-PROOFS OF CHRIST’S RESURRECTION.</h1>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I">CHAPTER I.<br />
-<span class="smaller">SOURCES OF EVIDENCE.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>It is a characteristic of all who deny this and all other
-miracles, that they beg the whole question to begin with.
-They assume as an axiom that a miracle is impossible, or
-impossible to be proved by human testimony. Or, to put it
-more mildly, in the language of one of their number (Renan<a id="FNanchor_1" href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a>),
-“neither men of the people nor men of the world are competent
-to prove it. Great precaution and a long habit of
-scientific research are requisite.” If these are sound axioms,
-it should be a matter of indifference who were the witnesses,
-or what their credibility or means of knowledge, since at the
-best they were but human, and it is not claimed that they
-were experts or <i>savans</i> after the modern skeptical school,
-although they might be expected to know whether one who
-walked with them, and to whose instructions they listened,
-and from whom they received their commission, were dead
-or alive.</p>
-
-<p>It is also a comfortable assumption on their part that no
-one is a scholar who does not agree with their opinion, and
-many young men who would not be thought to be behind the
-times are misled by their confident boasting. “No modern
-theologian,” says Strauss,<a id="FNanchor_2" href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> “who is also a scholar, now considers
-any of the four Gospels to be the work of its pretended<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_8"></a>[8]</span>
-author, or in fact to be by an Apostle or colleague of an
-Apostle.” The logic of this is, that if any one does so
-consider them, he is not a scholar. The same kind of
-scholarship and habit of thinking that induced this wise
-conclusion brought him at last to the denial of the existence
-of a personal God or a future life. His experience is instructive,
-and shows the inevitable tendency of all reasoning that
-denies the possibility of a miracle or a divine revelation.
-Mill’s hard logic cannot well be resisted. “Once admit a
-God, and the production, by his direct volition, of an effect
-which in any case owed its origin to his creative will, is no
-more a purely arbitrary hypothesis to account for the past,
-but must be reckoned with as a serious possibility.” If, then,
-a miracle may occur, it may be proved<a id="FNanchor_3" href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">[A]</a> by human testimony,
-for the very motive or reason for its occurrence, or, at least
-the principal reason, must be its value as an attestation.</p>
-
-<p>And the immense labor which the Tübingen school and
-every class of skeptics have bestowed in attempts to disprove
-the authorship of the Four Gospels, shows that they have not
-much confidence in their axioms after all. Why so anxious as
-to the witnesses, if it is immaterial who they are, or what
-they testify to? If a miracle cannot be proved by <i>any</i>
-evidence, why have they multiplied books to prove or disprove
-the authorship of the gospels?</p>
-
-<h3>THE BEST EVIDENCE.</h3>
-
-<p>The best evidence of which the subject admits, is all that
-is required in courts; and it is sufficient in matters of the
-highest concern, even in cases of life and death, that a fact
-be proved beyond a reasonable doubt. The best evidence to
-Christ’s disciples of his resurrection, was that of their own
-senses. This evidence we cannot have. We are in the
-position, in some respects, of jurors, who must decide not
-from their own knowledge, but upon the testimony of others.
-We have not, however, the witnesses upon the stand, but<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_9"></a>[9]</span>
-only what may be regarded as their depositions, and it is
-made a question whether the writings produced are their
-depositions.</p>
-
-<p>The question, then, in this stage is, who were the writers
-of the Four Gospels and the book of Acts? As to the latter,
-the writer claims to have written a former treatise, and it
-seems to be taken by both parties to the controversy, that
-the same person (whoever he was) wrote both books, so that
-any evidence of Luke’s authorship of the third Gospel, is
-evidence of his authorship of Acts, and <i>vice versa</i>. And the
-same is true in respect to the Fourth Gospel and the First
-Epistle of John.</p>
-
-<p>The best evidence as to the authorship of any of these
-books which the nature of the subject admits of, is from history
-and tradition, including in these terms quotations,
-citations, harmonies, commentaries, translations, and manuscripts.</p>
-
-<p>There are two modes of presenting this evidence. One is
-to begin with their present acknowledged acceptance, and
-ascend the stream; the other is to strike tributaries, as near
-their source as we are able, and descend to the river. The
-latter will be adopted here in the first instance, and ultimately
-both modes of proof.</p>
-
-<h3>LOST TRIBUTARIES.</h3>
-
-<p>One hundred years from the crucifixion, churches had been
-established in all the cities and in many of the villages of the
-Roman Empire, from Cappadocia and Pontus on the east, to
-Gaul on the west, and Christians were very numerous.
-Tacitus describes those at Rome at the time of Nero’s
-barbarity, as “a great multitude,” and Pliny, in his letter
-to Trajan, <i>cir.</i> A.D. 110, affirms that the heathen temples
-were almost deserted, so that the sacred victims scarcely
-found any purchasers, and that the “superstition,” as he
-termed it, not only infected the cities, but had even spread
-into the villages, of Pontus and Bithynia (Gibbon, p. 576).<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_10"></a>[10]</span>
-Hence persons unacquainted with the subject might suppose
-that it would be easy to adduce abundant proof from writers
-of the first century, as to what memoirs of our Lord, if any,
-were in the churches at the time Pliny wrote his celebrated
-letter. Such, however, is not the fact.</p>
-
-<p>There is no <i>direct</i> historical testimony known to be
-earlier than the first apology<a id="FNanchor_4" href="#Footnote_4" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> of Justin Martyr to the
-Roman Emperor, <i>cir.</i> A.D. 139. There are certain fragments
-written by Papias, Bishop of Hierapolis, which
-may be of an earlier date, but this is uncertain. There
-are also quotations apparently from the third and fourth
-Gospels, by Basilides,<a id="FNanchor_5" href="#Footnote_5" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> the Gnostic heretic who flourished
-at Alexandria as early as A.D. 125. There is an epistle
-to the Philippian church, attributed to Polycarp which
-Dean Stanley thinks dates about A.D. 130. Its genuineness
-is not universally admitted. There is an epistle,
-conceded to be genuine, from the church at Rome to the
-church at Corinth, of the probable date of A.D. 95. There
-are epistles attributed by some to Ignatius, who suffered
-martyrdom, <i>cir.</i> A.D. 107, but their genuineness is controverted.
-There are in addition three other writings known as
-the Epistle of Barnabas, the Letter to Diognetus, and the
-Pastor Hermas. They are by unknown authors, and of
-uncertain date, but were probably written in the latter part
-of the first or the first part of the second century.</p>
-
-<p>And these are all that have come down to us in any form
-from the first one hundred years after the crucifixion. That
-we have no more is easily explained. This period was one of
-intense activity and violent persecutions. Five (as some
-reckon them) of the ten general persecutions were within<a id="FNanchor_6" href="#Footnote_6" class="fnanchor">[5]</a>
-this period. The first was under Nero, A.D. 64, the second
-under Domitian, A.D. 95, the third under Trajan, A.D. 100,
-the fourth under Antoninus the Philosopher, and the fifth
-under Severus, A.D. 127; and, as some of these continued
-several years, there was scarcely an intermission for three-quarters
-of a century. The horrible tortures and cruel<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_11"></a>[11]</span>
-deaths under Nero are well-known, and, under Domitian,
-forty thousand were supposed to have suffered martyrdom.</p>
-
-<p>It is no matter of surprise, therefore, that so little has
-reached us from this early period. Christians were making
-history, not writing it, and of their writings the most
-perished. There were hundreds and thousands who well
-knew what memoirs of our Lord were accepted by the
-churches in this period, from whose lips no voice comes
-except in the volume of universal tradition.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_1" href="#FNanchor_1" class="label">[1]</a> Renan’s Life of Jesus, p. 43.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_2" href="#FNanchor_2" class="label">[2]</a> The Old Faith and the New (1874), p. 45.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_3" href="#FNanchor_3" class="label">[A]</a> See also <i>post</i>, <a href="#CHAPTER_XVIII">c. 18</a>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_4" href="#FNanchor_4" class="label">[3]</a> A.D. 138 or 139 is the date most usually assigned to this most important
-work, although some place it as late as A.D. 150. If his statement
-in it that “Christ was born 150 years ago” were to be taken strictly, it
-would make its date A.D. 146 or A.D. 144, according as we allow four or
-six years as the error for the beginning of the true Christian era; but he
-may have used the number in a general way. His martyrdom is variously
-stated at A.D. 165 and A.D. 167.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_5" href="#FNanchor_5" class="label">[4]</a> That the quotations were by Basilides himself Matthew Arnold’s
-reasoning seems entirely satisfactory, and “no one” he says, “who had
-not a theory to serve would ever dream of doubting it.” Perhaps it may
-be permitted to regard Matthew Arnold as a “scholar;” and see Abbot’s
-“Fourth Gospel,” Boston (1880), p. 86. See also <i>post</i>, <a href="#CHAPTER_V">c. 5</a>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_6" href="#FNanchor_6" class="label">[5]</a> Buck’s Theological Dictionary, and Vol. VII of M’Clintock and Strong’s
-Cyclopedia, p. 966.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_12"></a>[12]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II.<br />
-<span class="smaller">ADMISSIONS AND PRESUMPTIONS.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>With the somewhat scanty and inconclusive evidence
-from writings of the first one hundred years from the crucifixion,
-are there any facts that are conceded, and any presumptions
-from them? There are concessions, and from
-what motives is immaterial, since there is no doubt of the
-existence of the facts that are admitted even by those who
-deny the authenticity of the Gospels. Says Renan<a id="FNanchor_7" href="#Footnote_7" class="fnanchor">[1]</a>: “Not
-the slightest doubt has been raised by serious criticism
-against the authenticity of the Epistle to the Galatians, the
-two Epistles to the Corinthians, or the Epistle to the
-Romans; while the arguments on which are founded the
-attacks on the two Epistles to the Thessalonians, and that to
-the Philippians, are without value.” And it may be added
-that the genuineness of the Book of Revelations is conceded
-and insisted upon by most of his way of thinking.</p>
-
-<p>Now, from the four Epistles against whose authenticity “not
-the slightest doubt has been raised by serious criticism,” and
-the writings of Josephus, Tacitus and Pliny, these facts are
-as well established as any facts of history can possibly be
-established:—Jesus Christ was born in Judea in the days of
-Herod, and was crucified under Pontius Pilate. He was a
-most extraordinary character, and a wonderful teacher. He
-gathered disciples, of whom twelve were called Apostles.
-After his death, his followers were formed into numerous
-churches, which, in a few years, extended into all parts of the
-then known world, and of which there has been a continuous
-succession till now. If, from their disciples, we know something
-of the life and teachings of Confucius and Socrates, we
-should expect as much concerning him whose advent revolutionized
-the world, within three centuries overturned the old<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_13"></a>[13]</span>
-pagan superstitions throughout the Roman Empire, and is
-still the greatest moral power of the most enlightened nations
-of the earth. But, if there were any accepted memoirs of
-him in that first hundred years from his crucifixion, what has
-become of them? It is incredible that they should have
-dropped out of existence and there be no history or tradition
-of it. It is incredible that they should have been lost
-to churches having a continuous life, or that others should
-have been substituted for them, and there be no trace
-of their disappearance or of a substitution. In the
-churches in every period, the old and the young were
-together. How, then, was displacement and substitution
-possible without protest? How was the loss of accepted
-memoirs possible, so long as there was a continued succession
-of teachers? Yet none have reached our time other than
-those which have come to us through all the centuries as
-authentic writings of those whose names they bear.</p>
-
-<p>By the law of the “survival of the fittest,” all other productions
-making any pretensions to such a character perished
-long ago, only fragments of them remain, and our four Gospels
-are in the churches. There is, therefore, to begin with,
-the strongest presumption in their favor. “It is,” says
-Professor Greenleaf,<a id="FNanchor_8" href="#Footnote_8" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> “for the objector to show them spurious;
-for on him, by the plainest rules of law, lies the burden
-of proof.” And from what has appeared it is plain that this
-“burden” is a very heavy one.<a id="FNanchor_9" href="#Footnote_9" class="fnanchor">[3]</a></p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_7" href="#FNanchor_7" class="label">[1]</a> Renan’s Life of Jesus, p. 35.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_8" href="#FNanchor_8" class="label">[2]</a> The Testimony of the Four Evangelists (p. 28, section 10), by Simon
-Greenleaf, LL.D., 1846. His standard work on evidence is in every lawyer’s
-library.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_9" href="#FNanchor_9" class="label">[3]</a> See also <i>post</i>, <a href="#CHAPTER_VIII">c. 8</a>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_14"></a>[14]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III.<br />
-<span class="smaller">PAPIAS AND JUSTIN MARTYR.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The fact of the early reception, by the churches, of
-Memoirs of Christ deemed authentic, probable in itself without
-any proof, is conclusively proved by writings and to which
-reference has been made, particularly those of Papias and
-Justin Martyr.</p>
-
-<p>Papias was bishop of Hierapolis, in Phrygia, in the first
-part of the second century of the Christian era. Though of
-moderate capacity, and entertaining extravagant ideas of the
-millennium, he was entirely honest, and there is no reason to
-question his testimony as to what he was told in respect to
-Matthew and Mark. He suffered martyrdom about A.D.
-163. From fragments of his writings found in Eusebius and
-in the works of Irenæus, it appears that “John the Presbyter”
-gave him information in respect to the First and Second
-Gospels.</p>
-
-<p>There is a difference of opinion as to whether this John
-was John the Apostle. Eusebius held that he was not, and
-says that in his day (264-340) there were two tombs at Ephesus,
-both of which were called John’s. The question of identity
-is not very material. Papias gives, in explanation, that
-he imagined that “what was to be got from books” concerning
-the Lord, was not as profitable to him “as what
-came from the living and abiding voice.” For this reason,
-he says, “If, then, any one who had attended on the elders
-came, I asked minutely after their sayings, what Andrew or
-Peter said, or what was said by Philip, or by Thomas, or by
-James, or by John, or by Matthew, or by any other of the
-Lord’s disciples,<a id="FNanchor_10" href="#Footnote_10" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> which things Aristion and the Presbyter
-John, the disciples of the Lord, say.”</p>
-
-<p>From this, it is plain there were then accredited “books”<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_15"></a>[15]</span>
-concerning our Lord. And two of these books are identified
-by his statement of what he was told by John the Presbyter,
-that “Mark, having become the interpreter of Peter, wrote
-down accurately whatever he remembered of Peter’s instructions,”
-whom he accompanied (it was not, however, in exact
-order that he related the sayings or deeds of Christ), “and
-Matthew put together the oracles in the Hebrew language,
-and each one interpreted them as best he could.”
-These extracts prove that the First and Second Gospels were
-extant, not only when Papias wrote, and when the Presbyter
-gave him the information, but also some time before. His
-informant, if <i>not</i> John the Apostle, must have been one who
-had seen the Apostles or some of them, so that the testimony
-is very direct.</p>
-
-<p>That Papias does not mention Luke’s Gospel, or John’s
-Gospel, proves nothing except that he had no occasion to say
-anything about them, in that connection. The Fourth Gospel
-may not have been <i>written</i> at the time of the interview
-with the Presbyter, for the Apostle John lived until about the
-year 100, and he wrote his Gospel very late in life. It is not
-quoted by Clement.</p>
-
-<p>And as to the Third Gospel, the occasion for the writing of
-it is distinctly stated by the author himself, who was well
-known. And so of the Fourth Gospel; its authorship modestly
-but clearly appears upon its face. We have mere fragments
-from Papias not exceeding two or three hundred lines
-all told. In some of his five books (almost the whole of which
-have been lost) there may have been references to both Luke
-and John. Eusebius<a id="FNanchor_11" href="#Footnote_11" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> states that Papias made use of testimonials
-from the First Epistle of John; but as he does not
-say that Papias ascribed that Epistle to John, his use of it
-only proves that it was extant when he wrote. There is,
-however, a quotation in one of these fragments (v), “In my
-Father’s house are many mansions,” which is literally as in
-John xiv. 2, and so, presumptively, was taken from it. It is
-an interesting fact that the only <i>quotations</i> other than this,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_16"></a>[16]</span>
-by Papias (if those in this fragment are indeed by him), are
-as in verses 25 to 28 of the 15th of First Corinthians, a
-chapter which will be found to have great weight in another
-part of this discussion.</p>
-
-<p>Papias, therefore, probably<a id="FNanchor_12" href="#Footnote_12" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> quotes the Fourth Gospel. But,
-without such quotation, no inference could be drawn against
-Luke or John from mere silence. Papias would still prove
-the First and Second Gospels, leaving the Third and Fourth to
-stand upon the presumption in their favor stated in our last
-chapter, and upon positive evidence from other sources.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_10" href="#FNanchor_10" class="label">[1]</a> The quotations from Papias are from Vol. I, of the Ante-Nicene
-Christian Library, translated by Rev. Alexander Roberts, D.D., and James
-Donaldson, LL.D.; and so in respect to any of the Apostolic Fathers.
-The editors say the words, “Which things, <i>etc.</i>,” are usually translated,
-“What Aristion and John say,” and that such translation is admissible,
-but that they more naturally mean that John and Aristion, even at the time
-of Justin’s writing, were telling him of the sayings of the Lord.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_11" href="#FNanchor_11" class="label">[2]</a> Eusebius B. III., c. 39.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_12" href="#FNanchor_12" class="label">[3]</a> The editors call it “mere guess-work” (Ante-Nicene Christian Library,
-Vol. I., p. 444, note). Eusebius makes no mention of it, though his
-silence is not conclusive against it.</p>
-
-<p>The question is of sufficient importance to warrant the giving of the entire
-passage from Irenæus in which the quotations appear. It is the last
-of five short chapters of his work on Heresies. Certain passages are
-printed in italics, which the reader is specially asked to consider: “As
-the <i>presbyters</i> say, then those who were deemed worthy of an abode in
-heaven shall go there, others shall enjoy the delights of Paradise, and others
-shall possess the splendor of the city, for everywhere the Saviour will
-be seen, according as they shall be worthy who see Him. But there is
-this distinction between the habitation of those who produce an hundred-fold,
-and those who produce sixty-fold, and who produce thirty-fold;
-for the first will be taken up into the heavens, the second class will dwell
-in Paradise, and the last will inhabit the city; and that on this account
-the Lord said, ‘In my Father’s house are many mansions;’ for all things
-belong to God, who supplies all with a suitable dwelling-place, even as
-His word says, that a share is given to all by the Father, according as
-each one is or shall be worthy. And this is the couch in which they shall
-recline who feast, being invited to the wedding. <i>The Presbyters, the disciples
-of the Apostles</i>, say that this is the gradation and arrangement of
-those who are saved, and that they advance through steps of this nature;
-and that, moreover, they ascend through the Spirit to the Son, and
-through the Son to the Father; and that in due time the Son will yield up
-His work to the Father, even as it is said by the apostle, ‘For He must
-reign till He hath put all enemies under His feet. The last enemy that
-shall be destroyed is death.’ For in the times of the kingdom the just
-man who is on the earth shall forget to die. But when He saith all
-things are put under Him, it is manifest that He is excepted which did put
-all things under Him. And when all things shall be subdued unto Him,
-then shall the Son also Himself be subject unto Him that put all things
-under Him, that the Son may be all in all.” There being no question of
-the genuineness of this passage from Irenæus, by whom were the quotations,
-found in it? Now while it is possible they were by <i>Irenæus</i>, to illustrate
-what ‘the Presbyters, the disciples of the Apostles,’ maintained,
-the more obvious and natural interpretation is, that they were cited by those
-Presbyters themselves. This being so, it is not of much consequence
-whether Irenæus had this information of these views and citations, from
-Papias (from whom he had obtained like information upon other subjects
-as to the sayings of the Presbyters), or whether Irenæus had this information
-of their sayings from other sources. In either event the quotations
-were made <i>either</i> by Papias, his contemporaries, or predecessors, “disciples
-of the Apostles.” And of this opinion are Charteris (Canonicity,
-c. 17, of the Introduction), and Routh, Tischendorf, Wescott, Dorner and
-Riggenback, as cited in “Supernatural Religion” p. 604.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_17"></a>[17]</span></p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_18"></a>[18]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV.<br />
-<span class="smaller">THE MEMOIRS INTENDED BY JUSTIN MARTYR.<a id="FNanchor_13" href="#Footnote_13" class="fnanchor">[1]</a></span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Great importance attaches to them in connection with
-other facts.</p>
-
-<p>The date of Justin’s birth is uncertain, being placed as
-early as A.D. 85, and as late as A.D. 114; Rev. Mr. Wright
-says about A.D. 100. His martyrdom was about A.D. 165.
-His father and grandfather were probably of Roman origin.
-Before his conversion to Christianity, he studied in the
-schools of the philosophers, but after that he became an
-Evangelist, and a vigorous writer in defence of the Christian
-faith. It is probable that he travelled much. He was not
-the first that wrote an Apology for Christians, but his are the
-earliest extant. Besides these, he wrote a much larger work
-(the Dialogue with Trypho, a Jew), a work on the resurrection,
-and some others; and by some, he has been regarded
-as the author of the Pastor Hermas. His first and principal
-Apology, of the probable date of A.D. 138-9, was addressed
-as follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“To the Emperor Titus Ælius Adrianus Antoninus Pius Augustus
-Cæsar, and to his son Verissimus, the philosopher, and to
-Lucius, the philosopher, the natural son of Cæsar, and the
-adopted son of Pius, a lover of learning, and to the Sacred Senate,
-with the whole people of the Romans, I, Justin, the son of Priscus
-and grandson of Bacchius, native of Flavia Neapolis in Palestine,
-present this address and petition in behalf of those of all nations
-who are unjustly hated and wantonly abused, myself being one
-of them.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Those to whom this formal address was made, would not
-be expected to know anything about Matthew, Mark, Luke,
-or John; but it was otherwise, in respect to the Old Testament,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_19"></a>[19]</span>
-for Jewish synagogues were in every city, and the Septuagint
-had been known for three hundred years.</p>
-
-<p>In this Apology he explains some of the teachings of our
-Lord, and the usages of his disciples; and in respect to the
-last, are these passages:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“For the Apostles, in the memoirs composed by them, which
-are called Gospels, have thus delivered unto us what was enjoined
-upon them; that Jesus took bread and when he had given thanks
-said, ‘This do ye in remembrance of me, this is my body;’ and
-that, after the same manner having taken the cup and given
-thanks, he said, ‘This is my blood;’ and he gave it to them
-alone.”... “And we afterwards continually remind each
-other of these things. And the wealthy among us help the needy;
-and we always keep together; and for all things wherewith we
-are supplied, we bless the Maker of all, through his Son Jesus
-Christ, and through the Holy Ghost. And on the day called
-Sunday, all who live in cities or in the country gather together
-to one place, and the Memoirs of the Apostles or the writings of
-the Prophets are read, as long as time permits; then when the
-reader has ceased, the president verbally instructs, and exhorts
-to the imitation of these good things. Then we all rise together
-and pray, and as we before said, when our prayer is ended, bread
-and wine and water are brought, and the president in like manner
-offers prayers and thanksgivings according to his ability, and the
-people assent, saying Amen; and there is a distribution to each,
-and a participation of that over which thanks have been given,
-and to those who are absent a portion is sent by the deacons.
-And they who are well-to-do, and willing, give what each thinks fit;
-and what is collected is deposited with the president, who succors
-the orphans and widows, and those who, through sickness or any
-other cause, are in want, and those who are in bonds, and the
-strangers sojourning among us, and in a word, takes care of all
-who are in need. But Sunday is the day on which we all hold
-our common assembly, because it is the first day on which God,
-having wrought a change in the darkness and matter, made the
-world; and Jesus Christ, our Saviour, on the same day rose from
-the dead. For he was crucified on the day before that of Saturn<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_20"></a>[20]</span>
-(Saturday): and on the day after that of Saturn, which is the
-day of the Sun, having appeared to his apostles and disciples,
-he taught them these things, which we have submitted to you also
-for your consideration.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>This passage is a part of chapter sixty-six, and the whole of
-chapter sixty-seven.</p>
-
-<p>The great question is, What were these “Memoirs of the
-Apostles,” which were thus read with the writings of the
-Prophets? It is a question of interpretation.</p>
-
-<p>By the rule adopted in courts, these words are to be construed
-with the context, and in connection with other writings
-of Justin in relation to the same subject, and also in the
-light of all the surrounding circumstances.</p>
-
-<p>These precise terms are first used in chapter sixty-seven.
-The same Memoirs, evidently, in chapter sixty-six, are described
-as Memoirs “composed” by the Apostles. They
-are not again referred to in this Apology. They are referred
-to several times in the Dialogue, chapters one hundred
-to one hundred and eight, by the following terms: The Memoirs
-of His Apostles; The Memoirs of His Apostles; The
-Memoirs of His Apostles; The Memoirs of the Apostles;
-<i>For in the Memoirs which I say were drawn up by his Apostles
-and those who followed them</i>; The Memoirs of His Apostles;
-The Memoirs; The Memoirs; The Memoirs; The Memoirs
-of the Apostles; The Memoirs of Him; The Memoirs of His
-Apostles; The Memoirs. Four times he calls them The
-Memoirs; three times The Memoirs of the Apostles; five
-times The Memoirs of His Apostles; and once, The Memoirs
-of Him, <i>i. e.</i>, Christ, as Roberts and Donaldson interpret it,<a id="FNanchor_14" href="#Footnote_14" class="fnanchor">[2]</a>
-and as the context and the whole scope indicate.</p>
-
-<p>It is plain that the same “Memoirs” are intended throughout,
-under these various terms.</p>
-
-<p>In chapter eighty-eight of the Dialogue, in mentioning the
-descent of the Holy Ghost upon Jesus at his baptism, Justin
-says that when he came out of the water, the Holy Ghost<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_21"></a>[21]</span>
-lighted on him like a dove, as “the Apostle of this very
-Christ of ours wrote.” The incident is mentioned in all
-four of the Gospels.</p>
-
-<p>But for his explanation elsewhere, it would be inferred that
-<i>all</i> the “Memoirs” were “composed” by the Apostles. But
-he carefully explains his meaning, so that the “Memoirs,” or
-some of them, may have been “drawn up” either by the
-Apostles, or by those who followed them.</p>
-
-<p>It is obvious that these Memoirs were not biographies or
-sketches by unknown or irresponsible persons, but writings
-well understood by the Churches to have been “composed”
-or “drawn up” by the Apostles, or with their approval.</p>
-
-<p>As Mark was understood to be Peter’s interpreter, so Luke
-was understood to have been Paul’s companion, and to have
-written under his sanction. And Paul was an Apostle, although
-not one of the twelve.</p>
-
-<p>Justin had informed the Roman Emperor<a id="FNanchor_15" href="#Footnote_15" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> of the Apostles,
-and he gave like information to Trypho.<a href="#Footnote_15" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> He meant that all
-who should read should know that what he gave of the life
-and teachings of Christ was not from irresponsible sources,
-but from writings expressly sanctioned, if not actually written,
-by those whom Christ had selected as witnesses.</p>
-
-<p>These Memoirs, therefore, were doubtless understood <i>by
-Justin, and by the church in general</i>, in city and country, to
-have been the productions of Apostles or their companions.
-They were read the same as the Prophets, and placed upon
-the same footing. Justin, in writing to Trypho, speaks of
-having believed <span class="smcap">God’s voice spoken by the apostles of
-Christ</span>.</p>
-
-<p>And since, in speaking of their actual composition, he uses
-the plural, “Apostles,” we should look for two or more Memoirs,
-“drawn up,” by Apostles.</p>
-
-<p>Now what were these Memoirs? What writings will answer
-the description? Matthew<a id="FNanchor_16" href="#Footnote_16" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> and Mark will, according
-to what the Presbyter said of them. Were there any others?
-There should be one more at least, that was written by an<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_22"></a>[22]</span>
-Apostle, else wherefore, the <i>plural</i>? The four Gospels that
-have come down to us, answer the description in every particular.
-To use a legal phrase,—“From the time whereof
-the memory of man runneth not to the contrary,” two of
-them have been accepted in the Church as having been composed
-by Apostles, and two, by companions of Apostles.</p>
-
-<p>Unless it can be shown that when Justin wrote, there were
-<i>other</i> Memoirs of Christ <i>that will answer to his description</i>,
-our four Gospels and no others were intended. <i>Were</i> there
-any besides these?</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_13" href="#FNanchor_13" class="label">[1]</a> The quotations from Justin Martyr are from Vol. II. of the Ante-Nicene
-Christian Library, edited by Roberts and Donaldson.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_14" href="#FNanchor_14" class="label">[2]</a> See <i>post</i>, <a href="#Footnote_39">c. 7, note 14</a>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_15" href="#FNanchor_15" class="label">[3]</a> “For from Jerusalem there went out into the world men, twelve in
-number, ... who proclaimed to every race of men that they were sent by
-Christ to teach all the word of God” (Ap. c. 39). “And by those
-things which were published in his name among all nations by the
-Apostles” (<i>ibid.</i> c. 42). “His Apostles going forth from Jerusalem
-preached everywhere” (<i>ibid.</i> c. 45.) “And further there was a certain
-man with us whose name was John, one of the Apostles of Christ”
-(Dia. c. 81). “For as he (Abraham) believed the voice of God, and it
-was imputed to him for righteousness, in like manner we, having believed
-God’s voice spoken by the Apostles of Christ, and promulgated to us by
-the prophets, have renounced even to death all the things of the world”
-(<i>ibid.</i> c. 119).</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_16" href="#FNanchor_16" class="label">[4]</a> The writer of Barnabas, in quoting as in Matthew xx. 16, had used
-the authoritative Latin formula (<i>it is written</i>) for quotations from Scripture,
-as follows: “Let us beware lest we be found, as it is written, ‘Many
-are called but few are chosen’” (<i>Ep. of Bar.</i> c. 4).</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_23"></a>[23]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V.<br />
-<span class="smaller">QUOTATIONS AND CITATIONS.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The <i>apparent</i> or seeming use of our Gospels by Justin and
-his contemporaries is a fact of great weight in determining
-whether they are the “Memoirs” referred to by him.</p>
-
-<p>According to the Indexes of Texts by the learned editors
-of the Ante-Nicene Christian Library, John’s Gospel is
-quoted or cited, twice in Barnabas, once in Diognetus, twice
-in Hermas, once by Justin, and once by Papias. Mark is
-quoted or cited, once in Barnabas, twice by Clement, three
-times by Justin, and once by Polycarp: Acts is quoted or
-cited once in Barnabas, once by Clement, once by Justin, and
-four times by Polycarp: Luke is quoted or cited three times
-in Barnabas, three times by Clement, once in Hermas, fourteen
-times by Justin, and twice by Polycarp: and Matthew is
-quoted or cited six times in Barnabas, five times by Clement,
-twice in Diognetus, nine times in Hermas, forty-seven times
-by Justin, and seven times by Polycarp.</p>
-
-<p>As to <i>citations</i>, passages deemed such by one, may have
-been overlooked or regarded differently by another, so that
-there is not an entire agreement as to the number of citations,
-<i>i. e.</i> of allusions or references that are not quotations.
-And it should be understood that in the <i>quotations</i>, the
-books from which they are taken are not stated, except
-that Justin indicates that <i>his</i>, in general, are from the
-“Memoirs.” Their agreement with our Gospels is sometimes
-literally exact, quite often it is otherwise; and not
-unfrequently two or three passages are seemingly blended,
-as if the author were quoting from memory and giving the
-sense, merely.</p>
-
-<p>It will be sufficient for the purposes of the argument to give
-examples (except as to the Fourth Gospel) only from Justin,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_24"></a>[24]</span>
-and to omit <i>his</i> quotations from Matthew and Mark, since
-they are so numerous and not a few of them of considerable
-length. Of his references, Rev. Mr. Wright says<a id="FNanchor_17" href="#Footnote_17" class="fnanchor">[1]</a>: “Upon
-examination it is found that of the one hundred and twenty
-or more allusions which Justin makes to the Gospel history,
-nearly all coincide as to substance with the statements of
-either Matthew or Luke. Of the sixty or seventy apparently
-direct quotations, ten are exact, twenty-five are only slightly
-variant, while there are thirty-two in which the variation is
-considerable. But in respect to variations from the original
-in quotation, it should be remembered that familiarity often
-leads to carelessness with regard to minute points. Justin,
-himself, out of one hundred and sixty-two quotations from
-the Old Testament, has only sixty-four exact, while forty-four
-are slightly variant, and fifty-four decidedly so.”</p>
-
-<p>If the reader, with the New Testament in hand, will make
-a comparison in the examples which will be given, he can
-form his own judgment, which it is conceived, will be no
-doubtful one. The substantial agreement is very striking even
-when the language is not identical.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p class="center">JUSTIN FROM ACTS.</p>
-
-<p>“He was taken up into heaven while they beheld.” (Res., c.
-9.) Acts i. 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p class="center">FROM MARK.</p>
-
-<p>“But is it not absurd to say that these members will exist after
-the resurrection from the dead, since the Saviour said, ‘They
-neither marry nor are given in marriage, but shall be as the
-angels in heaven.’” (Res., c. 2.) Mark xi. 25.</p>
-
-<p>“And that we ought to worship God alone, he thus persuadeth
-us: ‘The greatest commandment is, “Thou shalt worship the
-Lord thy God, and him only shalt thou serve with all thy heart,
-and with all thy strength the Lord God that made thee.”’” (Ap.
-c. 16.) Mark xii. 30.</p>
-
-<p>“He says, ‘I am not come to call the righteous, but sinners to
-repentance.’” (Res., c. 8.) Mark ii. 17.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_25"></a>[25]</span></p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p class="center">FROM LUKE.</p>
-
-<p>The first three are parts of long quotations from the Sermon on
-the Mount, principally as in Matthew (Ap. cc. 15, 16) Luke vi.:
-28, 29, and Matthew vi.: 7, 8, 13.</p>
-
-<p>4. “We are persuaded that every man ... will render
-account according to the power he has received from God, as
-Christ intimated when he said, ‘To whom God has given more,
-of him shall more be required.’” (Ap. c. 17.) Luke xv. 48.</p>
-
-<p>5. “And the angel of God who was sent to the same virgin at
-that time brought her good news, saying, ‘Behold, thou shalt
-conceive of the Holy Ghost, and shall bear a son, and he shall be
-called the Son of the Highest. And thou shalt call his name
-Jesus, for he shall save his people from their sins,’ <i>as they who
-have recorded<a id="FNanchor_18" href="#Footnote_18" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> all that concerns our Saviour Jesus Christ have
-taught</i>, whom we believe since by Isaiah also, whom we have
-now adduced, the Spirit of prophecy declared that he should be
-born as we intimated before.” (Ap. c. 33.) Luke i. 32, and Matthew
-i. 21.</p>
-
-<p>6. “As our Lord himself says, ‘He that heareth me, heareth
-him that sent me.’” (Ap. c. 63.) Luke x. 16.</p>
-
-<p>7. “And again in other words he said, ‘I give unto you power
-to tread on serpents, and on scorpions and on scolopendras, and
-on all the might of the enemy.’” (Dial. c. 76.) Luke x. 19.</p>
-
-<p>8. “For he exclaimed before his crucifixion: ‘The Son of
-Man must suffer many things, and be rejected by the scribes and
-pharisees and be crucified, and on the third day rise again.’”
-(Dial. c. 76.) Luke ix. 22.</p>
-
-<p>9. “Just as our Lord also said: ‘They shall neither marry nor
-be given in marriage, but shall be equal to the angels, the children
-of the God of the resurrection.’” (Dial. c. 81.) Luke xx. 35, 36.</p>
-
-<p>10. “For he taught us to pray for our enemies also, saying,
-‘Love your enemies; be kind and merciful as your heavenly
-Father’ is, for we see that the Almighty God is kind and merciful,
-causing his sun to rise on the unthankful and on the righteous,
-and sending rain on the holy and on the wicked.” (Dial. c. 96.)
-Luke vi. 35, and Matthew v. 45.</p>
-
-<p>11. “But the Virgin Mary received faith and joy, when the
-angel Gabriel announced the good tidings to her that the Spirit of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_26"></a>[26]</span>
-the Lord would come upon her and the power of the Highest
-would overshadow her; wherefore also the Holy Thing begotten
-of her is the Son of God; and she replied, ‘Be it unto me
-according to thy word.’” (Dial. c. 100.) Luke i. 35, 38.</p>
-
-<p>12. “For when Christ was giving up his spirit on the cross he
-said: ‘Father, unto thy hands I commend my spirit,’ <i>as I have
-learned also from the Memoirs</i>.” (Dial. c. 105.) Luke xxiii. 46.</p>
-
-<p>13. “He says, ‘The children of this world marry and are
-given in marriage; but the children of the world to come neither
-marry nor are given in marriage, but shall be like the angels in
-heaven.’” (Res., c. 3.) Luke xx. 34, 35.</p>
-
-<p>14. “And wishing to confirm this, when his disciples did not
-know whether to believe he had truly risen in the body, and were
-looking upon him and doubting, he said to them, ‘Ye have not
-yet faith, see that it is I,’ and he let them handle him, and
-showed them the prints of the nails in his hands. And when
-they were by every kind of proof persuaded that it was himself
-and in the body, they asked him to eat with them, that they might
-thus still more accurately ascertain that he had in verity risen
-bodily; and he did eat honeycomb and fish. And when he had
-thus shown them that there is truly a resurrection of the flesh, and
-wishing to show them this also, that it is not impossible for flesh
-to ascend into heaven (as he had said that our dwelling place is
-in heaven). ‘He was taken up into heaven while they beheld,’ as
-he was in the flesh.” (Res., c. 9.) Luke xxiv. 38, 39, 40, 41, 42,
-43, and Acts i. 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Before presenting Justin, from the Fourth Gospel, the use
-of this Gospel by his contemporaries will be considered.</p>
-
-<p>In <i>Barnabas</i> (c. 6) it is said that “He was to be manifested
-in flesh and to sojourn among us.” (Com. John i. 14.) It
-is also said in c. 12, in effect, that the brazen serpent was a
-type of Jesus. (Com. John iii. 14-18.) Another passage in
-c. 7, although not cited by the editors, is, “Because they shall
-see him then in that day having a scarlet robe about his body
-down to his feet; and they shall say, ‘is not this he whom we
-once despised and <i>pierced</i> and mocked and crucified?’” This
-<i>may</i> have had reference to what is recorded only in John, as<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_27"></a>[27]</span>
-Apollinaris,<a id="FNanchor_19" href="#Footnote_19" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> bishop of Hierapolis (<i>cir.</i> A.D. 170), afterward
-wrote: “The Son of God, <i>pierced</i> in the sacred side, who
-shed forth from his side the two things again cleansing,
-water and blood, word and spirit.”</p>
-
-<p>In <i>Diognetus</i>, c. 6, it is said that “Christians dwell in the
-world yet are not of the world.” (Com. John xvii. 11, 14, 16.)
-In c. 11 it is said, “This is he who was from the beginning”
-(Com. John i. 1); and in the same chapter, “For who that is
-rightly taught and begotten by the loving Word, would not
-seek to know accurately the things which have been clearly
-shown by the Word to his disciples, to whom the Word
-being manifested has revealed them.” (Com. John i. 14, 18.)
-There is but a single <i>quotation</i> in this eloquent Letter, which
-is as in First Corinthians viii. 1, “Knowledge puffeth up,
-but love edifieth.”</p>
-
-<p>John alone speaks of Christ as the <i>door</i>, but the figure is
-often used in <i>Hermas</i>, as, “You saw, he added, the multitude
-who were building the tower? I saw them, sir, I said.
-Those, he said, are all glorious angels, and by them accordingly
-is the Lord surrounded. And the gate is the Son of
-God. This is the one entrance to the Lord. In no other
-way, then, shall any one enter into him except through his
-Son.” (Simil. ix. 12.) John x. This book of Hermas is an
-allegory in which an angel, in the guise of a shepherd, gives
-instruction in the doctrines and duties that were held and
-required by the Church. It has not a single <i>quotation</i> from
-either the Old or New Testament. But as Dr. Chartris in
-“Canonicity” (p. 137) well says: “The dignity, mission, and
-sufferings of God’s Son are prominent in Hermas’ teaching,
-and remind us of the Fourth Gospel at every turn.”</p>
-
-<p>The supposed quotation by Papias, Fragment 5 (found in
-Irenæus), “In my Father’s house are many mansions,” has
-been given in a previous chapter.<a id="FNanchor_20" href="#Footnote_20" class="fnanchor">[A]</a></p>
-
-<p><i>Basilides</i>, according to Hippolytus, used as proof-texts the
-exact passages found in John i. 9 and John ii. 4. Hippolytus<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_28"></a>[28]</span>
-first records the comments of Basilides on the sentence
-in Genesis, <i>Let there be light</i>, and then proceeds as follows:
-“And this, he says, is what is said in the Gospels, ‘The true
-light which lighteth every man which cometh into the world.’
-And that each thing, he says, has its own seasons, the Saviour
-is a sufficient witness when he says, ‘My hour is not yet
-come.’” Those who deny that these quotations<a id="FNanchor_21" href="#Footnote_21" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> were by
-Basilides, claim that Hippolytus sometimes mixes up the opinions
-of the master of a school with those of his followers,
-and so it is not certain that Basilides used these texts. The
-learned author of “Canonicity,” recently published, p. 173, declares
-that the difficulties in the way of ascribing those quotations
-to any other than Basilides, are “enormous.” The reasoning
-of Matthew Arnold (who is quite far from being rigidly orthodox)
-is so conclusive that we give the substance of it: “If
-we take all the doubtful cases of the kind and compare them
-with our present case, we shall find that it is not one of them.
-It is not true that here where the name of Basilides has just
-come before, and where no mention of his son or of his disciples
-has intervened since, there is any such ambiguity as is
-found in other cases.... The author in general uses the
-formula, <i>according to them</i>, when he quotes from the school,
-and the formula, <i>he says</i>, when he gives the dicta of the
-Master. And in this particular case he manifestly quotes the
-dicta of Basilides, and no one who had not a theory to serve
-would ever dream of doubting it. Basilides, therefore, about
-the year one hundred and twenty-five of our own era, had before
-him the Fourth Gospel.”</p>
-
-<p><i>The Epistles of Ignatius</i>, whether the longer or shorter or
-Syriac, may be of too doubtful genuineness, or rather, the
-extent as to which they are genuine is too doubtful to be
-relied upon, although some of them contain numerous quotations.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_17" href="#FNanchor_17" class="label">[1]</a> The Logic of Christian Evidences. By G. Frederick Wright, Andover,
-A.D. 1880, p. 190.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_18" href="#FNanchor_18" class="label">[2]</a> Or, as Dr. Abbott translated it, as “those who have written Memoirs
-of all things concerning our Saviour Jesus Christ, whom we believe,” etc.
-Fourth Gospel, p. 21.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_29"></a>[29]</span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_19" href="#FNanchor_19" class="label">[3]</a> As quoted (p. 43) in The Supernatural Origin of Christianity. By
-George P. Fisher, Professor of Church History in Yale College (A.D.
-1870).</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_20" href="#FNanchor_20" class="label">[A]</a> Chap. 3.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_21" href="#FNanchor_21" class="label">[4]</a> Judge Waite does not even refer to these quotations except to quote
-from Dr. Davidson in respect to Basilides in general, that “His supposed
-quotations from the New Testament in Hippolytus are too precarious to be
-trusted.” He does not seem to have known anything of Professors Arnold
-and Fisher, or Dr. Abbot, not to mention other very <i>respectable</i> writers
-within the last ten years, who have regarded the use of the Fourth Gospel
-by Basilides as sufficiently attested.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_30"></a>[30]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI.<br />
-<span class="smaller">JUSTIN’S USE OF THE FOURTH GOSPEL.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Christ’s pre-existence, not declared in the other Gospels, is
-frequently referred to by Justin.<a id="FNanchor_22" href="#Footnote_22" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> John alone calls Jesus the
-Word; Justin often refers to him as such. Justin regards
-the elevation of the brazen serpent in the wilderness as typical<a id="FNanchor_23" href="#Footnote_23" class="fnanchor">[2]</a>
-of the crucifixion. He says it denoted salvation to those
-who flee for refuge to him who sent his crucified son into the
-world; the idea of God’s sending his Son into the world is
-peculiar to John. The descent of the Holy Spirit in the form
-of a dove, at the baptism of Jesus, is mentioned only in the
-First and Fourth Gospels. Justin (Dial. c. 88) says that when
-Jesus “came out of the water, the Holy Ghost lighted on
-him like a dove, <i>as the Apostles of this very Christ of ours
-wrote</i>.” Justin (Dial. c. 88) cites, as the words of John the
-Baptist, “I am not the Christ, but the voice of one crying.”</p>
-
-<p>This declaration, “I am not the Christ,” and this application
-to himself of the language of Isaiah, are attributed to the
-Baptist only in John (John i. 20, 23, and iii. 28). Hilgenfeld,
-the latest representative of the Tübingen skeptical
-school, recognizes<a id="FNanchor_24" href="#Footnote_24" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> here the use of the Fourth Gospel by
-Justin. And Dr. Ezra Abbot, following Professor Drummond,
-gives twenty<a id="FNanchor_25" href="#Footnote_25" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> instances (including the express quotation)
-of the apparent or seeming use of this Gospel by
-Justin.</p>
-
-<p><i>The express quotation</i> as in John iii. 3, 5, is as follows:
-“For Christ also said, ‘Except ye be born again ye shall not
-enter into the kingdom of heaven.’ Now, that it is impossible
-for those who have once been born to enter into their
-mothers’ womb is manifest to all.” (Ap. c. 61.) This is as
-translated in the Ante-Nicene Christian Library. Dr. Abbot
-(p. 29) translates it “Except ye be born again, ye shall in<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_31"></a>[31]</span>
-no wise enter into the kingdom of heaven.” Matthew Arnold,
-“Except ye be born again ye shall not enter into the kingdom
-of heaven.” Our common version is, “Except a man be
-born again he cannot see the kingdom of God;” and in verse
-5, “Except a man be born of water and the Spirit he cannot
-enter into the kingdom of God.” The revised version, “Except
-a man be born anew,” or “from above” (margin), “he
-cannot see the kingdom of God.” There is a <i>substantial</i>
-agreement in the quotation with John’s Gospel, and unmistakable
-reference to the interview with Nicodemus, which is
-found only in John. The most <i>rational</i> inference is that it
-was from that source.</p>
-
-<p>Justin, in this quotation, was as definite as when (Ap. c. 32)
-he wrote: “Moses then, who was the first of the prophets,
-spake in these very words, ‘The sceptre shall not depart
-from Judah, nor a lawgiver from between his feet, until he
-come for whom it is reserved; and he shall be the desire
-of the nations, binding his foal to the vine, washing his
-robe in the blood of the grape.’” (Com. Gen. xlix. 10, 11.)
-He does not state <i>where</i> the passage is to be found, and its
-divergence from Genesis is greater than the difference in the
-language of Jesus, as quoted by Justin and recorded by John.</p>
-
-<p>Justin, in quoting from the Old Testament, usually gives
-the <i>name</i> of the prophet, <i>but nothing more</i>; just as he gives
-this quotation as the language of Christ. He writes <i>Moses
-said</i>, or <i>Isaiah said</i>, and he also writes <i>Christ said</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The other Apostolic Fathers, in their quotations from the Old
-Testament, do not usually give the name of the prophet, but
-only, “It is written,” “God said,” “The Spirit saith,” “The
-Scripture saith,” and often only “saith,” “The Scripture” in
-such cases being implied. And, as a rule, they do not quote
-with literal accuracy or a near approximation to it.</p>
-
-<p>It has been objected, that if this quotation was actually
-from the Fourth Gospel, more than a single quotation from it
-should be expected. Let this be tested by the four epistles
-confessed to be genuine. There is not a single quotation<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_32"></a>[32]</span>
-by Justin from <i>either</i> of these acknowledged epistles, and it
-is doubtful if there is a single reference to them, certainly not
-in his Apology.</p>
-
-<p>Nor is this all. The epistle to the Galatians (and Renan
-says, “Thanks to the Epistle to the Galatians!”) is not referred
-to in any way by Clement, or in Barnabas, or Hermas;
-nor First Corinthians in Barnabas or Hermas (and but
-once in Diognetus); nor Romans in Hermas; nor Revelation
-in Barnabas, or Diognetus, or Polycarp, and but once by
-Clement.</p>
-
-<p>To account for Justin’s silence, it has been imagined, without
-the slightest evidence, that Justin was “anti-Pauline.”
-But how are the omissions by other writers to be accounted
-for? How did it happen that Clement made no reference to
-Galatians? It was not from hostility, certainly, for he speaks
-of “The blessed Apostle Paul.” Yet writing this epistle
-from the church at Rome, to the church at Corinth, he has
-but a single quotation from Paul’s Epistle to the Romans, and
-but a single quotation from Paul’s First Epistle to the Corinthians,
-and <i>no</i> reference to Galatians.</p>
-
-<p>The well-known distinction of everyday application in
-courts of law and elsewhere, between positive and negative
-evidence, is to be kept in mind. Whether John’s Gospel
-would be quoted by any writer acquainted with it, might depend
-entirely upon his object in writing; and so of Galatians,
-or any of the books of the New Testament. While a single
-undoubted quotation proves the existence of that which is
-quoted from, non-quotation may prove nothing at all.</p>
-
-<p>Justin apparently has one quotation from the Fourth Gospel,
-with many implied references to it. But if there were
-neither the one nor the other, to infer his ignorance of that
-Gospel from his silence would be just as sensible as to infer
-that a lawyer had never heard of Blackstone, or Kent, or
-Story, because he has not quoted from them.</p>
-
-<p>If Justin in his Apology quoted once from Mark, and once
-from John, and not at all from Acts, or Revelations, or Paul’s<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_33"></a>[33]</span>
-Epistles, it was because his subject did not call for any use of
-those writings, beyond the use which he made of Mark and
-John. And if (as was apparently the fact) he quoted Luke
-six times and Matthew eighteen times in his Apology, it was
-doubtless because Matthew better served his purpose, or was
-more firmly fixed in his memory, from his having been born in
-Palestine, where Matthew’s Gospel was published.</p>
-
-<p>A like explanation accounts for the fact that the Fourth
-Gospel is not quoted by Polycarp in his Epistle to the Philippians.
-Neither does he quote or cite from Revelations.</p>
-
-<p>The result so far is this: The Fourth Gospel, apparently,
-is quoted by Basilides, and Justin, and Papias; and, in addition,
-there are many implied references to it. There is about
-the same amount of evidence in respect to Mark and the book
-of Acts. The evidence accumulates as to Luke’s Gospel,
-and from Matthew, the quotations and citations become very
-numerous.</p>
-
-<p>That these quotations and citations were forgeries is an
-idea that cannot be seriously entertained by anybody. There
-were originals from which the quotations were taken; and
-presumptively, those originals were the “Memoirs” so often
-referred to by Justin; and <i>presumptively</i> our Gospels were
-those <i>Memoirs</i>, since they answer the description. And
-unless it can be shown that <i>other</i> writings <i>that will answer
-the description</i> were then extant, this presumption is well nigh
-conclusive.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_22" href="#FNanchor_22" class="label">[1]</a> Ap. cc. 5, 23, 32, 42, 50, 53, 63; Dial. cc. 48, 57, 68, 76, 85, 100, 101.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_23" href="#FNanchor_23" class="label">[2]</a> Ap. c. 60: Dial. cc. 7, 94, 140.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_24" href="#FNanchor_24" class="label">[3]</a> Abbot, p. 45; Fisher, p. 39; Sears, “The Heart of Christ” (A.D. 1873),
-pp. 46-67.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_25" href="#FNanchor_25" class="label">[4]</a> Abbot, pp. 40-50.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_34"></a>[34]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII.<br />
-<span class="smaller">NO OTHERS PROVED.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The latest work in this country which denies the genuineness
-of our Gospels, is “The History of the Christian
-religion to the year two hundred.” (Chicago, 1881.) The
-author says it is the result of an investigation extending
-through several years, two of which were spent in the library
-of congress, “which is peculiarly rich in the department of
-biblical literature.” He claims that his volume “will be
-found to be the most complete record of the events connected
-with the Christian religion during the first two centuries,
-which has ever been presented to the public.” He shows no
-lack of ability or disposition to make as strong a case as
-possible against our Gospels. And he understands the issue.
-For, he says, the question what Gospels were used by Justin,
-“is of the highest importance.” In this work, then, if
-anywhere, should there be proof of <i>other</i> writings than our
-Gospels, that will meet the requirements of the case. But
-what do we find? It gives a list of “<i>forty Gospels</i>,” before
-the decree of Pope Gelasius, A.D. 494. The only marvel is
-that the list is not longer. The greater portion are the now
-extant Apocryphal Gospels, Acts, and Revelations, which
-may be found in Vol. XVI., of the Ante-Nicene Christian
-Library. Much confusion, says<a id="FNanchor_26" href="#Footnote_26" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> Dr. Ezra Abbot, has arisen
-from the fact that the term “Gospel” was in ancient times
-applied to speculative works which gave the writer’s view of
-the Gospel, <i>i. e.</i>, of the doctrine of Christ, or among the
-Gnostics, which set forth their <i>gnosis</i>; <i>e. g.</i>, among the
-followers of Basilides, Hippolytus tells us, “The Gospel is
-the knowledge of supermundane things.” Of all the Apocryphal
-Gospels, Samuel Ives Curtiss, the well-known German
-professor in the Chicago Theological Seminary, writes:<a id="FNanchor_27" href="#Footnote_27" class="fnanchor">[2]</a>—</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_35"></a>[35]</span></p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“I shall not waste any ink or paper to prove that the Protevangelium,
-the Gospel of the Infancy, the Acts of Pilate, etc., in
-their present forms as known to us and as quoted by Judge Waite,
-arose at a later period than our canonical Gospels.” ... “A
-knowledge of the original sources and the literature of the subject
-would have saved him from this pitiful blunder. I simply refer
-to Professor Lipsius’ article on the Apocryphal Gospels, in Smith
-and Wace’s Dictionary of Christian Biography, London, 1880,
-Vol. II., pp. 700, <i>seq.</i>; and Holtzmann’s Apocryphon des Neuen
-Testaments, in Schenkel’s Bible Lexicon, Leipzig, 1869, Vol. I.,
-pp. 170 <i>seq.</i> As neither of these articles are by orthodox men, or
-by those who have the slightest bias toward orthodoxy, they are
-calculated to inspire confidence in persons of every shade of belief
-or disbelief. Both are authorities; Meyer’s Conversations-Lexikon
-says of Professor Lipsius, of Jena, that he is one of the
-most eminent scholars in Germany.” (See <a href="#Footnote_27">note 2</a>.)</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>With this concurring judgment of the most eminent
-scholars, not much time should be spent upon these
-Apocryphal books. But a single quotation is given by
-Judge Waite that is claimed by him to have been made by
-Justin from either of them. And this (although not to be
-found in any <i>single</i> passage in our Gospels) may be gathered
-from different passages, which would be in keeping with
-Justin’s mode. It corresponds quite nearly, though not precisely,
-with a <i>part</i><a id="FNanchor_28" href="#Footnote_28" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> of the description in the Protevangelium of
-the announcement to Mary. But this no more proves the
-use of the Protevangelium by Justin than it proves the use of
-Justin’s Apology by the writer of the Protevangelium. Aside
-from this quotation, there are a few facts stated by Justin
-that are claimed, by some persons, to have been taken from
-the Apocryphal Gospels. <i>One</i> is, that Jesus made ploughs
-and yokes, which Justin of course would infer, from the fact
-that it was a part of the business of a carpenter to make
-ploughs and yokes. <i>Another</i> is, that Jesus was born in a
-cave. Dr. Thompson, says<a id="FNanchor_29" href="#Footnote_29" class="fnanchor">[4]</a>, “It is not impossible, to say the
-least, but that the apartment in which our Saviour was born<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_36"></a>[36]</span>
-was in part a cave. I have seen many such, consisting of
-one or more rooms in front of and including a cavern, where
-the cattle were kept.” Justin, who was a native of Judea,
-added a circumstance well known from tradition, which Luke
-did not think it of consequence to mention, that the manger
-was in a cave, <i>i. e.</i>, that the stable in which was the manger
-was in a cave. He had no occasion to resort to books for
-such a fact. <i>Another</i> is, that Justin refers the Roman
-Emperor to “Acts of Pilate” as affording evidence of what
-he had stated concerning Christ’s crucifixion, and the miracles
-which he had performed. According to the usual course,
-Pilate should have made a report of the crucifixion. It is
-supposed that he did, and that it was lost or destroyed.
-Justin appeals to it, as if then in the archives of the government.
-Whether he was well or ill informed upon the subject,
-the document to which he appeals, clearly was not understood
-by him to be one of the “Memoirs” of Christ, “drawn up”
-by an Apostle, or a “companion” of an Apostle. Nothing
-purporting to be Pilate’s report is extant. The Apocryphal
-book, known as the Gospel of Nicodemus or Acts of Pilate,
-does not purport to contain<a id="FNanchor_30" href="#Footnote_30" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> any such report. <i>Another</i> is,
-that Justin says that Christ was of the House of David; a
-fact which Jesus himself had declared<a id="FNanchor_31" href="#Footnote_31" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> and which is also
-referred to, in Acts. The only remaining fact, in respect to
-the alleged use of the Protevangelium, is in relation to the
-<i>census</i>. It is claimed that Justin and the Protevangelium
-agree that it was only to be taken in Judea.<a id="FNanchor_32" href="#Footnote_32" class="fnanchor">[7]</a> But Justin does
-not so state. It also happens, that while Justin makes mention
-of Cyrenius, the Protevangelium only says, “And there
-was an order from the Emperor Augustus that all in Bethlehem
-of Judea should be enrolled,” saying nothing of Cyrenius.
-This is followed by an absurd and worthless story of
-occurrences, by the way. Justin has two references to the
-census, which will be found in the note.<a id="FNanchor_33" href="#Footnote_33" class="fnanchor">[8]</a> Justin, in stating
-that there was a census in Judea, does not exclude the idea
-that it was more general.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_37"></a>[37]</span></p>
-
-<p>Judge Waite, following the anonymous author of “The
-Supernatural,” and others, also claims that Justin’s statement
-that at the baptism of Jesus “a <i>fire</i> was kindled in the
-Jordan,” must have been taken either from the “Gospel of
-the Hebrews,” or the “Preaching of Paul.” As to the
-former (as he gives the translation from a fragment from
-Jerome) it is, that, “certainly there shone around the place a
-great <i>light</i>,” which is not what Justin said. There is no
-evidence from any quarter that this “Gospel of the Hebrews”
-was in existence (other than as Matthew’s Gospel was in existence),
-when Justin wrote. Nor is there any evidence that it
-was in use, at <i>any</i> period, except among the Nazarenes (a
-small Judaizing sect of Christians), and the Cerinthians, and
-Ebionites, two heretical sects. The very authorities quoted
-to prove its existence, clearly show that it was never in
-<i>general</i> use, or accepted by the churches generally. Neither
-the work itself, nor Jerome’s translation of it, has been in
-existence <i>for centuries</i>. From what is known of it, it seems
-to have been<a id="FNanchor_34" href="#Footnote_34" class="fnanchor">[9]</a> the Hebrew Gospel of Matthew, “not entire
-and perfect, but corrupted and curtailed.” It omitted the
-first two chapters. Some of the corruptions show its true
-character<a id="FNanchor_35" href="#Footnote_35" class="fnanchor">[10]</a> so far as it varied from Matthew’s Hebrew Gospel;
-for as Papias wrote, and the Fathers generally believed,
-Matthew first composed his Gospel in the Hebrew dialect.</p>
-
-<p>“The Preaching of Paul” was less known, and even of less
-account, than the other. Judge Waite says (p. 229) that it
-“was referred to by Lactantius and others, and was generally
-known in the second century.” But he furnishes no evidence
-of it, and Lactantius died about A.D. 325. As to its contents,
-Judge Waite only says that “It contained references to the
-Sybilline writings; also to the fire in Jordan at the time of
-the baptism of Jesus.” There is no good reason to suppose
-that it was <i>extant</i> when Justin wrote; and most certainly, it
-was never received by the churches generally. Eusebius
-does not seem to have known anything of it, unless to
-reject it as spurious. He says (Book III., c. 25): “Among<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_38"></a>[38]</span>
-the spurious, must be numbered both the books called ‘The
-Acts of Paul,’ and that called ‘Pastor,’ and ‘The Revelation
-of Peter.’”</p>
-
-<p>Eusebius also is equally pronounced against the production
-called the “Gospel according to Peter.” That this “Gospel”
-was referred to by Justin in the passage before considered
-(<i>vide</i> c. 4), is the fact <i>to be proved</i>. The first <i>mention</i> of
-it, was by Serapion<a id="FNanchor_36" href="#Footnote_36" class="fnanchor">[11]</a>, who became Bishop of Antioch A.D.
-191, fifty years after Justin wrote. He found a few copies
-of it among his flock, which he replaced, substituting Mark’s
-Gospel for it, for the reason that he found in it “many things
-superadded to the sound faith of our Saviour; and some also
-attached, that are foreign to it.” This <i>bishop</i> seems to have
-had no knowledge of its existence till that time. It favored
-the Docetæ, from some of whom it had come into his parish.
-The pretence that Tertullian referred to it, and intended to
-assert that in his day the Gospel of Mark was understood to
-have this Gospel of Peter for its original, has nothing to rest
-upon but another perversion of Tertullian’s meaning. The
-passage relied upon is here given with such words in italics
-as must be <i>supplied</i> to warrant the use which has been
-attempted to be made of it: “The Gospel which Mark published
-is affirmed to be” <i>what is known as</i> “Peter’s” <i>Gospel</i>,
-“whose interpreter Mark was.” This forced construction,
-would make Mark the interpreter, <i>not</i> of Peter, but of the
-heretical work at some time known by some as <i>Peter’s Gospel</i>.
-Not Strauss himself, nor even the author of “The Supernatural,”
-so interpreted Tertullian. What Tertullian wrote
-was, that “The Gospel which Mark published is affirmed to
-be Peter’s; whose interpreter Mark was.” Marcion mutilated
-Luke’s Gospel, and Judge Waite says, “Tertullian called him <i>a
-hound</i>.” If any one in his day had perverted his language as
-to Mark’s Gospel, so as to make it endorse the work which
-Serapion (who was a cotemporary of Tertullian) suppressed
-as heretical, Tertullian would not have been likely to have
-used a <i>less</i> expressive word than that which he applied to<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_39"></a>[39]</span>
-Marcion. Tertullian simply meant, as Papias had written,
-and the church believed, that Mark was Peter’s <i>interpreter</i>,
-and in <i>that</i> sense Mark’s Gospel was Peter’s Gospel.</p>
-
-<p>The next writer referred to for “Peter’s Gospel” is Origen,
-A.D. 230. Origen says: “There are some who say the
-brethren of Christ were the children of Joseph by a former
-wife, who lived with him before Mary; and they are induced
-to this opinion by some passages in that <i>which is entitled</i>
-(the italics are ours) ‘The Gospel of Peter, or the Book of
-James.’” When it is considered that Origen, in most explicit
-terms, declares that our four Gospels “are the only undisputed
-ones in the whole Church of God throughout the
-world,” and that of these, “the second is according to Mark,
-who composed it as Peter explained it to him, whom he also
-acknowledges as his son in his General Epistle,” the perversion
-of his language is apparent. Mr. Norton, whose
-opinion, it is conceded, “is entitled to great weight,” upon a
-careful examination of the subject, believes that this “Gospel”
-was not a history or biography of Christ’s ministry at
-all, but only a <i>doctrinal</i><a id="FNanchor_37" href="#Footnote_37" class="fnanchor">[12]</a> treatise. <i>Not a single fragment
-of it has come down to us.</i> There is no evidence from any
-quarter that it was <i>generally</i> received in the churches <i>at any</i>
-period; on the contrary, the evidence, so far as it goes, proves
-that it was not so received. It was the Gospel exclusively
-used by the Ebionites,<a id="FNanchor_38" href="#Footnote_38" class="fnanchor">[13]</a> and neither Justin nor the majority
-of Christians in his time were Ebionites. Its very suppression
-by Serapion is conclusive; and there is nothing to
-impeach Eusebius’ judgment against it. There is no evidence
-that it was even in existence when Justin wrote, for
-the mere fact of its being found by Serapion forty or fifty
-years after is too remote. <i>Hence</i>, if Justin, in the paragraph
-before quoted in chapter four, by “<i>him</i>” meant Peter, instead
-of Christ (which we do not accept),<a id="FNanchor_39" href="#Footnote_39" class="fnanchor">[14]</a> the Gospel of
-Mark, which in a sense was understood to be Peter’s, was the
-one intended; and the true construction of the words in
-question is of minor importance.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_40"></a>[40]</span></p>
-
-<p>Judge Waite has succeeded as well as any one, in his attempt
-to find <i>other</i> writings than our Gospels, that will meet the
-necessities of the case. Professor Lipsius, one of the most
-eminent scholars in Germany, says,<a id="FNanchor_40" href="#Footnote_40" class="fnanchor">[15]</a> “The attempt to prove
-that Justin Martyr and the Clementine Homilies had one
-extra-canonical authority common to them both, either in the
-Gospel to the Hebrews or in the Gospel of St. Peter, has
-altogether failed.” Of recent writers this side of the ocean,
-Dr. Ezra Abbot of Harvard College (who has already “a
-distinguished Continental reputation”), states,<a id="FNanchor_41" href="#Footnote_41" class="fnanchor">[16]</a> after a thorough
-examination of the whole subject, as some of the results:
-“We have seen that there is no <i>direct</i> evidence of any
-weight that Justin used either the ‘Gospel according to the
-Hebrews’ (so far as this was distinguished from the Gospel
-according to Matthew) or the ‘Gospel according to Peter.’
-That he should have taken either of these as the source of
-his quotations, or that either of these constituted the ‘Memoirs’
-read generally at public worship in the Christian
-churches of his time, is in the highest degree improbable.”...
-“Still less can be said in behalf of the hypothesis that
-any other Apocryphal ‘Gospel’ of which we know anything,
-constituted the ‘Memoirs,’ which he cites, if they were one
-book, or was included among them, if they were several.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Rowe’s<a id="FNanchor_42" href="#Footnote_42" class="fnanchor">[17]</a> judgment is, that the facts referred to by
-Justin, but not recorded in the Gospels, stand to those which
-<i>are</i> recorded, in the proportion of only four, to one hundred
-and ninety-six. In other words, that all but four out of
-about two hundred references, appear in the Gospels. “It is
-marvellous,” he says, “when we consider the nearness of the
-time when Justin lived to our Lord’s ministry, that he should
-have preserved so few incidents respecting it which vary
-from those in our Gospels, rather than that those to which he
-has referred should present the slight variations they do; for
-it is an interval within which traditionary reminiscences
-must have possessed all their freshness.”</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_26" href="#FNanchor_26" class="label">[1]</a> P. 16 of “Authorship of the Fourth Gospel,” etc. (1880).</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_41"></a>[41]</span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_27" href="#FNanchor_27" class="label">[2]</a> The <i>Daily Inter-Ocean</i> of Feb. 12, 1881. To the same effect, “The
-Authorship,” p. 98, note 6; The Supernatural Origin of Christianity, by
-George P. Fisher, D.D., Professor of Christian History in Yale College
-(1870), p. 191-2; Origin, etc., by Prof. C. E. Stowe (1867), p. 185, c. 7.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_28" href="#FNanchor_28" class="label">[3]</a> “And the angel of God who was sent to the same virgin at that time,
-brought her the good news, saying, ‘Behold thou shalt conceive of the
-Holy Ghost and shalt bear a son, and he shall be called the Son of the
-Highest, and thou shalt call his name Jesus, for he shall save his people
-from their sins.’” After a dozen lines, the last clause is repeated as follows:
-“Wherefore, too, the angel said to the virgin, ‘Thou shalt call his
-name Jesus, for he shall save his people from their sins.’” The last clause
-seems to have been transferred from Matthew by Justin. The Protevangelium
-(c. 11) reads as follows: “And she hearing, reasoned with herself,
-saying: Shall I conceive by the Lord, the living God? And shall I
-bring forth, as every woman brings forth? And the angel of the Lord
-said: Not so, Mary; for the power of the Lord shall overshadow thee;
-wherefore also that holy thing which shall be born of thee shall be called
-the Son of the Most High. And thou shalt call his name Jesus, for he
-shall save his people from their sins. And Mary said: Behold the servant
-of the Lord before his face; let it be unto me according to thy word. And
-she made the purple and the scarlet and took them to the priest,” etc.
-The account is preceded by the story that it had fallen to her lot to spin
-purple and scarlet for the veil of the temple, and that when the angel
-spake to her she was going with a pitcher to fill it with water. It is not
-easy to believe that Justin’s simple narrative came from such a source.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_29" href="#FNanchor_29" class="label">[4]</a> The Land and the Book, by W. M. Thompson, D.D., twenty-five years
-a missionary of the A. B. C. F. M., in Syria and Palestine, Vol. II, p. 503.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_30" href="#FNanchor_30" class="label">[5]</a> The first part contains a graphic account of the trial and crucifixion.
-At the trial witnesses are represented as appearing before Pilate and narrating
-different miracles which had been performed. Judge Waite devotes
-considerable space in comparing these accounts with the Gospel narratives.
-He argues that the Apocryphal account must have been the earlier
-one, <i>because</i> of its brevity, and because it does not include <i>all</i> the miracles.
-This is as if one should infer that the plea of the advocate, or the charge
-of the judge, preceded the testimony, or the compendium, the history.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_31" href="#FNanchor_31" class="label">[6]</a> Matt. ix. 27; xii. 23; xv. 22; Mark x. 47; xii. 35-7; Luke xx. 30-1;
-xl. 6; xviii. 38-9; John vii. 42; Acts xiii. 23; Ro. i. 3.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_32" href="#FNanchor_32" class="label">[7]</a> Protevangelium, p. 17; vol. 16, Ante-Nicene Christian Library, pp.
-18-19.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_33" href="#FNanchor_33" class="label">[8]</a> Apology, c. 34. “Now there is a village in the land of the Jews, thirty-five
-stadia from Jerusalem, in which Jesus Christ was born, as you can
-ascertain also from the registers of the taxing made under Cyrenius, your
-first procurator in Judea.” Dial. c. 78. “Then he was afraid and did
-not put her away; but on the occasion of the first census which was taken
-in Judea under Cyrenius, he went up from Nazareth where he lived to
-Bethlehem, to which he belonged, to be enrolled; for his family was of
-the tribe of Judah, which then inhabited that region.” Joseph was both
-of the tribe of Judah, and of the house and lineage of David, and there is
-no contradiction. It is to be noticed that the census is spoken of as the
-<i>first</i> census that was taken. Cyrenius, called then procurator, was afterward
-governor.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_42"></a>[42]</span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_34" href="#FNanchor_34" class="label">[9]</a> See authorities in <a href="#Footnote_27">Note 2</a>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_35" href="#FNanchor_35" class="label">[10]</a> “Now my mother, the Holy Ghost, took me by one of my hairs, and
-brought me to the great mountain even Tabor.” “Jesus said unto him,
-go sell all which thou possessest and divide among the poor, and come
-follow me. But the rich man <i>began to scratch his head</i>, and it did not
-please him.” Origin, <i>etc.</i>, by Professor Stowe, p. 22.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_36" href="#FNanchor_36" class="label">[11]</a> Abbott’s Fourth Gospel, p. 78; Eusebius, b. 6, c. 12; b. 3, c. 25.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_37" href="#FNanchor_37" class="label">[12]</a> Abbott, etc., p. 79; Waite’s History, p. 11.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_38" href="#FNanchor_38" class="label">[13]</a> Abbott, etc., p. 104, Eusebius, b. 6, c. 12.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_39" href="#FNanchor_39" class="label">[14]</a> The entire passage is as follows: “And when it is said that he
-changed the name of one of the Apostles to Peter; and when it is written
-in the Memoirs of him that this so happened, as well as that he changed
-the names of other two brothers, the sons of Zebedee, to Boanerges, which
-means sons of thunder; this was an announcement of the fact that it was he
-by whom Jacob was called Israel, and Oshea called Jesus (Joshua) under
-whose name the people who survived of those who came from Egypt were
-conducted into the land promised to the patriarchs.” The controversy is,
-whether the personal pronouns “He” and “Him” refer to Jesus, or whether
-“Him” refers to Peter. Judge Waite says that Justin has ten times
-“Memoirs of the Apostles,” and five times, “Memoirs,” and not once,
-“Memoirs of Christ.” It is true we do not find “Memoirs of Christ.”
-But confessedly the Memoirs intended were of or concerning Christ, and
-not of or concerning the Apostles, or either of them. Justin used the
-expression Memoirs of the Apostles just as we say the Gospel of John.
-They were concerning Christ; he is the grand subject of discourse in all
-Justin’s writings. And in Ap. c. 33, Justin speaks of those “who have
-written Memoirs of all things concerning our Saviour Jesus Christ.” In
-the proper and highest sense they should only be spoken of as “Memoirs
-of Christ.”</p>
-
-<p>Judge Waite, after the author of “The Supernatural” (p. 337), says, to
-refer to the more distant antecedent is contrary to the rule. The rule is of
-but slight importance as compared to the whole scope. And to apply the
-rule here, Peter would be the one who changed the names of the sons of
-Zebedee; for Peter, and not Christ, would be the last antecedent.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_40" href="#FNanchor_40" class="label">[15]</a> As quoted by Dr. Ezra Abbot, pp. 98, 99; see, also, <i>Inter-Ocean</i> of February
-12, 1881.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_41" href="#FNanchor_41" class="label">[16]</a> Abbot, etc., p. 103, 104; <i>Inter-Ocean</i> of February 12.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_42" href="#FNanchor_42" class="label">[17]</a> Bampton Lectures for 1877, pp. 279, 281.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_43"></a>[43]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII.<br />
-<span class="smaller">PRESUMPTION OF PERMANENCY.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In general, says Mr. Phillips,<a id="FNanchor_43" href="#Footnote_43" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> there is a presumption in favor
-of the continuance of what is once proved to have existed.
-It is a familiar principle of law, says Chief Justice Parker,
-that a state of things once shown to exist is presumed to continue
-until something is shown to rebut the presumption.
-And this position, says Professor Greenleaf, is founded “on
-the experienced <i>continuance</i> or permanency of longer or
-shorter duration in human affairs. When, therefore, the existence
-of a person, a personal relation, or a state of things,
-is once established by proof, the law presumes that the person,
-relation, or state of things continues to exist as before,
-until the contrary is shown, or until a different presumption
-is raised from the nature of the subject in question.” With
-other examples of the application of this presumption, he
-mentions opinions and religious convictions: “The <i>opinions</i>
-also of individuals, once entertained and expressed, and the
-<i>state</i> of <i>mind</i>, once proved to exist, are presumed to remain
-unchanged until the contrary appears. Thus, all the members
-of a Christian community, being presumed to entertain
-the common faith, no man is supposed to disbelieve the existence
-and moral government of God, until it is shown from
-his own declarations.” This presumption being founded in
-reason and experience, is of universal application. It is not
-conclusive, but stands “until something is shown to rebut it.”
-It is the basis of Hume’s argument against miracles, but
-which he misapplies, making it conclusive instead of presumptive
-evidence. As a presumption, it is strictly applicable
-to the question in hand, and will be found to have great force.
-For, from this natural and reasonable presumption, it should
-be taken, unless the contrary is proved, that the accepted<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_44"></a>[44]</span>
-“Memoirs” of Justin’s time <i>remained</i> in the churches. Hence
-if we can ascertain with entire certainty <i>what</i> “Memoirs”
-were accepted in the churches in the year 180, and no evidence
-of displacement and substitution appears, we shall have
-<i>most satisfactory evidence</i> what “Memoirs” were the ones intended
-by him in his Apology.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_43" href="#FNanchor_43" class="label">[1]</a> Phillips on Evidence, 4th Am. Ed., 640: 17 N. H. Rep., 409: 1 Greenleaf
-on Evidence, §§ 41, 42.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_45"></a>[45]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX.<br />
-<span class="smaller">THE MEMOIRS OF THE YEAR ONE HUNDRED AND EIGHTY.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>There is undoubted proof that within forty years from the
-time Justin wrote his First Apology, our Four Gospels (and
-no others) with the Book of Acts, were universally received in
-the church, as we now receive them. It comes from the writings
-of Agrippa Castor, Apollinaris, Bishop of Hierapolis,
-Apelles, Athenagoras, Basilides, Celsus, Clement of Alexandria,
-Eusebius, Heracleon, Irenæus, Jerome, Marcion, Melito, Bishop
-of Sardis, Origen, Pantænus, Polycarp, Serapion, Tatian, Theophilus,
-Tertullian, Valentine, The Letter of the Church of Vienne
-and Lyons, and the unknown authors of the Clementine
-Homilies, and the Muratori Canon—Christians, Gnostics,
-Heretics, and Heathen, all concurring to prove universal reception,
-beyond a reasonable doubt. So strong is this proof that
-even Strauss does not deny such reception by the <i>end</i> of the
-second century, and he admits that there is evidence of
-an <i>earlier</i> date. He says: “We learn from the works of
-Irenæus, of Clement Alexandrinus, and of Tertullian, that,
-at the end of the second century after Christ, our Four
-Gospels were recognized by the orthodox church as the
-writings of the Apostles and the disciples [companions]
-of the Apostles, and were separated from many other similar
-productions, as authentic records of the life of Jesus. The
-first Gospel, according to our Canon, is attributed [i. e.
-by the authors named] to Matthew, who is enumerated
-among the twelve Apostles; the fourth to John, the beloved
-disciple of our Lord; the second to Mark, the interpreter of
-Peter;<a id="FNanchor_44" href="#Footnote_44" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> and the third to Luke, the companion of Paul. We
-have, besides, the authority of earlier authors, both in their
-own works, and in quotations cited by others.” As a false
-witness sometimes admits a part, the better to conceal what<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_46"></a>[46]</span>
-is more important, so Strauss <i>admits</i> a state of things as existing
-at the <i>end</i> of the century, that, beyond dispute, should
-be carried back to a time at least twenty years earlier. Thus
-Professor Fisher, in his exhaustive work, says of John’s Gospel
-(which is conceded to have been the last): “We choose
-to begin<a id="FNanchor_45" href="#Footnote_45" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> with the unquestioned fact of the universal reception
-of the Fourth Gospel as genuine in the last quarter of
-the second century. At that time we find that it was held in
-every part of Christendom to be the work of the Apostle
-John. The prominent witnesses are Tertullian in North
-Africa, Clement in Alexandria, and Irenæus in Gaul.” And
-Professor Abbot<a id="FNanchor_46" href="#Footnote_46" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> says: “I begin with the statement, which
-cannot be questioned, that our present Gospels, and no
-others, were received by the great body of Christians as
-genuine and sacred books during the last quarter of the
-second century.”</p>
-
-<p>Theophilus of Antioch, <i>as early</i> as A.D. 180, not only quotes
-from the Fourth Gospel, as Scripture, but names John as its
-author, as follows:<a id="FNanchor_47" href="#Footnote_47" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> “As the Holy Scriptures, and all who
-have the Spirit, teach us, among whom John says, ‘In the
-beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God;’ signifying
-that God alone was in the beginning, and that the
-Word was in him. And then he says, the Word was God,
-and all things were made by Him, and without him there was
-not anything made.” Theophilus also wrote a Commentary
-upon the Gospels. Before this time, also, our Gospels and
-Acts had been included in a list<a id="FNanchor_48" href="#Footnote_48" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> of canonical books
-received in the churches. They were in their present
-order, and, as far as their authorship is stated, are attributed
-to the persons whose names are now assigned to
-them. And before<a id="FNanchor_49" href="#Footnote_49" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> this date, Celsus (who anticipated Strauss
-by seventeen hundred years) had cited alleged contradictions
-in the Gospels, and particularly as to there being one or two
-angels at the sepulchre. He attempted to ridicule the idea
-that blood and water came from Jesus’ side—a fact that is
-stated only in John. He refers to the fact that Christ<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_47"></a>[47]</span>
-“after his death arose, and showed the marks of his
-punishment, and how his hands had been pierced.” Although
-he does not <i>name</i> the authors of the books, yet
-his numerous quotations correspond with them, including
-Luke and John. And in respect to all of the discrepancies,
-etc., he says: “All these things I have taken
-out of your own books,” i. e. Scriptures. “We need,” says
-he, “no after witness, for you fall upon your own swords.”
-His work has not come down to us except as contained in
-Origen’s writings, which, however, quote so fully from it, that
-it is nearly reproduced. And ten years<a id="FNanchor_50" href="#Footnote_50" class="fnanchor">[7]</a> before this time,
-Tatian, who had been a disciple of Justin (but after Justin’s
-death became heretical), wrote a Commentary or Harmony
-upon the Gospels. He called it Diatesseron, which means
-the Gospel of the Four. The celebrated Syrian, Father
-Ephræm, who died A.D. 373, wrote a commentary on it. Bar-Salibi,
-who flourished in the last part of the twelfth century,
-was also well acquainted with Tatian’s work; and says that it
-began with John i. 1: “<i>In the beginning was the Word</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>Before this date, Heracleon, a disciple of the Gnostic Valentine,
-wrote a commentary upon the Fourth Gospel. The work
-is known<a id="FNanchor_51" href="#Footnote_51" class="fnanchor">[8]</a> to us through many fragments, which Origen has
-woven into his own commentary on the same Gospel.</p>
-
-<p>Quotations from the canonical Gospels <i>between</i> the periods
-mentioned are very numerous. It is unnecessary to cite
-them, or to give other specific proof of a state of things existing
-<i>as early</i> as 180, as shown by most incontrovertible evidence,
-whatever doubt may be had as to some items of this evidence.
-Indeed an earlier date might properly be assumed than that
-taken as the basis of our argument. Thus Dr. Charteris, in
-his recent work, says, in view of all the circumstances: “When
-we pass the <i>middle</i> of the century, and come to the works of
-Tatian, Athenagoras, and Theophilus (with a quotation by
-name) we are out of the region of controversy.” (Canonicity,
-lxxxi.) There were a few persons called the Alogi, a nickname
-having the double meaning of “deniers of the doctrine of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_48"></a>[48]</span>
-Logos,” and “men without reason,” who denied John’s
-authorship of the Fourth Gospel. They were probably a few<a id="FNanchor_52" href="#Footnote_52" class="fnanchor">[9]</a>
-eccentric individuals, who attracted no attention, and none of
-whose names are preserved. The fact that they appealed to
-no tradition in favor of their views, denied John’s authorship
-of the Apocalypse likewise, and absurdly ascribed both to
-Cerinthus, whom no one supposes could have been their
-author, shows that they were persons of no critical judgment.
-They were <i>outside</i> of the churches of which Justin wrote. The
-reception of the canonical Gospels, to the exclusion of all
-others, was <i>universal</i> in those churches.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_44" href="#FNanchor_44" class="label">[1]</a> Not the interpreter of “<i>Peter’s Gospel!</i>” (Page 49-50, Vol. 1, of “The
-Life of Jesus,” etc., 1860).</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_45" href="#FNanchor_45" class="label">[2]</a> P. 39 of “The Supernatural Origin of Christianity,” (1870), by Prof.
-Fisher.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_46" href="#FNanchor_46" class="label">[3]</a> P. 13 of “The Authorship of the Fourth Gospel” (1880).</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_47" href="#FNanchor_47" class="label">[4]</a> P. 177 of Prof. Stowe’s “Origin and History of the Books of the New
-Testament” (1867); Strauss’ Life of Christ, p. 52; Waite’s History, pp.
-302, 354; p. 130 of Fisher’s “Supernatural Origin,” etc.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_48" href="#FNanchor_48" class="label">[5]</a> A fragment of this writing was discovered by the Italian scholar Muratori,
-and from him is called the Muratori Canon. It is written in Latin,
-but is supposed to have been first written in Greek. The first part of the
-writing is wanting, so that it begins with Luke, which it calls the “Third
-book of the Gospel according to Luke.” It was found in the Ambrosian
-Library, at Milan, in a manuscript containing extracts from writings of
-Ambrose, Chrysostom, and others. It professes to give a list of the writings
-that are recognized in the Christian Church. Judge Waite (p. 412)
-assigns A.D. 190 as its date. Prof. Curtiss says of it: “<i>The most eminent
-New Testament scholars</i> in America, England and Germany, with a few
-exceptions, hold that it was written in the last quarter of the second century
-(the most setting the date at about 170-180 A.D.) Some of them are:
-Prof. Ezra Abbot, of Harvard College; Drs. E. A. Abbott, Canon Wescott,
-W. A. Sanday, Credner, Weiseler, Bleek, Reuss, Hilgenfeld, and many
-others” (<i>Inter-Ocean</i>, February 12, 1881). The Fragment contains internal
-evidence of the time when it was written. In reference to the “Pastor”
-it says: This “did Hermas write, <i>very recently, in our times</i>, in the city of
-Rome, while his brother Bishop Pius sat in the chair in the church of
-Rome.” Now Pius was Bishop from A.D. 142 to 157. Waite’s History,
-p. 232.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_49" href="#FNanchor_49" class="label">[6]</a> In reply to Judge Waite, who assigned A.D. 210 to Celsus, Professor
-Curtiss says that “Dr. Keim, who belongs to the most liberal German
-school, and who made a very careful investigation of the subject (Celsus
-Wahres Wort, Zurich, 1873), sets the date in the year 177 or 178, A.D.”
-See also Smith and Wace’s Dictionary of Christian Biography, London,
-1877, vol. 1, p. 436; Fisher, p. 42; “Heart of Christ,” by Edmund H.
-Sears, 1873, p. 148; Abbott’s Fourth Gospel, etc., p. 58. See also Sanday,
-p. 262, and Canonicity, by Dr. Charteris, 1880, p. 369. Origen, in one
-place, in answering his objections, speaks of him as “a man long since
-dead.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_49"></a>[49]</span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_50" href="#FNanchor_50" class="label">[7]</a> Pp. 52-53 of Abbot’s Fourth Gospel.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_51" href="#FNanchor_51" class="label">[8]</a> “Tischendorf’s Origin of the Four Gospels,” p. 89.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_52" href="#FNanchor_52" class="label">[9]</a> Abbott’s Fourth Gospel, pp. 18, 20; Fisher, p. 69.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_50"></a>[50]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X.<br />
-<span class="smaller">ASCENDING THE STREAM.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Now consider the tremendous force of the proved fact that,
-within forty years of the time when Justin wrote his First
-Apology, we reach a period when it is no longer a debatable
-question whether our Gospels are “the Memoirs” of Christ
-which were read with the Prophets in city and country. The
-presumption of <i>continuance</i> attaches. It has before been
-proved beyond a reasonable doubt that, in the year one hundred
-and forty, there were accepted “Memoirs” of our Lord,
-which were read with the Prophets in all the churches. There
-is no evidence whatever that those Memoirs in the intervening
-forty years were dropped and others substituted for them;
-therefore it should be presumed that they were in the churches
-in the year one hundred and eighty; and the Memoirs in the
-churches at this latter period <i>are positively known and seen, to
-have been the Canonical Gospels</i>. They have come closer to
-us, and in the nearer vision we are able to determine their
-identity with the utmost certainty. And the natural presumption
-that there was no substitution within the short
-interval of forty years, is immensely strengthened by the
-difficulties attending any attempted substitution,—difficulties
-so great that they must have left unmistakable evidence of
-conflict upon the page of history. The churches were very
-numerous, and occupied a territory of more than two thousand
-miles in extent from Syria to Gaul. Each church had its
-bishop or presbyter, and elders; and in each church, once in
-seven days, were the Memoirs of our Lord read with the
-Prophets. There were hundreds who, from their own recollections,
-and thousands who, from their parents or instructors,
-at any given time within these forty years, had perfect knowledge
-what Memoirs were thus read in the year one hundred<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_51"></a>[51]</span>
-and forty. Young men of twenty then, were only sixty, forty
-years later. Was there a substitution in those forty years,
-and these bishops, and elders, and thousands of communicants
-every Sabbath of all ages, not know it; or knowing it had not
-objected; or objecting, and history have no record of it? Not
-a few of these were educated men; and indeed all the bishops
-and elders may be presumed to have been as well versed in the
-accepted Gospels as in the writings of the prophets. It is to
-be borne in mind that we are dealing now with the question
-of substitution within the short period of forty years. A
-<i>score</i> of names can be given of men living within that time or
-immediately after, who, from their own recollection or from
-others, must have had perfect knowledge of the whole subject:
-Athenagoras, a philosopher at Athens about the year one
-hundred and sixty; Caius, a presbyter at Rome about the
-year two hundred; Claudius Apollinaris, Bishop of Hierapolis,
-<i>cir.</i> 173; Clement of Alexandria, who became the head of the
-Alexandrian School in 187; Dionysius, Bishop of Corinth, who
-died a martyr in 173; Hegesippus, the historian (whose
-works are now lost), who died in 180; Hermas, who was
-prominent toward the close of the century; Irenæus, Bishop
-of Lyons; Justin himself, whose martyrdom was as late as the
-year 165; Leonides, the martyr; Melito, Bishop of Sardis;
-the world-renowned Origen, son of Leonides; Pantænus;
-Polycarp; Polycrates, Bishop of Ephesus; Pothinus the predecessor
-of Irenæus (and whose martyrdom was about 167);
-Serapion, Bishop of Antioch; Tertullian, the eloquent Roman
-lawyer of Carthage; Theophilus, the predecessor of Serapion;
-and Victor, Bishop of Rome.</p>
-
-<p>It may be said, and with truth, that the Fourth Gospel,
-whenever introduced, came in not as a substitute, but as a
-supplement. The evidence, however, is conclusive that by the
-year one hundred and eighty, it had obtained as permanent a
-footing as either of the other Gospels. Its reception was as
-hearty, and the tradition of its authorship as strong, as in
-respect to the others. To infer that it was the forged product<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_52"></a>[52]</span>
-of the period now under consideration, or any other, is as if De
-Soto had concluded that the mighty stream which he discovered
-hastening to the Gulf, with deep and rapid current,
-so wide that a man could scarcely be seen from shore to shore,
-had its origin not in far-off lakes or mountains, but in some
-miserable crocodile swamp of the country he was traversing,
-and but just out of sight. And <i>who</i> forged the Fourth Gospel
-and imposed it as John’s upon this score of persons, and
-hundreds of others? Or did these men conspire together, to
-deceive themselves, the churches, and the world? What
-name has come down to us from <i>that</i> age, or any other, who
-was <i>capable</i> of such an undertaking? What <i>forger</i> wrote
-those discourses of Our Lord with Nicodemus? Or those
-with the women of Samaria? Or those with his disciples on
-the eve of his crucifixion? Or the parable of the good Shepherd?
-Or that memorable prayer recorded in the seventeenth
-of John? That any <i>sane man</i> should attribute either of these
-to a <i>criminal forger</i> would be incredible, if we were not confronted
-with the fact. And what sort of a man was this forger
-of the Fourth Gospel? We have Baur’s conception of him as
-“A man of remarkable mind, of an elevated spirit, and penetrated
-with a warm adoring faith in Christ as the Son of God
-and Saviour of the world!” And Baur thinks it <i>easier</i> to
-believe (without proof) in the existence of this remarkable
-genius and elevated character, who would <i>invent</i> fictitious discourses,
-<i>falsely</i> attribute them to the Christ whom he <i>adored</i>,
-and <i>forge</i> the name of the beloved disciple, than to believe
-with the whole body of the Christian Church, that the discourses
-and utterances were those of our Lord!<a id="FNanchor_53" href="#Footnote_53" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> If John did
-not write the Fourth Gospel, <i>who did</i>? Not one of those
-who deny his authorship, can give an answer to this question.
-It is no answer to say that many in the second century believed
-that Hermas (whom Paul mentions in his Epistle to the
-Romans), wrote the Pastor or Shepherd of Hermas. Such
-was not the universal sentiment. The work was never generally
-received as Scripture. On the contrary, the author of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_53"></a>[53]</span>
-the Muratorian Fragment, while placing the Four Gospels in
-the list of canonical books universally received, says of “The
-Pastor,” that it was written “very recently in our times” by
-another Hermas, a brother of the Bishop of Rome, and that it
-was read in “some of the churches,” not as Scripture but for
-“edification,” the same as the Epistle of Clement. It was
-rejected by Tertullian, not only as Apocryphal, but as hurtful.
-Nor is it any answer, to say that the so-called Epistle of
-Barnabas was early attributed to Barnabas the Levite. In
-the first place, it is by no means certain that this tradition
-was unfounded. From the little we know of Barnabas,
-it would be rash to conclude that he could not have written it.
-If uninspired, he <i>may</i> have written just such a book. In the
-second place, no one ascribed it to him till the time of Clement
-of Alexandria, and it was ranked by Eusebius among the
-“spurious” writings, which, however much known and read
-in the church, were never regarded as authoritative. Eusebius
-also places The Pastor Hermas in the list of writings whose
-authorship is disputed. The Fourth Gospel rests upon an
-entirely different basis. There was but <i>one</i> tradition in
-respect to it, and from our first knowledge of it, it was regarded
-as authoritative, and its authorship was undisputed; for the
-slight exception of the few individuals, called the Alogi, is of
-no account. It was included in the commentaries and harmonies
-to which reference has been made; and such works
-would not have been written until the books upon which they
-were based had been long enough in the churches for a felt
-need of commentaries upon them. It was quoted as Scripture
-by Theophilus, and John its author was expressly named as
-moved by the Holy Ghost. In the Muratori Canon, it was
-placed as Scripture in the list of Canonical books, universally
-received. And that it could not have come in after the year
-one hundred and forty, or have been received unless it was
-genuine, will be still more obvious from a more particular
-consideration of some of those who accepted it. Pantænus,
-who was at the head of the Alexandrian school in the year<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_54"></a>[54]</span>
-one hundred and eighty, was (says Eusebius) distinguished
-for his learning. Before his conversion he was a Stoic philosopher.
-After that, and before he became the head of the
-Catechetical school, he traveled extensively as an Evangelist.
-He went as far as the Indies, where he found that the Apostle
-Bartholomew, who had preceded him, had left the Gospel of
-Matthew in Hebrew. Pantænus could not have been ignorant
-of the “Memoirs,” which were accepted in Justin’s time, and
-he lived until the year two hundred and twelve. We have no
-<i>direct evidence</i> from <i>him</i>; but Clement, his pupil and successor,
-and noted for his learning, could not have been ignorant
-of the opinions of Pantænus; and from Clement there is the
-strongest testimony. He flourished between A.D. 165 and
-220, and became head of the Alexandrian School in A.D. 187.
-Origen, his successor, with his great genius and acquirements,
-and extensive travel, and from his father Leonides, and his
-predecessors Clement and Pantænus, must have been fully
-informed of the “Memoirs” which were in the churches in
-the year one hundred and forty. And he says, that he has
-“understood <i>from tradition</i>, respecting the Four Gospels,
-<i>which are the only undisputed ones in the whole church of God
-throughout the world</i>,” that the first was by Matthew, the
-second by Mark, “who composed it as Peter explained to
-him,” the third by Luke, the companion of Paul, and “last of
-all” John “who reclined upon the breast of Jesus,” has left
-one Gospel, in which he confesses that he could write so
-many that the whole world could not contain them. Tertullian,
-the celebrated lawyer, says, “Of the Apostles, John
-and Matthew published the faith to us.” In defending the
-Gospel of Luke against the mutilation of the heretic Marcion,
-he positively affirms that all the churches founded by the
-Apostles accepted, not Marcion’s abridgment of Luke, but a
-well-known form which had been “<i>received from its first
-publication</i>;” and that the other Gospels had been received
-from the same sources in authenticated copies. “In his
-abundant writings,” says Norton,<a id="FNanchor_54" href="#Footnote_54" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> “there is not a chapter in<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_55"></a>[55]</span>
-the Gospels of Matthew, Luke and John, from which he does
-not quote,” and from most of them his quotations are numerous.
-Tertullian was born at Carthage about A.D. 160, and
-from his conversion, about the year one hundred and eighty-five,
-he entered with great earnestness and ability into a
-vindication of Christianity, and the discussion of various questions
-connected with it. This able advocate could not have
-been misinformed of the usages of the churches less than half
-a century previous to the time when he entered upon his work.</p>
-
-<p>The evidence of Irenæus is still more conclusive. He was
-born in Syria about A.D. 120, and he was therefore twenty
-years old when Justin wrote. His teacher was Polycarp,
-Bishop of Smyrna, and his immediate predecessor at Lyons
-was Pothinus. Polycarp, at his martyrdom, was asked to
-save his life by denying Christ. “No,” he said, “eighty and
-six years have I served him and he never did me any injury;
-how, then, can I blaspheme my King and my Saviour?”
-<i>Pothinus</i>, at <i>his</i> martyrdom, <i>cir.</i> 177, was more than ninety
-years old. The lives of these two men reached far back into
-the first century. They were at, or past, middle life when
-Justin wrote, and presbyters of important churches; and it is
-utterly incredible that they should not have known what
-“Memoirs” were read in their churches in Justin’s time.
-And it is <i>equally incredible</i> that Irenæus, the disciple of the one
-and the immediate successor in office of the other, and <i>himself</i>
-<i>twenty years old</i> when Justin wrote, should not have been as
-well informed upon this subject. Yet Irenæus quotes<a id="FNanchor_55" href="#Footnote_55" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> from
-our Gospels and Acts, as Scripture, ascribes their authorship
-to Matthew, Mark, Luke and John, and says that such was
-the accepted tradition in all the churches. After referring to
-the others, he says of the Fourth Gospel: “Afterwards John,
-the disciple of our Lord, the same that lay upon his bosom,
-also published the Gospel while he was yet at Ephesus, in
-Asia” (Eu. v. 8). And again<a id="FNanchor_56" href="#Footnote_56" class="fnanchor">[4]</a>: “All the Elders testify, who
-were conversant with John, the disciple of our Lord, in Asia,
-that he delivered these things.” About A.D. 180, in a treatise<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_56"></a>[56]</span>
-against heretics, he appeals to the canonical Gospels with as
-much confidence that they are all well known and accepted by
-Christians, as any would do at the present day. Tischendorf<a id="FNanchor_57" href="#Footnote_57" class="fnanchor">[5]</a>
-says the number of passages where Irenæus has recourse to
-the Gospels is about four hundred, and about eighty of these
-in John. Sanday<a href="#Footnote_57" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> estimates the quotations from John in this
-treatise at seventy-three. But Clement, and Origen, and
-Pantænus, and Polycarp, and Pothinus, and Tertullian, were
-not better informed upon this subject than Serapion, who so
-promptly suppressed the heretical Gospel of Peter, or than
-Theophilus, his immediate successor, who was the first after
-Papias (other than the author of the Muratorian Fragment) to
-mention any of the four Gospels by name, or than the author of
-this Fragment, or than many intelligent officers and members
-of the numerous churches from the Euphrates to the Seine.</p>
-
-<p>With such evidence and from such sources, and the entire
-absence of any evidence of <i>substitution</i>, it may well be regarded
-as morally certain, that none occurred. What was
-probable, from the <i>seeming</i> use of the Canonical Gospels by
-Justin and his contemporaries, has become <i>a moral certainty</i>.
-The Memoirs which, in the year one hundred and eighty, were
-universally accepted, <i>were the same</i> that forty years before
-were read with the Prophets, in city and country, in all the
-churches every Sabbath day. Of this there can be no doubt.
-The Memoirs of the year one hundred and eighty, <i>were</i> <span class="smcap">our
-Canonical Gospels</span>; and the Memoirs of the year one hundred
-and forty, <i>were</i> <span class="smcap">our Canonical Gospels</span>. And we take
-our stand with Justin, with these Gospels in our hands,
-only forty years from the death of John, the beloved disciple,
-and at the close of a hundred years from the crucifixion of our
-Lord. And still we ascend the stream.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_53" href="#FNanchor_53" class="label">[1]</a> Wright’s Logic, etc., p. 187, Tischendorf, p. 43.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_54" href="#FNanchor_54" class="label">[2]</a> Norton’s Genuineness of the Gospels, etc., Part II. c. 1; Wright, p. 187.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_55" href="#FNanchor_55" class="label">[3]</a> Wright, pp. 188, 189, Tischendorf, p. 35.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_56" href="#FNanchor_56" class="label">[4]</a> Stowe’s Origin, etc., p. 176.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_57" href="#FNanchor_57" class="label">[5]</a> Origin, etc., p. 35; Wright, p. 189.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_57"></a>[57]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI.<br />
-<span class="smaller">STILL ASCENDING THE STREAM.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The evidence thus far has proved beyond a reasonable
-doubt that at the writing of Justin’s First Apology, the Canonical
-Gospels were read with the Prophets in city and country,
-on “the day called Sunday,” as authentic Memoirs of our
-Lord. Assuming the date<a id="FNanchor_58" href="#Footnote_58" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> of this Apology to have been
-A.D. 138 or 139, the time was a little over one hundred years
-from the Crucifixion, and less than eighty years from the
-death of Mark and Luke, and all the Apostles other than
-John, and only forty years from his death. How long were
-these periods as they affect the argument from the universal
-reception of the Gospels in Justin’s time, and from the universal
-tradition in their favor which accompanied such reception?
-The writer has within two days (in April, 1881) met
-with three persons who saw Lafayette on his visit to New
-England in 1824. One of them distinctly remembers the
-sentiment<a id="FNanchor_59" href="#Footnote_59" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> which Lafayette gave at Concord, and another
-shook hands with him. There were hundreds of Revolutionary
-soldiers present, some of whom the General recognized
-and called by name, although he had not seen their faces for
-more than forty years. This was in 1824. Whittier’s poem
-describes one of these soldiers, as he now remembers him, at
-the time of Monroe’s tour in 1817, <i>sixty-four years ago</i>:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“Once a soldier, blame him not,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">That the Quaker he forgot,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">When to think of battles won,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And the red coats on the run,</div>
- <div class="verse indent6">Laughed aloud Friend Morrison.”</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>And throughout the country there are thousands now living<a id="FNanchor_60" href="#Footnote_60" class="fnanchor">[A]</a><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_58"></a>[58]</span>
-who well knew men who were in active life during the War
-of the Revolution. In the <i>Granite Monthly</i> for December,
-1880, was published the Diary of Rev. Timothy Walker of
-Concord, for the year 1780, and there were earlier Diaries
-kept by him which have been preserved by his descendants.
-The Diary of Matthew Patten of Bedford, from 1750 to 1790,
-is in the custody of Charles H. Woodbury, Esq., of New
-York. The Congregational church at Concord, of which
-Timothy Walker was the first pastor, November, 1880, celebrated
-its one hundred and fiftieth anniversary. There are
-several towns in New Hampshire, as Londonderry, Dover,
-Exeter and Portsmouth, that were settled earlier than Concord;
-and some of them as early as 1623. The landing of
-the Pilgrims was <i>two hundred and sixty years ago</i>. It seems
-but as yesterday. A century from the Crucifixion was no
-longer than a century now; and as an event, to be remembered,
-the Crucifixion was as much greater than the Landing
-of the Pilgrims as the glory of the noonday sun is above that
-of the feeblest star in the most distant heavens. The time
-that has elapsed since Timothy Walker wrote Diaries which
-are now in existence is as long as from the Crucifixion to
-Justin’s Apology; more than thirty years longer than from
-the martyrdom of Peter and Paul to Justin’s Apology; and
-sixty years longer than from John’s death to Justin’s Apology.
-The churches in Justin’s time were not dealing with
-writings from a dim and misty past, or of limited or infrequent
-use. None were as ancient as Walker’s Diary; the
-last had not seen half its years; they were in all the churches,
-and read every Sabbath day. The argument which proves<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_59"></a>[59]</span>
-that there was no substitution between 140 and 180 is as
-much more forcible to prove that there was no substitution
-between the years 100 and 140, or between the years 60 and
-100, as those times were nearer the great events which the
-Gospels recorded. If, for example, there were accepted
-Memoirs of our Lord in the churches in the year 100, from
-the presumed <i>continuance</i> of a state of things the existence of
-which has been proved,<a id="FNanchor_61" href="#Footnote_61" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> it should be <i>presumed</i> that they
-remained in the churches till Justin’s time, there being no
-evidence to the contrary. And so there would be the same
-(or greater) difficulties in the way of displacement and substitution,
-between the year 100 and the year 140, as between
-the year 140 and the year 180. Justin and his contemporaries
-had from their own recollection,<a id="FNanchor_62" href="#Footnote_62" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> or from others, whether parents,
-teachers, presbyters or bishops, as great facilities for
-knowing what Memoirs were accepted in the churches
-forty years before, as had Irenæus and his contemporaries in
-respect to the period of forty years before one hundred
-and eighty. And there was a succession and continued life in
-the churches from 100 to 140, the same as from 140 to 180.
-This reasoning is applicable to Clement and his contemporaries,
-and shows that Memoirs which were in the churches
-in the year 100 could not have displaced accepted and
-generally received Memoirs of any previous period. We
-know from the Epistle of Clement, as clearly as from Justin’s
-Apology, how Christians loved and adored their Divine Lord
-and Master, and how strongly attached they must have been
-to any Memoirs of him, which they accepted as authentic.
-And the testimony of Pliny is, that Christians in his day
-were accustomed to meet before daybreak and sing a responsive
-hymn to Christ as God. It is utterly incredible that
-accepted Memoirs of Christ, thus worshipped, should have
-been thrown aside by presbyters or bishops, and hundreds of
-churches, throughout the Roman Empire, without a shock
-that would have left unmistakable evidences of it in history.
-There being an entire absence of any evidence of displacement<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_60"></a>[60]</span>
-and substitution, it is <i>morally certain there was none</i>.
-John’s Gospel, however, stands upon a different footing, since
-it came in not to displace, but to supplement. John lived to
-the close of the first century. <i>Who dared</i> to forge a spurious
-Gospel in his name, so soon after his death that it had
-obtained such a footing in the churches, at the end of forty
-years, as to be quoted as his production? <i>Who</i>, during that
-period, was <i>capable</i> of composing it? And how were hundreds
-of presbyters or bishops, and churches, from Syria to
-Gaul, persuaded to receive a spurious Gospel, as the genuine
-work of the beloved disciple who was in life within the personal<a href="#Footnote_62" class="fnanchor">[4]</a>
-recollections of many? It is a fact to be emphasized,
-that neither this Gospel, nor the others, can be assailed on
-historical or traditional grounds. <i>There is but one history or
-tradition</i> concerning them. The objections to them are either
-negative or speculative, mere assumptions, not supported by
-any history or tradition.</p>
-
-<p>The first <i>use</i> of the four Gospels of which there is any history,
-is in statements of facts found to be recorded in them,
-and in quotations of teachings of Christ, corresponding with
-them. The first <i>description</i> of them after Papias, is that of
-“Memoirs” of Christ, “drawn up” by Apostles and companions
-of Apostles. The first mention of them <i>by the names
-of the writers</i>, ascribes their authorship to the men whose
-names they now bear. There is no history or tradition of a
-time when the first Gospel was ascribed to any but Matthew,
-or the second to any but Mark, or the fourth to any but
-John<a id="FNanchor_63" href="#Footnote_63" class="fnanchor">[5]</a>, or the third, with Acts, to any but Luke. The standing
-objection that none of them is mentioned <i>by name</i> till the
-time of Theophilus, and Irenæus, and the writer of the Muratori
-Canon, is not of the slightest consequence as opposing
-evidence. For, if these Gospels were not mentioned by name,
-neither were any<a id="FNanchor_64" href="#Footnote_64" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> others; and surely we are not expected to
-believe that there were <i>no originals</i>, from which the many
-quotations, from Clement of Rome, in the year 97, down, were
-taken. This objection proves too much. For it proves, if it<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_61"></a>[61]</span>
-proves anything, that there were <i>no</i> Gospels or writings to
-answer to the quotations, which, under the circumstances, is
-a palpable absurdity. Besides, it is not true in respect to the
-First and Second Gospels, for Papias, certainly as early as the
-middle of the second century, and probably before the year
-140, gave the <i>names</i> of Matthew and Mark respectively, as
-their authors, the latter being “the interpreter of Peter.”</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_58" href="#FNanchor_58" class="label">[1]</a> Judge Waite controverts the generally received opinion of the date of
-Justin’s First Apology. Verissimus became Cæsar in 139, but he is not
-addressed as Cæsar, but as “philosopher.” In reply to this, Mr. Waite
-says, that the same is true of the Second Apology, “which is admitted by
-all to have been written after 139.” In the first place, there is considerable
-uncertainty which of the Apologies was first written, and some critics
-maintain that what is called the Second was a preface to the First, and
-others still that it was a continuation of the First. (See introductory notice
-to Vol. II. of the A. N. C. L.) In the second place, the address to Urbicus
-in the so-called Second Apology, was not by <i>Justin</i>. He only gives it
-as the language of <i>one Lucius</i>, in narrating an occurrence which, for aught
-that appears, may have taken place before the year 139. Mr. Waite also
-says that Justin would be but twenty-five years of age in 139. He might
-have written his Apology in 139, nevertheless. And there are many who
-put his birth earlier than the year 114, and some as early as the year 85.
-There are no certain data by which to determine the time of his birth.
-Again he says that Marcion did not come to Rome till about 140, and that
-Justin (c. 26) refers to him as being “even at this day alive, and teaching
-his disciples to believe in some God greater than the Creator.” But Justin
-meant to express his abhorrence of his doctrines. He refers to him as “a
-man of Pontus,” and again (in c. 58) as “Marcion of Pontus,” and says the
-devils put him forward. He nowhere describes him as being <i>of</i> Rome or <i>at</i>
-Rome. In his extensive travels he doubtless knew of him while he was at
-Pontus. Judge Waite also says that, if in the year 139, Justin would have
-said that Christ was born 140 years ago, instead of 150. But correcting the
-error for the beginning of our Era, the time would have been A.D. 146, or
-144, as we allow four or six years for the error, and Justin, using round
-numbers, would more naturally have taken the longer period. There is
-nothing therefore in Judge Waite’s arguments to change the opinion in
-what he concedes to be “the very valuable Encyclopedia of McClintock and
-Strong,” and of Page, Neander, Lemisch, Roberts and Donaldson, Sears,
-Fisher, Eusebius, (c. 8) and many others, assigning the year 139. See also
-Canonicity, by Dr. Charteris (1880) p. lv. It is, however, not essential to
-the argument from the First Apology, whether it was written in the year
-139, or 144, or 146, or even 150 of our Era. By as much as it lengthens
-the period from the death of John to the date of the First Apology, it
-shortens the time between that date and the year 180.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_62"></a>[62]</span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_59" href="#FNanchor_59" class="label">[2]</a> “The memories of Light Infantry Poor and Yorktown Scammel.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_60" href="#FNanchor_60" class="label">[A]</a> Rev. Simeon Parmelee, D.D., celebrated his one hundredth birthday
-at the house of his son-in-law Hon. E. J. Hamilton, ex-mayor of the city of
-Oswego, N. Y., Jan. 16, 1882. His intellect was clear, and to those who
-called he had an ever ready response, and replied happily and wittily to
-the addresses. He had been in the ministry from 1808 to 1869, and, for
-years after, preached occasionally. His eldest daughter is 72 years of age,
-and his descendants now living, number 53. Upon his 90th birthday he
-wrote a hymn of considerable merit. When 100 years old, he remembered
-with vivid freshness the Inauguration of George Washington, although at
-that time but in his 8th year. See <i>Congregationalist</i>, Jan. 25, 1882.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_61" href="#FNanchor_61" class="label">[3]</a> See Phillips, Parker, and Greenleaf, as quoted in c. 8.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_62" href="#FNanchor_62" class="label">[4]</a> Justin in his First Apology (c. 15) refers to many of sixty or seventy
-years of age, who have been Christ’s disciples from childhood.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_63" href="#FNanchor_63" class="label">[5]</a> Prof. Fisher (p. 69) says, that besides the few individuals called the
-Alogi, or men “without understanding,” there is no allusion to the denial
-of John’s authorship of the Fourth Gospel by any writer, before the latter
-part of the fourth century.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_64" href="#FNanchor_64" class="label">[6]</a> As to the controverted reference in Justin’s Apology to “Memoirs of
-Him,” see <a href="#CHAPTER_IV">c. 4</a>, and <a href="#Footnote_39">c. 7, note 14</a>. That, if correctly interpreted by
-Judge Waite, could only have been Mark’s Gospel.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_63"></a>[63]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII.<br />
-<span class="smaller">IN THEIR PROPER REPOSITORIES.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Certain propositions have been established by facts and arguments
-that cannot be successfully controverted:</p>
-
-<p>(<i>a</i>) The advent of Christ and its stupendous results.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>b</i>) The formation of numerous churches which by the end
-of the first century were in all parts of the Roman Empire,
-with presbyters or bishops and elders in every church, and
-many thousands of communicants.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>c</i>) They regarded him with the greatest reverence and
-affection, obeying his commands as their Lord and Master,
-paying him divine honors, and for his sake joyfully yielding up
-their lives.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>d</i>) Of his disciples and followers, twelve, called Apostles,
-were understood to have special authority from him in the
-Church.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>e</i>) From the nature of the case we should look for the reception
-in these numerous churches, of Memoirs of their Lord
-which they would <i>deem</i> authentic, and at so early a period,
-that they would be able to <i>determine</i> whether they were
-authentic or not.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>f</i>) To such Memoirs, once accepted, they would be so
-strongly attached that they could not be displaced and others
-substituted for them, in hundreds of churches in all the Roman
-Empire, without such controversy as would have left indubitable
-evidence of it.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>g</i>) As far back as history goes, doctrines<a id="FNanchor_65" href="#Footnote_65" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> were taught, facts
-asserted, and quotations made, corresponding with the Canonical
-Gospels, and such use was continued until a time when
-there is a positive identification of them by name. Within
-this period there was one writer making numerous quotations
-and references, who declared that the writings from which he<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_64"></a>[64]</span>
-quoted, and to which he referred, were “Memoirs” of Christ
-“drawn up” by Apostles or companions of Apostles.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>h</i>) There is no proof of the existence of writings <i>other</i>
-than those Gospels answering to his description, or corresponding
-with the quotations; and finally within forty years of
-his first reference to these “Memoirs” they are clearly seen
-to be the Canonical Gospels.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>i</i>) From first to last there is no evidence whatever of displacement
-of Gospels previously accepted, and the substitution
-of others for them in the churches generally.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>j</i>) The Fourth Gospel is of such a character, and was in
-use so soon after the death of its author (and who is also stated
-as its author in the Gospels itself), as to make the idea of
-attempted and successful <i>forgery</i> in the highest degree
-improbable.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>k</i>) And these Gospels within less than eighty years
-from the death of the Apostles other than John, and within
-forty years of <i>his</i> death, were read with the Prophets in the
-churches, in city and country, every Lord’s day, <i>and accepted
-as Apostolic</i>.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>l</i>) From the earliest period they were where they should
-be if authentic, and where they could not have been, unless
-<i>accepted</i> as authentic.</p>
-
-<p>Some illustrations have already been given in chapter eleven
-of the brief interval between the Apostles and Justin Martyr.
-Let any intelligent reader of sixty, from his own recollection,
-or any young person, from the recollections of others with
-whom he is acquainted, determine for himself. The writer
-was admitted to the Bar almost forty years ago; he has within
-a few months seen an original deed<a id="FNanchor_66" href="#Footnote_66" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> of land in Londonderry
-(the home of his ancestors) executed one hundred and fifty
-years ago; he has in his possession certified copies of certificates
-of marriages and births, in his own genealogical record—going
-back from one to two hundred years, in one instance
-two hundred and thirty years, and these certificates would be
-received as <i>evidence</i> in any Court. They would be received,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_65"></a>[65]</span>
-because made by the proper custodian of public documents,
-found in the proper repository for them. The presumption of
-law in such case is the judgment of charity. It presumes that
-documents found in their proper repository, and not bearing
-marks of forgery, are genuine. A deed forty years old, followed
-by a possession agreeing with it, is admitted in evidence
-without other proof of its execution. Our Gospels in Justin’s
-time were where they <i>should</i> have been, if authentic. The
-Church was the proper repository for authentic Memoirs of
-its Founder. <i>Our Gospels were there.</i> They were in their
-proper repository. And upon every principle that rules in the
-administration of justice, or in the common affairs of life, it
-must be presumed that they were <i>rightfully</i> there. Their rejection
-is <i>not</i> “the judgment of charity.” It reverses the
-maxim that fraud is not to be presumed. It charges forgery,
-of which there is no evidence, upon persons whom it finds it
-impossible to discover and identify. It imputes ignorance and
-indifference to multitudes who had every opportunity for knowing
-the truth, and who were willing to suffer all things for
-their convictions of the truth. It presses, as of vital consequence,
-trivial objections and alleged errors in chronology,
-geography and history, which (if made out) would not for a
-moment be thought sufficient to successfully impugn the authenticity
-of any secular work as well supported by external
-evidence. It is unnecessary to further consider such objections.<a id="FNanchor_67" href="#Footnote_67" class="fnanchor">[3]</a>
-It is no exaggeration to say, that the various
-theories and speculations of those who deny the genuineness of
-the Gospels are, in the main, but ingenious attempts at the
-solution of the problem: “Given, the impossibility of miracles,
-what may be supposed to be the true history of Jesus Christ?”
-The only consistent answer that could be made, would be that
-upon such an hypothesis, it is impossible to determine what
-was his life or character. But, given, the possibility of miracles
-(and if there is a God they must be possible), there is no
-reasonable doubt of the authenticity of the Gospels, and the
-book of Acts. They come to us from their proper repositories,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_66"></a>[66]</span>
-and must be presumed to be rightfully there. They are
-proved to have been in those repositories within but a short
-period from the death of the Apostles. They were accepted
-as Apostolic, and as having been drawn up by Apostles or
-companions of Apostles. If such undoubted reception, and
-use, and tradition, at so early a period, and thence until now,
-cannot be <i>trusted</i>, no credit can be given to <i>any</i> writings or
-history from ancient times. They <i>can</i> be trusted. The
-stream which eighteen hundred years ago was issuing from
-Apostolic times and the hills of Palestine, has flowed onward,
-enriching and blessing the nations.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_65" href="#FNanchor_65" class="label">[1]</a> Mr. Waite assumes that Clement did not hold to a literal resurrection.
-Clement’s language admits of no such construction, although in writing to
-Christians who understood all about it, he was not as definite upon this
-point, as Justin in <i>his</i> address to a different class. Clement refers to the
-resurrection in c. 24: “Let us consider, beloved, how the Lord continually
-proves to us that there shall be a future resurrection, of which he has
-rendered the Lord Jesus Christ the first fruits by raising him from the
-dead.” And again in c. 42, after saying that the Apostles were commissioned,
-he adds: “Having therefore, received their order, and being fully
-assured by the resurrection of our Lord Jesus Christ, and established in the
-Word of God, with full assurance of the Holy Ghost, they went forth proclaiming
-that the kingdom of God was at hand.” The force of this language
-is not controlled by any means, by reference to the day’s following
-the night, and the springing up of the fruits of the earth, from the sowing
-of the seed.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_66" href="#FNanchor_66" class="label">[2]</a> The deed dated June 16, 1731, was by David Morrison, one of the
-grantees in the Charter of Londonderry of 1722, to his brother-in-law,
-David McAlister. This deed with another from the same grantor to William
-McAlister dated February 24, 1746, are now in the possession of Jonathan
-McAlister, Esq., a descendant of David and an owner of the original granted
-land.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_67" href="#FNanchor_67" class="label">[3]</a> One other correction should be made. Judge Waite arbitrarily assigns
-Cerinthus to the year 145. He gives no reason or authority for it. It is
-the testimony of all antiquity that Cerinthus was contemporary with the
-Apostle John, and that John died about the year 100. Irenæus, upon the
-authority of Polycarp, says that John, being about to enter a bath and finding
-Cerinthus within, drew back saying: “Let us even be gone lest the
-bath should fall to pieces,—Cerinthus, that enemy of the truth, being
-within.” See Vol. II., Encyclopedia of McClintock and Strong, p. 190.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_67"></a>[67]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII.<br />
-<span class="smaller">INTEGRITY OF THE GOSPELS.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>As stated in former chapters, this is to be presumed till
-the contrary is shown. There is, however, strong confirmation
-from many sources.</p>
-
-<p><i>First.</i>—The writings of the Apostolic Fathers present to
-our view the Christ of the Gospels, in his advent and life,
-ministry and teaching, death and resurrection. In particular,
-his resurrection from the dead is cited by Clement (A.D. 97)
-as an earnest of that of his followers, and as a proof that he
-came forth from God. The greatest of miracles, and the
-central fact of Christianity, appears in the earliest writings
-(outside of the New Testament), the date of which can be
-determined. Judge Waite, in his “wonderful hundred<a id="FNanchor_68" href="#Footnote_68" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> years
-of silence by Christian writers” concerning the miracles of
-Christ, is oblivious of what he had before stated, that aside
-from the Gospels, there are left of the first century “only the
-Epistles of Paul, the one Epistle of Clement of Rome, some
-slight notices by Jewish and heathen writers, and the few
-legends and traditions preserved in the writings of the Fathers.”
-Such an argument from silence, <i>where there are no
-writings extant</i>, is not befitting <i>a judge</i>.</p>
-
-<p><i>Second.</i>—The earliest quotations substantially agree with
-the Canonical Gospels. Some of those by Justin Martyr
-have been given in chapters five and six, and those by
-Clement may be found in the Note.<a id="FNanchor_69" href="#Footnote_69" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> These quotations by
-Apostolic and Christian Fathers, afford ample<a id="FNanchor_70" href="#Footnote_70" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> means for
-comparison, and no variations appear to indicate any changes
-to affect the character or teachings of our Lord. Professor
-Fisher says<a id="FNanchor_71" href="#Footnote_71" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> of <i>Justin’s</i> references, that they embrace “not
-more” than two sayings of Jesus that have not substantial
-parallels in the four Evangelists. The first is, “In what<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_68"></a>[68]</span>
-things I shall apprehend you, in these will I judge you,”
-which is found also in Clement of Alexandria, and Hippolytus.
-The second is, “There shall be schisms and heresies,” a prediction
-referred also to Christ by Tertullian. These sayings
-may have come from <i>tradition</i>. It seems not improbable that
-they were current expressions, embodying what Jesus taught<a id="FNanchor_72" href="#Footnote_72" class="fnanchor">[5]</a>
-respecting the standard by which men shall be judged according
-to the light which they have received, and divisions in
-the same household. (See <a href="#CHAPTER_VI">cc. 6 to 8</a> <i>ante</i>).</p>
-
-<p><i>Third.</i>—The facts in Christ’s history referred to by the
-Fathers, with very rare exceptions (the most of which were
-stated and explained in chapter seven), correspond with the
-Evangelists. The exceptional facts are such as would naturally
-have been derived from tradition, and they in no way
-change the life or character of our Lord as they appear in
-the Gospels. The marvel is, that they should be so few and
-unimportant, considering that some of the writers lived at a
-time when<a id="FNanchor_73" href="#Footnote_73" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> “traditionary reminiscences must have possessed
-all their freshness.”</p>
-
-<p><i>Fourth.</i>—Marcion’s Gospel (written as early as the year
-145), except in intentional omissions and mutilations, for
-which he was sharply called to an account by Tertullian,
-presents a substantial agreement with Luke’s Gospel. Judge
-Waite claims that it was earlier than Luke’s; but the almost
-unanimous verdict of scholars is against him. Indeed, Professor
-Fisher, in the March number of the <i>Princeton Review</i>
-for 1881 (p. 217), says: “That Marcion’s Gospel was an
-abridgment of our Luke is <i>now conceded on all hands</i>, even
-by the author of ‘Supernatural Religion.’ Dr. Sanday has
-not only demonstrated this by a linguistic argument, but has
-proved by a comparison of texts that the Gospel of the Canon
-must have been for some time in use, and have attained to a
-considerable circulation, before Marcion applied to it his
-pruning-knife. There is no reason to doubt that he took for
-his purpose a Gospel of established authority in the Church.”
-Professor Curtiss also says that “the weight of scholarship is<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_69"></a>[69]</span>
-overwhelmingly in favor of the priority of Luke.” And he
-quotes from the last edition of the “Supernatural Religion,”
-the admission referred to by Professor Fisher. Its anonymous
-author says that Dr. Sanday’s very able examination “has
-convinced us that our earlier hypothesis is untenable; that the
-portions of our third Synoptic, excluded from Marcion’s
-Gospel, were really written by the same pen which composed
-the mass of the work; and, consequently, that our third
-Synoptic existed in his time, and was substantially in the
-hands of Marcion.” Dr. Sanday<a id="FNanchor_74" href="#Footnote_74" class="fnanchor">[7]</a> shows, as he expresses
-it, that Marcion’s Gospel stands to Luke’s “entirely in the
-relation of <i>defect</i>. We may say entirely, for the additions are
-so insignificant—some thirty words in all, and those for the
-most part supported by other authority—that for practical
-purposes they are not to be reckoned. With the exception
-of these thirty words inserted, and also some slight alterations
-of phrase, Marcion’s Gospel presents simply an <i>abridgment</i>
-of our St. Luke.” That Marcion’s Gospel was not one of
-Justin’s “Memoirs,” is plain from his calling him a wolf,<a href="#Footnote_74" class="fnanchor">[7]</a>
-“sent forth by the devil.” Although Marcion’s Gospel is
-not in existence, except as reproduced from the works of
-Tertullian and Epiphanius, its agreement with Luke (with
-the exceptions which they pointed out) becomes important
-evidence that Luke is to-day as it was in the year one hundred
-and forty-five.</p>
-
-<p><i>Fifth.</i>—Our Gospels and Acts before the close of the
-second century of our era were translated into other languages,
-and the Syriac, Coptic and Latin versions which have
-come down to us with some imperfections and slight variations,
-are in substantial agreement with our present version
-in all that is material. A translation of a given date presumably
-represents a text of greater age than itself. Hence the
-manuscripts from which these translations were made were
-older than the year two hundred, and probably older than the
-year one hundred and fifty.</p>
-
-<p><i>Sixth.</i>—The early and continued multiplication of copies<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_70"></a>[70]</span>
-affords strong evidence. Those who copied from originals
-deemed authentic would certainly endeavor to make exact
-copies. As these Memoirs were read in all the churches,
-and, doubtless, in Christian families and Christian schools,
-they soon became very numerous. There was fraternal intercourse
-between the churches. Any substantial difference
-in the copies would be noticed. Any such differences would
-be transmitted in copies made from these copies, and so on, to
-the manuscripts which have reached us. The number of copies
-before the tenth persecution (commenced A.D. 300, and lasting
-ten years) must have reached many thousands.<a id="FNanchor_75" href="#Footnote_75" class="fnanchor">[8]</a> So complete
-was then supposed to be the extinction of Christianity,
-that coins were struck and inscriptions set up, recording the
-fact, that the “Christian superstition” was now utterly exterminated,
-and the worship of the gods restored by Diocletian,
-who assumed the name of Jupiter, and Maximian, who
-took that of Hercules. This persecution, in addition to the
-destruction of life, was specially<a id="FNanchor_76" href="#Footnote_76" class="fnanchor">[9]</a> directed to the destruction
-of copies of the Scriptures.</p>
-
-<p><i>Seventh.</i>—Constantine, their successor, in the year 331,
-caused fifty copies of the Scriptures to be made for Byzantium,
-under the care of Eusebius of Cæsarea, the church historian.
-The manuscript discovered by the celebrated Tischendorf,
-in 1859, at the convent of St. Catherine, on Mount
-Sinai, is believed to be one of those copies, and to be the
-oldest<a id="FNanchor_77" href="#Footnote_77" class="fnanchor">[10]</a> Greek manuscript in existence. <i>If</i> one of the fifty, it
-is more than fifteen hundred years old. It is called the
-Sinaitic Codex. The second rank belongs to the Vatican
-Codex. Its date is probably not later than the fourth century.
-The next in the order of time is the Alexandrian Codex.
-Its date is the latter part of the fourth century or the
-beginning of the fifth century. The Vatican has been in the
-Vatican Library since 1445. The Alexandrian was sent, in
-1628, by the Patriarch of Constantinople, to Charles I., and
-is now in the British Museum. The Sinaitic was presented
-by its discoverer to the Emperor of Russia. There is no<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_71"></a>[71]</span>
-doubt whatever that these three manuscripts were written
-back of the “dark ages,” and at a time when the true text
-could be known with great exactness, and was comparatively
-free from errors. With these, there are fifty manuscripts
-that are a thousand years old. There are, it is estimated,
-more than seventeen hundred manuscripts of the whole, or
-portions, of the New Testament, ranging in date from the
-fourth to the sixteenth century. Providence, says Tischendorf,
-has ordained for the New Testament more sources of
-the greatest antiquity than are possessed by all the old Greek
-literature put together. The number of manuscripts of the
-Greek Classics, says<a id="FNanchor_78" href="#Footnote_78" class="fnanchor">[11]</a> Professor Stowe, is very small compared
-with the Greek Testament manuscripts, and the oldest
-of them scarcely reaches nine hundred years. There are such
-differences between the Sinaitic, Vatican, and Alexandrian
-manuscripts as indicate that no two of them were taken from
-the same original. A little reflection will convince any one,
-that while no single copy may be literally exact from its
-original, the multiplication of copies adds greatly to substantial
-accuracy as the result of the whole. For although there
-is a tendency to a repetition of <i>some</i> errors, by different copyists
-from the same original, as where successive sentences end
-with the same word, yet, in general, different copyists would
-make different errors, one in one part of the instrument, and
-the other in another, and, where the copies are numerous,
-they mutually correct each other. So it happens that in the
-different manuscripts of the New Testament, with different
-readings of many thousands (counting all trifles, like the
-omission to dot an <i>i</i> or cross a <i>t</i> in English chirography, as
-different readings), there is substantial agreement. It is a
-fact to be emphasized, says<a id="FNanchor_79" href="#Footnote_79" class="fnanchor">[12]</a> Professor Fisher, “that the
-Scriptures are almost utterly free from wilful corruption;”
-and he endorses the opinion of the great critic, Bentley, that
-the real text “is competently exact in the worst manuscripts
-now extant; nor is one article of faith or moral precept either
-perverted or lost in them.” And examining the subject in<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_72"></a>[72]</span>
-hand from a lawyer’s standpoint, the <i>worst</i> manuscript, or
-translation, or version, is sufficient for the purposes of the
-argument. And to cite once more the great authority of
-Professor Greenleaf,<a id="FNanchor_80" href="#Footnote_80" class="fnanchor">[13]</a> to the genuineness of the Four Gospels:
-“The entire text of the Corpus Juris Civilis is received
-as authority in all the courts of Continental Europe, upon
-much weaker evidence of its genuineness; for the integrity of
-the Sacred Text has been preserved by the jealousy of opposing
-sects beyond any moral possibility of corruption; while
-that of the Roman Civil Law has been preserved only by
-tacit consent, without the interest of any opposing school to
-watch over and preserve it from alteration.”</p>
-
-<p>And now (1882) the New Revision, both of the text and
-of the translation, by scholars who have no superior, and the
-careful product of ten years’ labor, has been long enough
-before the world to know the results. Not a single fact or
-witness to the Resurrection is lost, and not a single doctrine
-is changed, while many passages are better understood.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_68" href="#FNanchor_68" class="label">[1]</a> He puts the date of the Epistle of Barnabas, A. D. 130, but it is generally
-placed earlier.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_69" href="#FNanchor_69" class="label">[2]</a> “Be merciful that ye may obtain mercy; forgive that it may be forgiven
-to you; as ye do, so shall it be done unto you; as ye judge so shall
-ye be judged; as ye are kind so shall kindness be shown to you; with what
-measure ye mete with the same it shall be measured to you” (c. 13). Matt.
-vi. 12-15; Matt. vii. 2; Luke vi. 36-38. “This people honoreth me with
-their lips, but their heart is far from me” (c. 15). Matt. xv. 8; Mark vii. 6.
-“Woe to that man! It were better for him that he had never been born,
-than that he should cast a stumbling block before one of my elect, yea it
-were better for him that a millstone should be hung about his neck, and
-he should be sunk in the depths of the sea, than that he should cast a
-stumbling-block before any of my little ones” (c. 46). Matt. xviii. 6; Matt.
-xxvi. 24; Mark ix, 42; Luke xvii. 2.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_70" href="#FNanchor_70" class="label">[3]</a> The entire Gospel could be reproduced from those writings, including
-Irenæus, Tertullian, Clement of Alexandria, and Origen.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_71" href="#FNanchor_71" class="label">[4]</a> The <i>Princeton Review</i> for March, 1881, p. 201.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_72" href="#FNanchor_72" class="label">[5]</a> Matt. x. 34-36; Luke x. 13-15; Luke xii. 47-53.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_73" href="#FNanchor_73" class="label">[6]</a> Bampton Lectures for 1877, p. 221, by the Rev. C. A. Row, M. A.,
-Pembroke College, Oxford, Prebendary of St. Paul’s Cathedral.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_74" href="#FNanchor_74" class="label">[7]</a> Ap. I., cc. 22, 58. See also Sanday’s Gospels of the Second Century,
-p. 214, and “Canonicity,” by A. H. Charteris, D. D., 1880, pp. 76, 393.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_73"></a>[73]</span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_75" href="#FNanchor_75" class="label">[8]</a> Norton estimates the number by the close of the second century at sixty
-thousand, which may be a large estimate.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_76" href="#FNanchor_76" class="label">[9]</a> Vol. VII. of McClintock and Strong, p. 966; Neander’s Church History,
-Vol. I., p. 148. Neander says that Feb. 22, A.D. 303, on one of the great
-pagan festivals, at the first dawn of day, the magnificent church of Nicomedia
-(then the imperial residence) was broken open, the copies of the Bible
-found in it were burned, and the whole church abandoned to plunder and
-then to destruction. The next day was published an edict that all assembling
-of Christians for the purpose of religious worship was forbidden; churches
-were to be demolished to their foundations; all manuscripts of the Bible
-should be burned; those who held places of honor and rank must renounce
-their faith, or be degraded; those belonging to the lower walks of private
-life to be divested of their rights as citizens and freemen; slaves were to
-be incapable of receiving their freedom so long as they remained Christians;
-and in judicial proceedings the torture might be used against all
-Christians of whatsoever rank. “It is quite evident,” says Neander, “that
-the plan now was to extirpate Christianity from the root.” But it was the
-darkness which preceded the dawn, for this was the <i>last</i> of the Pagan persecutions.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_77" href="#FNanchor_77" class="label">[10]</a> A facsimile steel engraving forming the frontispiece to Tischendorf’s
-New Testament, gives specimens of the Greek text in which these three
-manuscripts are severally written. The difference in the style of the text
-is one great means by which experts determine the age of the manuscript.
-The oldest manuscripts are written in large, square, upright capitals; and
-they are called Uncials. The later manuscripts are written in flowing
-scripts; they are called Cursives. The proportion of Uncial to Cursive
-manuscripts is about one to ten. The Cursive was introduced in the tenth
-century.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_78" href="#FNanchor_78" class="label">[11]</a> Origin and History of the Books of the New Testament, by Prof. C. E.
-Stowe, A.D. 1867, pp. 31, 62.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_79" href="#FNanchor_79" class="label">[12]</a> In Scribner’s Monthly for February, 1881, p. 617.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_80" href="#FNanchor_80" class="label">[13]</a> An Examination of the Testimony of the Four Evangelists by the rules
-of Evidence administered in Courts of Justice, etc. By Simon Greenleaf,
-LL.D., Royal Professor of Law in Harvard University (A.D. 1846),
-p. 28.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_74"></a>[74]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIV">CHAPTER XIV.<br />
-<span class="smaller">THE CREDIBILITY OF THE EVANGELISTS.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The question of their credibility is before that of their
-inspiration. If uninspired, they may have given us everything
-essential to the determination of Christ’s resurrection.
-If inspired, inspiration may have been bestowed in such a
-manner as to leave them subject to some of the limitations of
-human testimony. If reliable accounts of the life, teachings,
-death, and resurrection, of our Lord, were to be published to
-the world, it was of the last importance that they should not
-carry upon their face the appearance of collusion and contrivance.
-Let any one who is disturbed by any seeming contradictions
-or errors, consider for a moment what would be
-the consequence if they did not exist. If each writer
-narrated the same occurrences and teachings and in the same
-terms, it would be extremely difficult, if not impossible, to
-believe that they were independent witnesses. And so, if
-each should give all of the same occurrences and teachings,
-although in different terms, or a part of them, but in the same
-terms, it would be almost as difficult to believe that we have
-independent witnesses. As it is, no question can arise.
-Neither of them covers the whole ground, and where the
-same matters appear, it is, in general, except in brief passages
-easily remembered, in different terms. We are <i>sure</i> there
-was no collusion. We are sure we have the testimony of
-independent writers. This is conceded. Says Judge Waite (pp.
-311, 313): That the Gospels “are not merely copied one from
-the other, with changes, is the almost unanimous verdict of
-Biblical scholars.” And in this, he expresses the verdict of
-those who reject, not less than of those who accept the Gospels.
-Among the limitations attending mere human testimony,
-are, that, ordinarily, no witness will state the whole of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_75"></a>[75]</span>
-any transaction, and no two witnesses will state it in precisely
-the same terms, unless there is fraud or collusion, and the
-testimony of each is but the recital of something that has
-been committed to memory. Another limitation is, that
-even with two or more witnesses, errors to some extent will
-come in. There will be some lack of correct observation, or
-some misrecollection,—not only the omission of a part, but
-positive misstatement by one or more of the witnesses. The
-whole transaction is to be gathered <i>from all</i> the witnesses.
-And the law, having respect to human infirmities, says it
-is enough in all cases to prove the <i>substance</i> of words alleged
-to have been spoken, or the substance of the issue, in any
-civil or criminal cause; immaterial errors of time, or place, or
-distance, or other circumstance, will be disregarded. Now it
-is <i>conceivable</i> that the Evangelists, under the guidance of the
-Divine Spirit, may have been left (to some extent) subject to
-these limitations, in order that their testimony, conforming to
-these laws of observation and memory, be the more credible.
-Hence, whether the Evangelists, in this stage of the inquiry,
-be regarded as inspired or uninspired, it is labor lost, to
-adduce alleged errors<a id="FNanchor_81" href="#Footnote_81" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> or contradictions which, if made out,
-could not seriously affect their honesty and general competency.
-In order that a witness receive our confidence, we
-should be satisfied of his means of knowledge, his capacity to
-ascertain the facts, and his disposition to give a correct
-account of them. Two of the writers, Matthew and John,
-were of the twelve (and John was the beloved disciple) and
-hence they had the best possible means of knowing the facts.
-Matthew, from his business of a tax-gatherer, may be presumed
-to have been sharp, shrewd and observant. John,
-from his most intimate association, was pre-eminently qualified
-to give testimony. He gives it with solemnity equal to
-an oath: “And he that saw bare record, and his record is
-true; and he knoweth that he saith true, that ye might
-believe” (c. xix. 35). “And many other signs truly did
-Jesus in the presence of his disciples, which are not written<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_76"></a>[76]</span>
-in this book; but these are written, that ye might believe
-that Jesus is the Christ, the Son of God; and that believing,
-ye might have life through his name” (c. xx. 30, 31). Again,
-after stating what Peter asked concerning the disciple
-“whom Jesus loved,” and what followed, it is said: “This is
-the disciple which testifieth of these things, and who wrote
-these things; and we<a id="FNanchor_82" href="#Footnote_82" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> know that his testimony is true” (c.
-xxi. 20-24). This Gospel, obviously written later than the
-others, omits much that is contained in them, and is, so to
-speak, of higher order. The first incident mentioned in it, is
-the witness borne to Christ by the Baptist. It gives none of
-the parables, so abundant in the Synoptics.<a id="FNanchor_83" href="#Footnote_83" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> It relates but
-two of the miracles recorded in them, <i>i. e.</i> the feeding of the
-five thousand, and the walking upon the water, (c. vi. 1-21).
-It adds six miracles not recorded in the Synoptics (among
-which is the raising of Lazarus), numerous conversations and
-discourses of the greatest interest, and facts relating to the
-crucifixion and resurrection, of great weight as evidence. It
-is written in purer Greek than the others; its style<a id="FNanchor_84" href="#Footnote_84" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> is elegant
-and graceful; it gives every indication of calm, thoughtful and
-deliberate composition, and in these respects tends to confirm
-the uniform tradition that it was the ripe product of a mind and
-heart, enriched, quickened, and vitalized, by familiar intercourse
-with our Lord and the truths which he declared, as well
-as by the Spirit promised to the Apostles. Men with favorable
-native gifts, become educated fast under such influences.</p>
-
-<p>It affords about the only means for a connected chronological
-history of our Lord’s ministry, which is seen to have
-embraced a longer<a id="FNanchor_85" href="#Footnote_85" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> period, than could have been ascertained
-from the Synoptics.</p>
-
-<p>Although Mark was not one of the twelve, the character of
-his Gospel in its life-like description of events, and its
-omitting nothing<a id="FNanchor_86" href="#Footnote_86" class="fnanchor">[A]</a> where Peter was prominent, confirms the
-tradition, that he was an attendant upon Peter’s ministry,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_77"></a>[77]</span>
-and was his interpreter. Nine-tenths<a id="FNanchor_87" href="#Footnote_87" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> of the incidents
-related in Mark are also recorded in the other Gospels.</p>
-
-<p>Luke was an educated man, and, as he incidentally discloses,
-a companion of Paul in a part of his journeyings. His
-Gospel was evidently drawn up with great care. In the prologue
-(c. i. 1-5) he gives a reason for his writing, and the
-sources of his information. “Many have taken in hand to set
-forth in order a declaration of those things which are most
-surely believed among us.” These things, he says, “were
-delivered unto us by those who from the beginning were eye
-witnesses and ministers of the Word.” He was stimulated to
-give an additional narrative (“having had perfect understanding
-of all things from the very first”) for the satisfaction
-of his friend, Theophilus, and in order that he might know
-“the <i>certainty</i> of those things,” wherein he had been
-instructed. No historian could enter upon his work in a
-better spirit, or with more excellent qualifications and opportunities.
-In a subsequent treatise which in terms refers to
-the former, he finds nothing to retract or qualify. Can any
-one tell why Luke, as a historian, is not entitled to as much
-credit as Josephus?</p>
-
-<p>In comparing the Gospels with each other, or with
-Josephus, it should be constantly borne in mind, that
-<i>omission</i> (except under special circumstances) <i>is not contradiction</i>.
-The facts of history, like the conclusions of a jury,
-are to be drawn from all credible sources, and the transaction
-deemed to be as shown upon <i>all</i> the evidence. <i>Positive</i>
-testimony from a single witness may prove a fact against the
-<i>negative</i> testimony of any number of witnesses, who are silent
-upon the subject.</p>
-
-<p>It is also to be remembered that the Gospels are not so
-much connected histories, as reminiscences of events and
-teachings, with but little regard (sometimes an utter disregard)
-to their chronological order. Neither Gospel is, of itself,
-any approach to a connected history from Christ’s birth to
-his ascension. The events, so far as known to us, are to be<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_78"></a>[78]</span>
-gathered <i>from them all</i>. Mark begins with the Baptist at the
-river Jordan, and John at about the same time. It is not to
-be inferred that they knew nothing of the infancy, or childhood,
-or young manhood of Jesus. Matthew omits the
-presentation at the temple, the vision to the Shepherds,
-and other incidents; and Luke omits the visit of the Wise
-men, the slaying of the children, the flight into Egypt, and
-other incidents. But in so doing, neither contradicts the
-other; nor does Josephus, by his silence concerning these
-events, contradict the Evangelists. He may have been
-ignorant of some of these events, for he was not born until
-the year 37, and, being a Jew and not a Christian, he might
-not choose to mention those which had come to his knowledge.</p>
-
-<p>Luke’s Gospel may or may not have made use of writings
-then in existence relating to Christ (but which never found
-general acceptance), and the same is true of the First and
-Second Gospels. <i>It is no impeachment of their credibility.</i>
-Every historian makes such use of materials that he deems
-reliable, as best answers his purpose, and his history is none
-the less trustworthy on that account. Hence, as a matter of
-evidence, it is of no consequence how many or how few, previous
-manuscripts may be traced in our Gospels, or either of
-them. Such writings had an ephemeral existence, never
-came into general use, and the Four Gospels and no others
-were the accepted Gospels in all the churches. Whatever
-literature of the kind preceded them perished so early that
-it cannot be told when it disappeared, or what was its character
-or completeness.</p>
-
-<p>The Evangelists give every mark of honest witnesses.
-Their story is simple, straightforward and unimpassioned,
-even under circumstances calculated to arouse resentment.
-They seem intent upon nothing but the giving of a truthful
-narrative, not sparing themselves or extenuating their own
-faults. Their frequent incidental allusions to matters of government,
-custom, nationality, etc., and minuteness of detail,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_79"></a>[79]</span>
-are such as would never be found in false witnesses. “A false
-witness,” says Mr. Greenleaf, “will not willingly detail any
-circumstances in which his testimony will be open to contradiction,
-nor multiply them where there is danger of being detected
-by a comparison of them with other accounts equally
-circumstantial.”</p>
-
-<p>It would detract nothing from the credit of the Evangelists,
-if, in the multitude of their incidental references, error
-should be found in a few of them, for some error is inseparable
-from all human productions; and their inspiration may not
-have been so circumstantial as to exclude immaterial errors.</p>
-
-<p>With such differences as show most convincingly that
-the Evangelists are independent witnesses, there is such
-unity in the character and life of Christ, as exhibited by them,
-as shows the same <i>original</i> for the likeness. This essential
-unity of the Gospel is evidenced by the fact that not a single
-church or communion exists, that does not accept <i>all</i> the Gospels,
-if <i>either</i>.</p>
-
-<p>From internal evidence, it is extremely probable that the
-Synoptics were written before the destruction of Jerusalem.
-Luke was certainly written before Acts, and the history in
-Acts is not carried later than the year 62, eight years before
-that event. As the four undisputed Epistles were all written
-before the year 60, the logical order will be to present the
-testimony of Paul to the Resurrection before that of the
-Evangelists.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_81" href="#FNanchor_81" class="label">[1]</a> President Bartlett believes that notwithstanding its long line of exposure,
-the outer historical difficulties seem reduced to the solitary question
-of the taxing under Cyrenius. (The <i>Princeton Review</i> for January, 1880,
-p. 44.) Aside from any question of inspiration, it is improbable that Luke
-made a mistake. Justin Martyr, who wrote at a very early period, in his
-Apology to the Roman Emperor, refers to this taxing as a well known
-event (Ap., c. 34). He again refers to it in his Dialogue (c. 78) as being the
-first census taken in Judea under Cyrenius. Celsus, who was not wanting
-in skill or inclination to attack at all points, found no occasion here. It
-may well be that a person holding the office which Cyrenius held at the
-first enrolment was called a “procurator.” Or Luke in speaking of this
-enrolment may have referred to Cyrenius by the title which he afterwards
-bore; or Cyrenius may have been in the office twice. President Bartlett
-also concludes with Warrenton that there is not any instance of a really
-inapposite quotation from the Old Testament, although the quotations are
-sometimes inaccurate. He also concludes that the instances of alleged
-<i>contradictions</i> may be reduced to five, and that there is no insurmountable
-difficulty in reconciling them. But, for reasons stated in the text, the inquiry
-is not material to our argument.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_80"></a>[80]</span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_82" href="#FNanchor_82" class="label">[2]</a> Many suppose that the “we” are the Elders at Ephesus. But if
-so, why did they not sign? The “we” preceded by the unmistakable reference
-to John and followed by the first person singular, in the closing
-verse, is as likely to have been John.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_83" href="#FNanchor_83" class="label">[3]</a> “Synoptics”—a word often used by writers at the present day to designate
-the first three Gospels.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_84" href="#FNanchor_84" class="label">[4]</a> The Apocalypse is quite different in style and in respect to pure
-Greek. For these reasons and others some of the early Fathers denied
-that the Apostle wrote it. But such was the early tradition. Justin Martyr
-refers to him as the author, and as Dr. Sears, in his Heart of Christ,
-well argues, these differences are sufficiently accounted for by the highly
-excited state of mind in which the Apocalypse was written; and he points
-out many agreements both in doctrine and mode of expression.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_85" href="#FNanchor_85" class="label">[5]</a> Three years, and possibly four.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_86" href="#FNanchor_86" class="label">[A]</a> Its omission of Peter’s want of faith, as recorded in Matthew 14-30, is
-an exception.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_87" href="#FNanchor_87" class="label">[6]</a> Wright’s Logic, etc., p. 210; Norton’s Genuineness, etc., Vol. I., p. 188;
-Wescott’s Introduction, cc. 3 and 4.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_81"></a>[81]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XV">CHAPTER XV.<br />
-<span class="smaller">THE APOCALYPSE AND THE FOUR EPISTLES.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>While all Infidels, from Celsus before the year 180 to Waite,
-in 1881, have agreed that “either Jesus was not really dead,
-or he did not really rise again,” some<a id="FNanchor_88" href="#Footnote_88" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> of them have assumed
-the one, and some the other alternative. Strauss, with Celsus,
-doubts the reality of the resurrection, rather than the death.
-Schleiermacher, on the other hand, held that Jesus returned
-again to life from a state of lethargy; and this view, although
-not the position generally taken by skeptics, is still held by a
-very few.</p>
-
-<p>There have been two institutions in the Christian church,
-the Lord’s Supper and the Lord’s day, that have testified from
-the beginning that Jesus was really dead, and did really rise
-again from the dead. They displaced the Jewish Passover
-and the Jewish Sabbath, both strongly entrenched in the law
-of Moses and long established custom. Such substitution can
-be accounted for, only upon the hypothesis of the fullest conviction
-of the death and resurrection of our Lord. The Lord’s
-day is referred to by Paul in First Corinthians (c. xvi.) under the
-designation of “the first day of the week,” and is mentioned
-by John in Revelation (c. i. 10), where he says, “I was in
-the Spirit on the Lord’s Day.” The Lord’s Supper has great
-prominence given to it by Paul in the eleventh chapter of
-First Corinthians. Those to whom he writes are admonished
-not to eat “of that bread,” or drink “of that cup,” in an unworthy
-manner, “For as often as ye eat this bread and drink
-this cup, ye proclaim the Lord’s death till he come.” As to
-the origin of this sacrament, he says, “I have received of the
-Lord that which I also delivered unto you, that the Lord Jesus
-the same night in which he was betrayed took bread, and when
-he had given thanks, he brake and said, Take, eat; this is my<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_82"></a>[82]</span>
-body broken for you; this do in remembrance of me: and
-after the same manner also he took the cup, when he had
-supped, saying, This cup is the New Testament in my blood;
-this do ye as oft as ye drink it, in remembrance of me.” This
-Epistle was written as early as the year<a id="FNanchor_89" href="#Footnote_89" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> 57, or within 27 years
-after the Crucifixion. It is not to be doubted that such a
-command would be observed from the first formation of any
-church. Both the death and resurrection of Christ appear in
-the book of Revelation. He is called “The first begotten of
-the dead” (c. i. 5), “He that liveth and was dead” (c. i. 88),
-“The Lamb as it had been slain,” before whom the four living
-creatures and the elders (as representing the whole Church) fall
-down, saying, “Thou art worthy to take the book, and to open
-the seals thereof; for thou wast slain, and hast redeemed us
-to God by thy blood, out of every kindred, and tongue, and
-people, and nation” (c. v. 6 to 10). And John says that he
-was in exile, “for the Word of God, and for the testimony of
-Jesus Christ” (c. i. 9). What was this “testimony,” other
-than that which Luke says in Acts (c. iv. 2) was given by
-Peter and John when the Sadducees were “grieved that they
-taught the people, and preached through Jesus Christ the resurrection
-from the dead;” or other than that, given by Peter
-in the presence of John, (c. iii. 15) that the Jews had “killed
-the Prince of Life, whom God hath raised from the dead;
-<i>whereof we are witnesses</i>.” Even from the book of Revelation<a id="FNanchor_90" href="#Footnote_90" class="fnanchor">[3]</a>
-alone, were there no other proof, should we conclude that
-<i>John</i> testified that Jesus died and rose again.</p>
-
-<p>This was the burden of <i>Paul’s</i> preaching and the inspiration
-of his life.</p>
-
-<p>Nor do we stop with Paul. From his writings we know
-that all the Apostles and the whole Church from the beginning,
-maintained the same grand theme with all the strength
-of conviction of which men are capable. He had been
-preaching three years prior to the first visit to Jerusalem referred
-to in Galatians (c. i. 18). At this visit he had “returned
-again,” to Damascus. His leaving Damascus was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_83"></a>[83]</span>
-probably the time when he was let down from the wall in a
-basket, as stated in Second Corinthians (c. xi. 33), and the
-city was then held “under Aretus the King.” Fourteen years
-after his conversion or his escape (it is uncertain which), he
-went up to Jerusalem with Barnabas, taking Titus also with
-him. The precise date of his conversion is unknown, but was
-approximately<a id="FNanchor_91" href="#Footnote_91" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> in the year 36. He writes of the last visit
-mentioned in Galatians, “that when James, Cephas and John,
-who seemed to be pillars, perceived the grace that was given
-unto me, they gave to me and Barnabas the right hand of
-fellowship; that we should go unto the heathen, and they unto
-the circumcision.” From that time, then, if not before, with
-the full recognition of all the Apostles, he became distinctively
-the Apostle to the Gentiles. And at the first visit mentioned,
-he saw James, the Lord’s brother, and also Peter, and abode
-with him fifteen days. Afterwards, he went into the regions
-of Syria and Cilicia, and was unknown by face unto the
-churches of Judea, but they had heard, “That he which persecuted
-us in times past now preacheth the faith which once
-he destroyed;” and he says, “they glorified God in me”
-(c. i. 18-24). He says in the thirteenth verse, “Ye have
-heard of my conversation in time past, in the Jews’ religion,
-how that beyond measure I persecuted the church of God and
-wasted it.”</p>
-
-<p>As there is no doubt what “the faith” was, which he
-preached after his conversion, so there is no doubt what
-“the faith” was “which once he destroyed.” Within three
-years after the commencement of his ministry, he saw
-James the Lord’s brother, and abode with Peter fifteen days;
-and at the expiration of the fourteen years, <i>all</i> the Apostles
-were ready to give him the right hand of fellowship. As
-there is no doubt what “faith” <i>he</i> preached (which was the
-same which he had destroyed), so there is none as to what
-faith the <i>others</i> preached, and <i>had</i> preached from the beginning.
-<i>His conversion was within six years of the Crucifixion.</i>
-As he from that time preached Jesus and the Resurrection,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_84"></a>[84]</span>
-there is no doubt but that Jesus and the Resurrection were
-preached during the six years before his conversion. Hence,
-from Paul’s four Epistles (whose genuineness is beyond controversy),
-we are inevitably carried back to the first ministry
-of <i>any</i> of the Apostles, for the time when the doctrine of the
-Resurrection was <i>first</i> proclaimed. This conclusion is
-reached without recourse to the testimony of either of the
-Evangelists; and believers may say with Renan, though in
-a different spirit, “Thanks to the Epistle to the Galatians!”
-If from this Epistle the <i>precise</i> commencement of the ministry
-of Peter and John cannot be determined, it must be inferred
-that it was before, and apparently some time before, Paul’s
-conversion, which, as has been seen, was <i>within six years</i>
-of the Crucifixion. For this reason, as well as many others,
-the importance of Paul’s testimony can hardly be overestimated.</p>
-
-<p>But in order that its full force may be better apprehended,
-it may be useful to present it more in detail, as: In Romans
-“God commendeth his love toward us in that while we were
-yet sinners, Christ died for us” (Rom. v. 8); “Christ being
-raised from the dead, dieth no more” (Rom. vi. 9); “Christ
-that died, yea, rather that is risen again, who is even at the
-right hand of God” (Rom. viii. 34); “Declared to be the
-Son of God, with power according to the spirit of holiness,
-by the resurrection from the dead” (Rom. i. 4); “The word
-is nigh thee, in thy mouth and in thy heart, that is the
-word of faith which we preach, that if thou shalt confess with
-thy mouth the Lord Jesus, and shalt believe in thy heart
-<i>that God hath raised him from the dead</i>, thou shalt be saved”
-(Rom. x. 8, 9); And to the Galatians—“Paul, an Apostle,
-not of men, neither by man, but by Jesus Christ, and God
-the Father who <i>raised him from the dead</i>” (Gal. i. 1); And
-to the Corinthians—“Now if Christ be preached that he
-rose from the dead, how say some among you that there is
-no resurrection of the dead!” “But if there be no resurrection
-of the dead, then is <i>Christ</i> not risen;” “And if Christ<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_85"></a>[85]</span>
-be not risen, then is our preaching vain, and your faith is
-also vain;” “Yea, and we are found false witnesses of God
-because we have <i>testified</i> of God that he raised up Christ,
-whom he raised not up, if so be that the dead rise not”
-(1 Cor. xv. 12 to 16); “For I delivered unto you FIRST OF
-ALL that which I also received, how that Christ died for
-our sins according to the Scriptures; and that he was
-buried, and that he rose again the third day according
-to the Scriptures; and that he was seen of Cephas, then
-of the twelve; after that he was seen of about five hundred
-brethren at once, of whom the greater part remain unto
-this present, but some are fallen asleep; after that he was
-seen of James; then of all the Apostles; and last of all he
-was seen of me also, as one born out of due time; for I am
-the least of the Apostles and am not meet to be called an
-Apostle because I persecuted the Church of God” (1 Cor.
-xv. 3-10).</p>
-
-<p>We know not with what body Jesus appeared to Paul six
-years after his ascension; nor with what body or just when
-his saints shall rise. But when Paul says that Christ, having
-died for our sins, was <i>buried</i> and rose again the <i>third day</i>,
-and was seen by those enumerated, it would be a most violent
-perversion of language to infer that it was not a <i>material</i>
-resurrection. His flesh had not then seen corruption, and he
-had not yet ascended. The state of things had changed at
-the time he was seen by Paul, and hence the mode of his
-appearance was different. Paul could not have been ignorant
-that the Apostles were persuaded that they beheld and
-handled the corporeal body of their risen Lord, and if he
-had entertained a different idea of the character of the appearances
-to them, he could not have written as we have
-quoted. As will be shown in subsequent chapters, he had
-“received,” a corporeal resurrection, and so he “delivered.”</p>
-
-<p>These four Epistles of Paul were written about A.D. 58, or
-within less than thirty years from the Crucifixion. By them,
-two things are established beyond dispute. <i>First</i>, the doctrine<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_86"></a>[86]</span>
-of the Resurrection, whether true or false, is not a <i>myth
-or legend</i>, in any sense in which those words are commonly understood,
-or in any sense in which they should ever be used.
-Nor are the appearances or <i>supposed</i> appearances of our risen
-Lord, mentioned by Paul (whether they be regarded as real
-or not), <i>myths or legends</i>. The <i>doctrine</i> of the Resurrection
-was not the product of a subsequent age; it was received
-from the beginning. Nor were the <i>appearances</i> of our risen
-Lord, which were the basis of that doctrine, the product of
-a subsequent age. A skeptic, if he will or must, may say
-that the doctrine is not true, and that the appearances which
-were accepted as evidence of it were not real; but he cannot
-without an abuse of language say that the one, or the others,
-are <i>myths or legends</i>.</p>
-
-<p><i>Second</i>, the Apostles and early disciples most intensely
-believed the doctrine to be true, and the appearances to be
-real. Even Strauss is compelled to admit their sincerity.
-He concedes that the Epistle to the Corinthians is undoubtedly
-genuine. And he says that on its authority, “One must
-believe that many members of the primitive church who were
-yet living at the time when this Epistle was written, especially
-the Apostles, were convinced that they had witnessed
-appearances of the risen Christ.” (Strauss’ Life, etc., p. 832.)
-And this is generally conceded by all skeptics at the present
-day who have any claim to be even tolerably informed upon
-the subject of the Resurrection, and any disposition to deal
-with it in any spirit of fairness. This narrows our inquiry
-very much. Thus far we rest on solid ground. We start
-with the fact fully established, that we are not dealing with
-myths, or legends, concerning a remote transaction. We
-know precisely what convictions in respect to the Resurrection
-were entertained at the very time of the transaction, by
-those best qualified to judge; and we also know many of the
-facts, upon which these convictions were based. We may
-say, if we choose, that the supposed appearances were not
-real; but we cannot say they are an <i>afterthought</i>. They<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_87"></a>[87]</span>
-must have been entertained from the very beginning, certainly
-as early as the day of Pentecost. The Apostles believed
-with most intense earnestness, that they had seen their
-<i>Risen Lord</i>, and had received from him their Commission to
-disciple all nations, baptizing them into the name of the
-Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.</p>
-
-<p>Their honesty being conceded, the only question remaining
-is, <i>were they deceived</i>? Mistake on their part could only
-have been in one or two things; either that he did not die
-upon the cross, or else that he was not alive afterward. And
-here it is important to observe, that the Evangelists do little
-more than give to some extent the times and circumstances
-of transactions already declared, in the Epistles, to have
-occurred. Of course those transactions as they were understood
-when the Epistles were written, <i>had</i> their times and
-circumstances. Paul declared what he had “received,”—that
-Jesus <i>died</i> and was <i>buried</i>. The Gospels state the time
-and the attending circumstances. Paul declared, as he had
-“received,”—that Christ <i>rose again the third day</i>. The Gospels
-state the circumstances. Paul declared, as he had “received,”—that
-Jesus after he rose on the third day, was seen
-by Cephas, then by the twelve, after that by about five hundred
-brethren, after that by James, and then again by all the
-Apostles. The Gospels and the first chapter of Acts state
-the circumstances of some, though not of all, of these several
-appearances. From what we know already from Paul’s
-Epistles, further information from some source should be
-expected; and the Evangelists afford that information. We
-must believe that they state the <i>circumstances</i>, as they were
-understood when Paul wrote his Epistles, and as they were
-understood when the Resurrection was first proclaimed on
-the day of Pentecost. As the principal facts, <i>i. e.</i> the Resurrection
-and subsequent visible appearances till the Ascension,
-were not an afterthought, neither are the <i>circumstances</i>
-attending them as recorded by the Evangelists,
-an afterthought. In respect to these circumstances, we<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_88"></a>[88]</span>
-can see and know what the Apostles <i>supposed</i> they saw, and
-heard, and knew.</p>
-
-<p>The Evangelists, therefore, by stating circumstances not
-specified by Paul, enable us to determine more certainly,
-whether the Apostles were deceived. And what they state
-of Christ’s predictions of his death and his resurrection, may
-also help us to determine whether the Apostles were deceived.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_88" href="#FNanchor_88" class="label">[1]</a> Strauss’ Life of Jesus, Vol. II., pp. 843-4; Godet’s Com. on St. Luke,
-A.D. 1881, p. 511.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_89" href="#FNanchor_89" class="label">[2]</a> Conybeare and Howson’s Life, etc., of Paul, p. 962.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_90" href="#FNanchor_90" class="label">[3]</a> Judge Waite will not admit John’s authorship, and he cites Eusebius
-cc. 3-39, as having attributed the Apocalypse to John the Presbyter. This
-may indicate a present “tendency” by skeptical writers to shift their
-ground. Eusebius, however, only states that there were two, John the
-Apostle, and John the Presbyter, and that “it is probable that the
-second, if it be not allowed that it was the first, saw the Revelation
-ascribed to John.” Justin Martyr had long before (Dial., c. 81) in express
-terms given John the Apostle as the author; and such is the general
-verdict of scholars.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_91" href="#FNanchor_91" class="label">[4]</a> Conybeare and Howson, pp. 438, 961, 964.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_89"></a>[89]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVI">CHAPTER XVI.<br />
-<span class="smaller">HIS PREDICTIONS CONCERNING HIMSELF.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In the account of Christ’s crucifixion by Matthew and
-Mark, it is recorded that they which passed by railed on him,
-saying,—“Thou that destroyest the temple and buildest it in
-three days, save thyself”; and that witnesses had testified to
-the same accusation, but did not agree. The disagreement
-seems to have been, that some (Mark xiv. 58) testified that
-he said,—“I will destroy this temple that is made with
-hands and in three days I will build another made without
-hands,” and the others (Matthew xxvi. 61) “I am able to destroy
-the temple of God and to build it in three days.” The Evangelists
-properly characterize both classes as <i>false</i> witnesses.
-Jesus had not said, “<i>I will</i> destroy,” nor “I am <i>able</i> to destroy,”
-but, “Destroy (<i>thou</i>) this temple.” It was not a
-destroying by <i>him</i>, but by <i>them</i>; and it was the temple of
-his own body. It was the earliest, and in some respects the
-most striking of his predictions of his death and resurrection.
-It was on the occasion of his cleansing the temple at the first
-Passover. The Jews demanded of him, “What sign showest
-thou unto us, seeing thou doest these things?” Jesus said,
-“Destroy this temple and in three days I will raise it up.” The
-Jews therefore said, “Forty and six years was this temple in
-building, and wilt thou rear it up in three days? But he
-spake of the temple of his body. When, therefore, he was
-raised from the dead his disciples remembered that he spake
-this, and they believed the Scripture and the word which
-Jesus had said.” (John ii. 13 to 22.)</p>
-
-<p>It must have been soon after this Passover, and certainly
-before John the Baptist was cast into prison, that Jesus said
-to Nicodemus, that, as Moses lifted up the serpent in the
-wilderness, even so must the Son of Man be lifted up, that<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_90"></a>[90]</span>
-whosoever believeth may in him have eternal life. (John iii.
-14, 15.) Nicodemus does not appear again, until his mild
-protest to the rest of the Sanhedrim,—“Doth our law judge
-a man except it first hear from himself, and know what he
-doeth?”<a id="FNanchor_92" href="#Footnote_92" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> They answered and said unto him, “Art thou also
-of Galilee? Search and see that out of Galilee ariseth no
-prophet.” He was silent. (John viii. 45 to 52.) But when
-Jesus had been put to death as a malefactor, no longer afraid,
-he comes with Joseph of Arimathea, bringing a mixture of
-myrrh and aloes, about a hundred pounds weight, and they
-gave the Crucified One a princely burial. (John xix. 39, 40,
-41.) What had wrought this change in Nicodemus? The
-lifting up upon the cross, was to <i>him</i> assured proof that Jesus
-was a true “prophet, and more than a prophet.”</p>
-
-<p>On more than one occasion in his early ministry, Jesus in
-reply to a demand for a sign from heaven had said, “There
-shall no sign be given but the sign of Jonah the prophet;
-for as Jonah was three days and three nights in the belly of
-the whale, so shall the Son of man be three days and three
-nights in the heart of the earth.” (Matthew xii. 38 to 40;
-Luke xi. 29.) That he should be there only three days and
-three nights implied his resurrection. To any objection that
-he was not in the tomb any part of three nights, the customary<a id="FNanchor_93" href="#Footnote_93" class="fnanchor">[2]</a>
-use of language among the Jews is a sufficient answer.
-In the <i>Talm hieros</i>, it is said that a day and a night
-together make up a period; and a part of such a period is
-counted as the whole. It is a received<a id="FNanchor_94" href="#Footnote_94" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> rule among the Jews
-that a part of a day is put for the whole. Yet that the prediction
-was expressed in such terms, is strong evidence of
-the truthfulness of the record. As Godet well says, “Who
-would ever have dreamed of <i>falsely</i> putting in the mouth of
-Jesus the expression three days and three nights, when in
-actual fact the time spent in the tomb did not exceed one
-day and two nights?”</p>
-
-<p>Jesus, when called to account for healing on the Sabbath
-day, answered: “My Father worketh even until now, and I<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_91"></a>[91]</span>
-work.” For this cause, therefore, the Jews sought the more
-to kill him, because he not only broke the Sabbath, but also
-called God his own Father, making himself equal with God.
-In reply Jesus said: “For as the Father raiseth the dead,
-and quickeneth them, even so the Son quickeneth whom he
-will ... Verily, verily, I say unto you, The hour cometh
-and now is, when the dead shall hear the voice of the Son of
-God; and they that hear shall live.... Marvel not at this,
-for the hour cometh, in which all that are in the tomb shall
-hear his voice, and shall come forth; they that have done
-good, unto the resurrection of life; and they that have done
-ill, unto the resurrection of judgment.” (John v. 1 to 29.)</p>
-
-<p>In his discourse in the Synagogue at Capernaum, concerning
-the manna, he said to the Jews: “The bread which I
-give is my flesh (that is, my life), for the life of the world....
-For my flesh is meat indeed, and my blood is drink indeed....
-Many therefore of his disciples when they heard,
-said, ‘This is a hard saying; who can hear it?’ But Jesus
-knowing in himself that his disciples murmured at this, said
-unto them, ‘Doth this cause you to stumble? <i>What</i> then
-if ye behold the Son of man ascending where he was before.’”
-(John vi. 30 to 63.)</p>
-
-<p>His first distinct announcement that he should be put to
-death and be raised from the dead, was upon Peter’s confession,— “Thou
-art the Christ the Son of the living God;”
-and it doubtless was in consequence of this confession. It
-was after John the Baptist had been put to death, and after
-the third Passover, but before the time had come for a public
-declaration of his Messiahship; for he charged the disciples
-that they should tell no man that he was the Christ. The place
-was in the coast of Cesarea Philippi, near the sources of the Jordan.
-With verbal differences, the same account substantially
-is given by each of the Synoptics, and as follows: “From that
-time began Jesus to show unto his disciples, how that he
-must go into Jerusalem and suffer many things of the elders
-and chief priests and scribes, and the third day be raised up.”<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_92"></a>[92]</span>
-(Matthew xvi. 21.) “And he began to teach them that the
-Son of Man must suffer many things, and be rejected of the
-elders and the chief priests, and the scribes, and be killed,
-and after three days rise again.” (Mark viii. 31.) “The Son
-of Man must suffer many things and be rejected of the elders
-and the chief priests and scribes and be killed, and the third
-day be raised up.” (Luke ix. 22.) Such is the testimony of
-these three witnesses. They agree also, that he warned the
-disciples not to anticipate worldly glory, but the reverse.
-Peter, from <i>his</i> conception of the Messiahship, treated
-Christ’s predictions of his death as but gloomy forebodings,
-and began to rebuke him, saying, “Be it far from thee, Lord;
-this shall never be unto thee.” But he turned and said unto
-Peter, “Get thee behind me, Satan; thou art a stumbling
-block unto me: for thou mindest not the things of God but
-the things of men.” (Matthew xvi. 23; Mark viii. 33.)</p>
-
-<p>Six or eight days after these transactions Jesus took with
-him Peter and John and James, and went up into a mountain to
-pray; and he was transfigured before them. As they were
-coming down from the mountain “he commanded them to tell
-the vision to no man until the Son of Man be risen from the
-dead.” (Matthew xvii. 1, 2; Mark viii. 2 to 9; Luke ix. 28
-to 36.) Mark adds (doubtless from Peter), that they kept that
-saying, questioning among themselves, what the rising again
-from the dead should mean.</p>
-
-<p>Elijah’s appearance suggested to them the question, “Why
-do the scribes say that Elijah must first come?” To which
-Jesus replied, “Elijah is come already, and they knew him not,
-but did unto him whatsoever they listed. Even so shall the
-Son of Man also suffer of them.” Then understood the disciples
-that he spake unto them of John the Baptist (Matthew xvii. 10
-to 13). Mark (ix. 12 to 14) puts the reference to the Son of
-Man in the form of a question: “And how is it written of
-the Son of Man that he should suffer many things and be
-set at naught? But I say unto you that Elijah is come, and
-they have also done unto him whatsoever they listed, even<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_93"></a>[93]</span>
-as it is written of him.” In either form his own death is
-predicted.</p>
-
-<p>After the transfiguration he went to Capernaum, passing
-through Galilee. “And while they abode in Galilee, Jesus
-said unto them, ‘The Son of Man shall be delivered up into the
-hands of men; and they shall kill him, and the third day he
-shall be raised up.’ And they were exceeding sorry.” (Matthew
-xvii. 22, 23.) “‘The Son of Man is delivered up into
-the hands of men, and they shall kill him; and when he is
-killed, after three days he shall rise again.’ But they understood
-not the saying, and were afraid to ask him.” (Mark
-ix. 30 to 32.) “‘Let these words sink into your ears: for
-the Son of Man shall be delivered up into the hands of men.’
-But they understood not this saying, and it was concealed from
-them that they should not perceive it; and they were afraid
-to ask him about this saying.” (Luke ix. 44, 45.) It is not
-necessary to suppose that it was otherwise concealed than by
-their dullness of apprehension, and preconceived opinions.</p>
-
-<p>At the feast of Tabernacles, Jesus said to the officers
-whom the Pharisees had sent to take him: “Yet a little
-while am I with you, and I go unto him that sent me. Ye
-shall seek me and shall not find me: and where I am ye
-cannot come.” (John vii. 32 to 35.)</p>
-
-<p>He said the same to the Pharisees or the “Jews,” the day
-following the feast as he taught in the temple; and they
-said, “Will he kill himself, that he saith whither I go ye
-cannot come?” In reply, after repeating his previous declaration,
-he said, “When ye have lifted up the Son of Man,
-then shall ye know that I am he, and that I do nothing of
-myself, but as the Father taught me, I speak these things.
-And he that sent me is with me; he hath not left me alone;
-for I do always the things that are pleasing to him.” (John
-viii. 21 to 30.)</p>
-
-<p>In the parable of the good shepherd spoken soon after
-the Feast, Jesus says: “I am the good shepherd ... and I
-lay down my life for the sheep.... Therefore doth the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_94"></a>[94]</span>
-Father love me because I lay down my life that I may take
-it again. No man taketh it away from me, but I lay it down
-of myself. I have power to lay it down, and I have power
-to take it again. This commandment received I of my
-Father.” (John x. 11 to 18.)</p>
-
-<p>He said to Martha, “I am the resurrection and the life;
-he that believeth on me, though he die yet shall he live.”
-(John xi. 25.)</p>
-
-<p>As he was going up to Jerusalem to the Passover at which
-he was to suffer, he again repeated his announcement to his
-disciples. “Behold we go up to Jerusalem; and the Son of
-Man shall be delivered unto the chief priests and scribes;
-and they shall condemn him to death, and shall deliver him
-unto the Gentiles to mock, to scourge, and to crucify; and
-the third day he shall be raised up.” (Matthew xx. 18, 19.)
-“Behold, we go up to Jerusalem; and the Son of Man shall
-be delivered unto the chief priests and the scribes; and they
-shall condemn him to death, and shall deliver him unto the
-Gentiles; and they shall mock him, and shall spit upon him,
-and shall scourge him, and shall kill him; and after three
-days he shall rise again.” (Mark x. 33, 34.) “Behold we
-go up to Jerusalem, and all the things that are written by the
-prophets shall be accomplished unto the Son of Man; for he
-shall be delivered up unto the Gentiles, and shall be mocked,
-and shamefully entreated, and spit upon; and they shall
-scourge and kill him; and the third day he shall rise again.
-And they understood none of these things; and this saying
-was hid from them; and they perceived not the things that
-were said.” (Luke xviii. 31 to 34.)</p>
-
-<p>Immediately after (as it would seem), the mother of James
-and John came with them with the request, that the sons
-might sit one on his right hand, and one on his left hand, in
-his kingdom. The ten were moved with indignation. But
-Jesus said, “The Son of Man came not to be ministered unto,
-but to minister and to give his life a ransom for many.”
-(Matthew xx. 20 to 28; Mark x. 45.)</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_95"></a>[95]</span></p>
-
-<p>Six days before the Passover, he came to Bethany, where
-Lazarus was whom he had raised from the dead, and they
-made him a supper in the house of Simon; and Mary (the
-sister of Lazarus) anointed his head and feet with very precious
-ointment. This excited the anger of Judas. Jesus
-said, “Why trouble ye the woman, for she hath wrought a
-good work upon me. For ye have the poor always with you;
-but me ye have not always, for in that she poured this ointment
-upon my body she did it to prepare me for burial.
-Verily I say unto you, Wheresoever this Gospel shall be
-preached in the whole world, that also which this woman
-hath done shall be spoken of for a memorial of her.” (Matthew
-xxvi. 6 to 13; Mark xiv. 3 to 10; John xii. 2 to 8.)</p>
-
-<p>Immediately after his triumphal entry into Jerusalem, on
-the first day of the week of his crucifixion, he was told that
-certain Greeks desired to see him. It was to him a sign of
-his glorification among the Gentiles, and, therefore, of his
-death. He answered, “The hour is come that the Son of
-Man should be glorified. Verily, verily I say unto you, except
-a grain of wheat fall into the earth and die, it abideth by itself
-alone; but if it die, it beareth much fruit.... Now is my
-soul troubled; and what shall I say? Father, save me from
-this hour. But for this cause came I unto this hour....
-And I, if I be lifted up from the earth, will draw all men
-unto myself.” But this he said signifying by what manner of
-death he should die.” (John xii. 20 to 22.)</p>
-
-<p>The parable of the wicked husbandman (to be found in all
-the Synoptics) represents them as killing the son and heir,
-by whom, as the context shows, our Lord was intended.
-And Jesus said, “Did ye never read in the Scriptures:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">‘The stone which the builders rejected,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">The same was made the head of the corner;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">This was from the Lord,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And it is marvellous in our eyes.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Therefore, say I unto you, The kingdom of God shall be
-taken away from you, and shall be given to a nation bringing<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_96"></a>[96]</span>
-forth the fruits thereof. And he that falleth on this stone
-shall be broken to pieces; but on whomsoever it shall fall,
-it will scatter him as dust.” (Matthew xxi. 42 to 45; Mark
-xii. 1 to 12; Luke xx. 9 to 10.)</p>
-
-<p>And every day he was teaching in the temple; every night
-he went out and lodged in the Mount of Olives till the third
-day of the week (Tuesday) with which his public ministry
-ended; and then he departed from the temple, never to
-return.</p>
-
-<p>When he had finished his teaching in the temple, he said
-unto his disciples, “Ye know that after two days the Passover
-cometh, and the Son of Man is delivered up to be crucified.”
-(Matthew xxvi. 2.)</p>
-
-<p>Peter and John, as he had directed, made ready the Passover,
-and when the hour was come, he sat down, and the
-Apostles with him. And he said unto them, “With desire I
-have desired to eat this Passover with you before I suffer.”
-(Luke xxii. 7 to 15.)</p>
-
-<p>All the Evangelists state, that Jesus at the Passover supper
-said to the twelve, “One of you shall betray me”; and two
-of the Evangelists say that he designated the traitor, by the
-giving of the sop. (Matthew xxvi. 21 to 25; Mark xiv. 18 to
-21; Luke xxii. 21 to 23; John xiii. 21 to 35.)</p>
-
-<p>After giving him the sop, Jesus said to Judas, “That thou
-doest do quickly;” and he having received the sop, went
-out straightway to carry out that which he had before agreed;
-<i>and it was night</i>. (Luke xxii. 2 to 6; John xiii. 26 to 30.)</p>
-
-<p>After Judas had gone out, Jesus said, “Now is the son of
-man glorified, and God is glorified in him; and to Peter he
-said, Whither I go thou canst not follow me now, but thou
-shalt follow afterwards.” (John xii. 36, 37.)</p>
-
-<p>To the institution of the Lord’s Supper, there is the testimony
-of the three Synoptic Gospels, and that of Paul; four
-witnesses; and its constant observance from that time to the
-present. It was to commemorate his death to the end of the
-world,—“Take, eat, this is my body.... Drink ye all of it;<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_97"></a>[97]</span>
-for this is my blood of the covenant which is shed for many
-unto remission of sins.” (Matthew xvii. 26 to 28.) “Take ye;
-this is my body.” “This is my blood of the covenant which
-is shed for many.” (Mark xiv. 22 to 25.) “This is my body
-which is given for you; this do in remembrance of me....
-This cup is the new covenant in my blood, <i>even</i> that which
-is poured out for you.” (Luke xxii. 18 to 22.) “This is my
-body, which is for you; this do in remembrance of me....
-This cup is the new covenant in my blood; this do as oft
-as ye drink <i>it</i> in remembrance of me. For as often as ye
-eat this bread and drink the cup, ye proclaim the Lord’s
-death till he come.” (1 Corinthians xi. 23 to 28.)</p>
-
-<p>To his saying that he would go before them into Galilee
-after his resurrection, there are <i>two</i> witnesses. It was after
-they had sung their hymn, and had gone out unto the Mount
-of Olives. “All ye shall be offended in me this night; for
-it is written I will smite the shepherd, and the sheep of the
-flock shall be scattered abroad. But after I am raised up I
-will go before you into Galilee.” So, Matthew. Mark’s
-account is: “And Jesus saith unto them, All ye shall be
-offended; for it is written, I will smite the shepherd, and
-the sheep shall be scattered abroad. Howbeit after I am
-raised up I will go before you into Galilee.” (Matthew xxvi.
-31, 32; Mark xiv. 27, 28.)</p>
-
-<p>That Peter should thrice deny that he knew him, is proved
-by <i>all</i> the Evangelists. “Verily, verily, I say unto thee, that
-this night before the cock crow<a id="FNanchor_95" href="#Footnote_95" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> thou shalt deny me thrice.”
-(Matthew xxvi. 34, 35.) “I tell thee, Peter, the cock shall
-not crow this day, until thou shalt thrice deny that thou
-knowest me.” (Luke xxii. 34.) “Verily, verily, I say unto
-thee, the cock shall not crow till thou hast denied me thrice.”
-(John xiii. 38.) Mark (probably from Peter himself) says
-that when Peter said, “Although all should be offended, yet
-will not I,” Jesus said to him, “Verily I say unto thee, that
-thou to-day, <i>even</i> this night, before the cock crow twice, shalt
-deny me thrice.” “But he spake exceeding vehemently, If<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_98"></a>[98]</span>
-I must die with thee, I will not deny thee. And in like
-manner said they all.” (Mark xiv. 26 to 31.)</p>
-
-<p>Yet in the discourse which followed, Jesus again says,
-“Behold the hour cometh, yea, is come, that ye shall be
-scattered, every man to his own, and shall leave me alone;
-and yet I am not alone, because the Father is with me.”
-(John x. 31, 32.)</p>
-
-<p>“Yet a little while, and the world beholdeth me no more;
-but ye behold me; because I live ye shall live also.” (John
-xiv. 19, 20.)</p>
-
-<p>“Peace I leave with you; my peace I give unto you; not
-as the world giveth I give unto you. Let not your heart be
-troubled, neither let it be fearful.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ye heard how I said to you, I go away, and I come unto
-you. If ye loved me ye would have rejoiced, because I go
-unto the Father, for the Father is greater than I. And now
-I have told you before it come to pass, that when it is come
-to pass ye may believe.” (John xiv. 27 to 31.)</p>
-
-<p>“Greater love hath no man than this, that a man lay down
-his life for his friends. Ye are my friends if ye do the things
-which I command you.” (John xv. 13, 14.)</p>
-
-<p>“But now I go unto him that sent me, and none of you
-asketh me, Whither goest thou? But because I have spoken
-these things unto you sorrow hath filled your heart.” (John
-xv. 5, 6.)</p>
-
-<p>“A little while and ye behold me no more, and again
-a little while and ye shall see me.” (John xv. 16.)</p>
-
-<p>“Verily, verily, I say unto you, that ye shall weep and
-lament, but the world shall rejoice; ye shall be sorrowful,
-but your sorrow shall be turned into joy.” (John xvi. 20.)</p>
-
-<p>“And I am no more in the world, but these are in the
-world, and I come to thee.” (John xvii. 11.)</p>
-
-<p>“Again the high priest asked him and saith unto him, Art
-thou the Christ, the Son of the Blessed? And Jesus said, I
-am, and ye shall see the Son of Man sitting at the right hand
-of power, and coming with the clouds of heaven.” (Mark xiv.
-62.)</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_99"></a>[99]</span></p>
-
-<p>To Pilate he said, “I am a king”; and “Thou wouldst
-have no power against me, except it were given thee from
-above.” (John xviii. 33 to 37; xix. 11.)</p>
-
-<p>To the penitent thief he said, “Verily, I say unto thee, to-day
-shalt thou be with me in paradise.” (Luke xxiii. 43.)</p>
-
-<p>When he had cried with a loud voice <span class="smcap">he said, “Father,
-into thy hands I commend my spirit.”</span> (Luke xxiii. 46.)
-And all the Evangelists, four witnesses, say that he “gave
-up,” or “yielded up,” the ghost.</p>
-
-<p>There is as much evidence of these utterances (and they
-are not <i>all</i> of his predictions, in some form, of his death and
-resurrection), as there is of any of his sayings upon any subject,
-and they are so interwoven with the entire narrative that
-is impossible to set them aside, and leave anything to which we
-can safely assent as historically true of all his recorded acts
-and words. There is no alternative, except to believe that
-he uttered these predictions, or else to arbitrarily set aside
-the testimony of the four Evangelists, as well as that of Paul.
-It is impossible to save their character as honest witnesses,
-and deny that Jesus at various times, and in different ways,
-foretold his death and the circumstances attending it, and
-also his resurrection, and that after he was raised from the
-dead, he would go before them into Galilee. Not that we
-have the <i>precise</i> words, neither more nor less, that he uttered.
-In no instance do any two of the five witnesses give <i>precisely</i>
-the same words. Their testimony is in accordance with
-what usually<a id="FNanchor_96" href="#Footnote_96" class="fnanchor">[A]</a> occurs, with honest witnesses. The witness
-says, “I cannot give the exact words, or all of them.” He
-is told to give the substance of what was said; and he does
-so to the extent of his recollection, using some of the same
-words, doubtless, but in the main expressing the idea in language
-of his own. Yet there is sufficient certainty, for the
-court or jury, in matters of the greatest concern. It is, in the
-highest degree, unreasonable to demand more of the Evangelists.
-It is also to be borne in mind that neither of them<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_100"></a>[100]</span>
-professes to give all of our Lord’s sayings; and John, writing
-much later than the others, purposely omitted many things
-as having been already sufficiently stated.</p>
-
-<p>If, then (as it cannot be doubted was a fact), Jesus plainly
-foretold his death, why did it take his disciples by surprise?
-The answer to this question may be that not till within six
-months of the close of his ministry were they thus told;
-those months were crowded with his teachings and miracles,
-multitudes were following him; he had just before entered
-Jerusalem as they might expect their Messiah would do, amidst
-the hosannahs of thousands; and they were so filled with their
-visions of his glory, and their false conceptions of the predicted
-Messiah, whom they believed him to be, that they
-could not understand him. Their mistake under the circumstances
-was a natural one. (See also <i>post</i>, <a href="#CHAPTER_XIX">c. 19</a>.)</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_92" href="#FNanchor_92" class="label">[1]</a> Canon Farrar’s Life of Christ, c. 13; Lange, ditto, Vol. II., p. 29;
-John ii. 13-22, and iii 22-25. Here, and in all <i>subsequent</i> references,
-the citations are from the Revised Version of the New Testament, unless
-otherwise stated.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_93" href="#FNanchor_93" class="label">[2]</a> Lange, Vol. II., p. 273, note, citing Stier, ii, 171.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_94" href="#FNanchor_94" class="label">[3]</a> Lange, Vol. II., p. 273, note; Godet on Luke, p. 265; Whitby, as quoted
-by Scott, on Matthew xii. 40; Genesis i. 5; Daniel viii. 14, with Genesis
-vii. 4 and 17; Deuteronomy xiv. 28, with xxvi. 12; 1 Samuel xx. 12, with
-v. 19; 2 Chronicles x. 5, with v. 12; Matthew xxvi. 2, with xxvii. 63 and
-64; Luke ii. 21, with i. 59; 1 Kings xx. 29; Esther iv. 16; Greenleaf on
-the Evangelists, etc., 268, 269 and notes.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_95" href="#FNanchor_95" class="label">[4]</a> The cock crows about midnight and about three in the morning, which
-was the beginning of the fourth watch. Galicinium (Cock-crowing) standing
-alone means the latter time; so that the same time is referred to by
-all. Greenleaf’s Testimony, etc., p. 436, and citations.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_96" href="#FNanchor_96" class="label">[A]</a> See <i>post</i>, <a href="#CHAPTER_XIX">c. 19</a>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_101"></a>[101]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVII">CHAPTER XVII.<br />
-<span class="smaller">ORDER OF EVENTS.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Whatever difficulties may exist as to minor points, all the
-facts necessary to a correct decision of the question of the
-Resurrection may be ascertained with reasonable certainty,
-and the order of their occurrence.<a id="FNanchor_97" href="#Footnote_97" class="fnanchor">[A]</a></p>
-
-<p>That Jesus Christ was crucified under Pontius Pilate is the
-testimony of all history. That his crucifixion was the day
-before the Jewish Sabbath is proved by all the Evangelists,
-and the constant observance of the First Day of the week as
-the Lord’s Day.</p>
-
-<p>Having been condemned to death, and his execution entrusted
-to Roman soldiers, there is the strongest presumption
-that the sentence was fully executed. This presumption
-is confirmed by all the Evangelists, by Paul in all his Epistles,
-and by the constant teaching of all the Apostles. On the
-day of Pentecost, Peter boldly said, Ye men of Israel, Jesus
-of Nazareth being delivered up by the determinate counsel
-and foreknowledge of God, “ye by the hand of lawless men
-did crucify and slay;” and no one called in question the
-fact of his death. Again, at the healing of the lame man, he
-declared, “Ye denied the Holy and Righteous One and asked
-for a murderer to be granted unto you, and killed the Prince
-of Life;” this charge he repeated before the Sanhedrim;
-and there was no denial. When Peter and John, after their
-release from prison, were brought before the Council, one
-charge against them was: “Ye have filled Jerusalem with
-your teaching, and intend to bring this man’s blood upon<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_102"></a>[102]</span>
-us.” Stephen, when brought before the Council, declared,
-“Ye have now become the betrayers and murderers ... of
-the Righteous One.” If there could have been the slightest
-doubt of the actual death of Christ, the Council would have
-furnished the evidence.</p>
-
-<p>John solemnly declares that “one of the soldiers, with a
-spear, pierced his side, and straightway there came out blood
-and water.” It was a thrust by a Roman soldier to make the
-fact of death absolutely certain. It was such a result as
-would have followed, if, from excessive labors and extreme
-agony, there was a collection of water about the heart, or if
-from like causes, and as Dr. Stroud and other eminent surgeons
-suppose,<a id="FNanchor_98" href="#Footnote_98" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> the cause of his death was a rupture or
-breaking of the heart.</p>
-
-<p>And, finally, not less than forty times, on different occasions,
-and in a variety of ways, had Jesus foretold his death.
-He instituted a Sacrament to commemorate it; he said to the
-penitent thief: “This day shalt thou be with me in Paradise;”
-and in the extreme moment, “Father, into thy hands I
-commend my Spirit.” It is not possible to accept the hypothesis
-of his return to life from a state of lethargy, without
-destroying <i>his</i> moral character, as well as that of his disciples.
-Where was he, when Peter and Stephen were charging
-home his death upon the guilty Jews? Where was he, when
-Stephen suffered martyrdom for his sake, and when his apostles
-and disciples were preaching his death and resurrection?</p>
-
-<p>Even Strauss is constrained to say “The whole country-side
-knew that he was dead.”</p>
-
-<p>He was buried. So says Paul, and<a id="FNanchor_99" href="#Footnote_99" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> all the Evangelists.
-As the day of the crucifixion was drawing to its close, that
-the bodies should not remain on the cross<a href="#Footnote_99" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> upon the Sabbath
-(for that day<a href="#Footnote_99" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> of the Sabbath, was a high day), the Jews
-asked of Pilate that the legs of those who had been crucified
-might be broken,<a href="#Footnote_99" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> and they be taken away. The soldiers
-brake the legs of the others, but not of Jesus, for they found
-that he was already dead; and his death was assured by one<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_103"></a>[103]</span>
-of the soldiers. Thereupon Joseph of Arimathea, a rich man
-and a counsellor, begged the body of Jesus. Pilate, after he
-knew from the centurion that he was dead, commanded it to
-be delivered. Joseph, with Nicodemus, wound it in fine
-linen with spices, and laid it in his own new tomb, hewn out
-in the rock, rolled a great stone “to,” or “against” the door,
-and departed. The sepulchre was “nigh at hand,” otherwise,
-there would not have been time for the burial before the
-coming in of the Sabbath. The next<a id="FNanchor_100" href="#Footnote_100" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> day the chief priests
-and Pharisees or some of them, obtained from Pilate a guard,
-and made the sepulchre sure, sealing the stone (Matthew
-xxvii. 62, 66).</p>
-
-<p>The objection that they could not have known that Jesus
-had said, “After three days I will rise again,” is well answered
-by Alford: “Not the saying, but its meaning was hid from
-his disciples.” Judas knew it, and may have informed the
-chief priests and Pharisees of it; and they may have known
-it from other sources, for it was not spoken in secret. Nor
-with their perverse rejection of him while they could not
-deny his works, is it improbable that they might have some
-apprehension of the necessity of a guard? We are not to
-judge them from our standpoint, but from theirs. They did
-<i>not</i> believe that he was the Messiah (Acts iii. 17; 1 Corinthians
-ii. 8). They said and doubtless believed, after a fashion,
-“He deceiveth the people” and “casteth out devils
-through the prince of the devils.” Their guilty fears were
-the occasion of this increased certainty of his resurrection.
-The mention of a guard by Matthew (although not by the
-other Evangelists), is in perfect keeping with his previous
-occupation, which had led him to make, and observe, precautions
-against fraud. It was, in his view, as in ours, an important
-fact that their precautions against imposition had reacted
-upon themselves. His narrative is unimpeached. It
-was published early, and his statement of the appointment of
-a guard was not contradicted.</p>
-
-<p>The facts must stand that Jesus died, and was buried; and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_104"></a>[104]</span>
-at the instance of his bitterest foes, soldiers guarded his
-tomb against the little company of his frightened followers.</p>
-
-<p>At a very early hour on the first day of the week it was
-known that the stone had been rolled away, and the body of
-Jesus was not in the tomb. Such is the testimony of all the
-Evangelists. This great fact is at the threshold of our inquiry.
-It must be accounted for. The Christian’s explanation is that
-Jesus rose from the dead, and an angel of the Lord descended
-and rolled away the stone. The account which the soldiers
-were induced to circulate was, that his disciples came by night
-and stole him away while they slept. This story was current
-among the Jews when Matthew wrote<a id="FNanchor_101" href="#Footnote_101" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> his Gospel, and when,
-nearly a hundred years after, Justin Martyr wrote to Trypho
-the Jew. It ought not to be difficult to determine which explanation
-is the true one.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as Mary Magdalene (who was of the company of
-women who came first to see the sepulchre), saw that the
-stone was rolled away, she ran to Peter and John, saying,
-“They have taken away the Lord out of the tomb and we know
-not where they have laid him.” (John xx. 2.)</p>
-
-<p>The other women<a id="FNanchor_102" href="#Footnote_102" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> entered into the sepulchre, and found
-not the body of Jesus, but saw two angels, one of whom said
-to them, “He is not here, he is risen; but go your way and
-tell his disciples and Peter, that he goeth before you into
-Galilee, there shall ye see him as he said unto you.” (Why
-should the Apostles be told that Jesus would go before them
-into Galilee, if he was to show himself to them that very day
-at Jerusalem? Both to prepare them for the interview at
-Jerusalem, and in order that the tidings might be carried to
-all the disciples, the most of whom were in Galilee.)</p>
-
-<p>They departed quickly with fear and great joy, and told
-these things unto such of the Apostles as they found in the
-city; but “these words appeared in their sight as idle talk;
-and they disbelieved them.” (Luke xxiv. 11.)</p>
-
-<p>As soon as Peter and John knew from Mary Magdalene, of
-the open sepulchre, they ran both together, but John outran<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_105"></a>[105]</span>
-Peter and came first to the tomb; “and stooping and looking
-in, he seeth the linen clothes lying; yet entered he not in.
-Simon Peter therefore also cometh, following him, and enters
-into the tomb; and he beholdeth the linen clothes lying and
-the napkin that was upon his head, not lying with the linen
-clothes, but rolled up in a place by itself. Then entered in
-therefore the other disciple also, which came first to the tomb,
-and he saw and believed. For as yet they knew not the
-Scripture that he must rise again from the dead. So the disciples
-went away again unto their own home.” (John xx.
-1-10.)</p>
-
-<p>Such is the circumstantial account given by John of the
-state of things at the tomb, as they found it before Jesus
-appeared to any one, and before they had received any information
-that he had risen from the dead. The body was not
-there. It could hardly have been removed by friends, and
-they both be ignorant of it. Had it been taken by enemies?
-There were the linen clothes, and there, rolled up in a place
-by itself, was the napkin. Who had arranged them thus?
-“All had been done calmly, collectedly. Neither earthly
-friends nor earthly foes had done it; the one would not have
-stripped the garments from the body, the other would have
-been at no pains so carefully to arrange<a id="FNanchor_103" href="#Footnote_103" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> and deposit them.”
-So John must have reasoned and, perhaps recalling what Jesus
-had said, he <i>believed</i>. He believed from what he <i>saw</i>, and
-not from the Scriptures, for as yet he knew not from them,
-that the Christ “must rise again from the dead.” It is not
-probable that he then avowed his conviction. He trusted that
-Jesus would, in due time, reveal himself to them all.</p>
-
-<p>The particulars of his appearance to Mary Magdalene
-appear in the Fourth Gospel. She was not expecting to see
-him, and, blinded by her tears, she knew not that it was Jesus
-until he spoke her name, doubtless in a familiar tone. She
-turneth herself, and saith unto him in Hebrew, <i>Rabboni</i>,
-which is to say, Master. She <i>would</i> have clung to him.
-Jesus had told his disciples before his crucifixion that he was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_106"></a>[106]</span>
-to go to the Father. But this event was yet in the future;
-and when she would detain him, Jesus saith to her, Touch me
-not (or Take not hold on me) for I am not yet ascended unto
-the Father: but go unto my brethren and say to them, I
-ascend unto my Father, and your Father, and my God, and
-your God. This would remind <i>them</i> of what he had told them;
-and would remind <i>her</i>, as Peter afterwards was reminded, that
-she would best manifest her love by willing service. She
-obeyed. But those to whom she told it, when they heard that
-he was alive, and had been seen of her, disbelieved. (Mark
-xvi. 17.)</p>
-
-<p>The other women after delivering the message of the angels,
-returned. And behold Jesus met them saying “All Hail.”
-And they came and took hold of his feet and worshipped him.
-Then saith Jesus unto them, Fear not: go tell my brethren
-that they depart into Galilee, and there shall they see me.
-(Matthew xxviii. 9, 10.) Matthew, speaking in a general way,
-does not distinguish this appearance from that to Mary Magdalene,
-but blends the two together. The salutation was
-different, and the message and the circumstances were different.
-Nor is it, as Strauss (p. 813) vainly imagines, any
-objection to the hypothesis of separate appearances, that it
-involves “a restless running to and fro of the disciples and
-the women;” for under the intense excitement it could hardly
-have been otherwise.<a id="FNanchor_104" href="#Footnote_104" class="fnanchor">[7]</a></p>
-
-<p>Jesus joined himself to two of the disciples on their journey
-to Emmaus, discoursed to them by the way, and made himself
-known in the breaking of bread. One of them was
-Cleopas, the other (his name not given) is supposed<a id="FNanchor_105" href="#Footnote_105" class="fnanchor">[8]</a> to have
-been Luke. When they left Jerusalem, the woman had
-reported the message from the angel. Peter and John had
-returned from the tomb, but no one had seen the Risen Lord.
-The time of their leaving was before Mary Magdalene had
-told that she had seen the Lord. The day therefore must
-have been considerably advanced before Jesus appeared to
-her.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_107"></a>[107]</span></p>
-
-<p>It was toward evening, when Jesus sat down with them to
-meat. Their eyes were opened and they knew him, and he
-“vanished out of their sight.”</p>
-
-<p>And they rose up that very hour and returned to Jerusalem,
-and found the eleven gathered together and them that were
-with them, saying, “The Lord is risen indeed, and hath
-appeared to Simon.”</p>
-
-<p>This, as we learn from Paul, was the first appearance to
-any of the Apostles. The time and place are not mentioned.
-We only know that it was before the arrival of the two
-disciples. Emmaus<a id="FNanchor_106" href="#Footnote_106" class="fnanchor">[9]</a> was about eight miles from Jerusalem.
-The narrative seems to indicate that the event had but just
-occurred.</p>
-
-<p>The two disciples rehearsed the things that had happened.
-As they spake, Jesus himself stood in the midst of the disciples,
-and said, “Peace be unto you.” But they were terrified
-and affrighted, and supposed that they beheld a spirit. He
-said unto them, “Why are ye troubled, and wherefore do
-reasonings arise in your heart? See my hands and my feet,
-that it is I myself; handle me and see; for a spirit hath not
-flesh and bones, as ye behold me having.” And when he
-had said this, he showed them his hands and his feet; and
-while they still disbelieved for joy and wondered, he said unto
-them, “Have ye here anything to eat?” and they gave him
-a piece of broiled fish. And he took it, and did eat before
-them. (Luke xxiv. 35-43.)</p>
-
-<p>But Thomas, who was not with them, having said, “Except
-I shall see in his hands the print of the nails, and put my
-finger into the print of the nails, and put my hand into his
-side, I will not believe,” Jesus eight days after stood in their
-midst and said, “Peace be unto you.” Then saith he to
-Thomas, “Reach hither thy finger, and see my hands; and
-reach hither thy hand, and put it into my side: and be not
-faithless, but believing.” Thomas answered and said unto
-him, “My Lord and my God.” Jesus saith unto him,
-“Because thou hast seen me thou hast believed; blessed<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_108"></a>[108]</span>
-are they that have not seen and yet have believed.” (John
-xx. 24-29.)</p>
-
-<p>After these things Jesus manifested himself at the Sea of
-Tiberias, to Peter, Thomas, Nathaniel, James, John and two
-others. It was on this occasion that he three times asked
-Simon Peter, “Lovest thou me?” and he signified to him
-by what death he should glorify God. This is said to
-be the <i>third</i> time that he manifested himself to the disciples,
-<i>i. e.</i>, to the Apostles when they were together. (John
-xxi. 1-23.)</p>
-
-<p>Then he appeared (says Paul) to above five hundred
-brethren at once, of whom the greater part remain until now,
-but some are fallen asleep. Paul is speaking only of manifestations
-to Apostles or some of them. The Apostles surely
-were not absent from this great assembly. All the circumstances
-indicate that it was the meeting which he had provided<a id="FNanchor_107" href="#Footnote_107" class="fnanchor">[10]</a>
-for, before his crucifixion, and that it occurred on a
-mountain in Galilee.</p>
-
-<p>Then he appeared to James. Paul is our authority. Neither
-time, nor place, nor circumstance is given. It is strong
-confirmation of the genuineness of our writings that there is
-no disclosure of the particulars of the interview with either
-Peter, the first of the Apostles, or with James, our Lord’s
-brother. Jesus doubtless had something to say to each for
-himself alone, and none of the sacred writers have lifted the
-veil.</p>
-
-<p>At the end of the forty days he led the Apostles out over
-against Bethany, gave them his final charge, and lifted up his
-hands and blessed them. And it came to pass while he
-blessed them, he parted from them, and was carried up into
-heaven. (Luke xxiv. 50-53; Acts i. 1-12.)</p>
-
-<p>Such are some of the proofs of his resurrection. Their
-sufficiency as evidence of it, and its logical results, remain to
-be considered.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_97" href="#FNanchor_97" class="label">[A]</a> And hence there is no occasion to inquire whether the Evangelists
-agree precisely as to the details (as far as given) of his arrest, or trial, or
-crucifixion. That he was arrested and tried and crucified is admitted on
-all hands.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_98" href="#FNanchor_98" class="label">[1]</a> Alford on John’s Gospel. Lange, Vol. III., pp. 333, 334. Stroud on
-the Physical Cause of the Death of Christ. Friedlieb, p. 167. The Last Day
-of Our Lord’s Passion, by Rev. Wm. Hanna, LL.D., c. 13, and Appendix.
-Barnes’ Notes, Vol. II., p. 386.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_109"></a>[109]</span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_99" href="#FNanchor_99" class="label">[2]</a> 1 Corinthians xv. 3, 4; Acts xiii. 28, 29; Deuteronomy xxi. 22, 23;
-John xix. 31-39; Luke xxxiii. 50-54; Mark xv. 42-46; Matthew xxvii.
-57-60.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_100" href="#FNanchor_100" class="label">[3]</a> It does not appear that there was a formal meeting of the Sanhedrim,
-and the act may have proceeded from the more violent members of it.
-The time may have been during their Sabbath, or at its close, which
-would have been in season. Lange, Vol. III., p. 343; Farrar, c. 62.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_101" href="#FNanchor_101" class="label">[4]</a> Matthew xxviii. 15; Dialogue, c. 108.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_102" href="#FNanchor_102" class="label">[5]</a> Mary, the mother of James, Salome, Joanna, wife of Chuza, Herod’s
-steward, and other women from Galilee who beheld the sepulchre and
-where he was laid. They may not have come all at the same time, but in
-different companies. Matthew xvii. 55, 56, and xxviii, 1-7; Mark xv. 40,
-41, 47, and xvi. 1-8; Luke xxiii. 49, 55, 56, and xxiv. 1-10; John xx. 1;
-Lange, Vol. III., pp. 362, 368.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_103" href="#FNanchor_103" class="label">[6]</a> The Forty Days after Our Lord’s Resurrection, by Rev. William
-Hanna, LL.D., p. 53.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_104" href="#FNanchor_104" class="label">[7]</a> The words “as they went to tell his disciples,” in our common version,
-are wanting in the Sinaitic and Vatican manuscripts. Their omission in
-the Revised Version removes a difficulty. The true text does not state
-<i>when</i> it was, that Jesus met them.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_105" href="#FNanchor_105" class="label">[8]</a> Lange, Vol. III., p. 383.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_106" href="#FNanchor_106" class="label">[9]</a> All attempts to identify this with certainty, out of the numerous villages
-in the vicinity of Jerusalem, have failed. See Lange, Vol. III.; Robinson,
-Vol. III., pp. 146-150; Barnes’ Notes, Vol. II., p. 107.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_107" href="#FNanchor_107" class="label">[10]</a> 1 Corinthians xv. 6; Matthew xxviii. 7, 10, 16; Mark xvi. 7, 15, 18;
-Lange, Vol. III., p. 411; Farrar, c. 62; Hanna’s Forty Days, c. 8, p. 185; c.
-9, p. 229; Geikie, c. 64.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_110"></a>[110]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVIII">CHAPTER XVIII.<br />
-<span class="smaller">SUFFICIENCY OF THE PROOFS (FALSE ASSUMPTIONS).</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Evidence which ought to convince a reasonable man should
-be deemed sufficient.</p>
-
-<p>The standing objection from the days of Celsus, that
-Jesus should have shown himself after his resurrection to
-his enemies, is unreasonable. It is as if one should refuse
-to believe the transfiguration, the raising of the daughter of
-Jairus, or the agony in the garden, because not witnessed by
-the multitude, and by only Peter, James, and John of the
-Apostles.</p>
-
-<p>His humiliation and sufferings were ended. Not again was
-he to be mocked, and scourged, and crucified. Those who
-had wilfully rejected him, would have been no more convinced
-than before. They had said he cast out devils through
-the prince of devils. They had plotted to put Lazarus also to
-death, whom he had raised up before their eyes. They had
-bribed the soldiers to report that his body had been stolen.
-They would have proclaimed that he was not dead, or else
-that his return to life was by the agency of Satan. To return
-to those who had put every insult upon him, and were ready
-to renew the attack, could only have been to their swift
-destruction, and the time for this had not come.</p>
-
-<p>And even if some of them had believed, it would have
-added nothing to the proof. Any one who now refuses to
-accept the genuineness of the Gospel, or the credibility of the
-writers, or, accepting both, refuses to believe upon the testimony
-of his disciples, would not be convinced by any amount
-of evidence. There would remain every question of credibility,
-and, in addition, that of personal identity, as to which
-only those intimately acquainted with him were fully qualified
-to judge.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_111"></a>[111]</span></p>
-
-<p>The proofs will be found sufficient by those who are disposed
-to lay aside preconceived adverse opinions, and believe
-the fact when it is proved.</p>
-
-<h3>PROOF IS POSSIBLE.</h3>
-
-<p>The event <i>may</i> have occurred. By this is meant that it
-cannot be said that its occurrence is, in the nature of things,
-an impossibility.</p>
-
-<p>The existence of the Lord God Almighty, the Jehovah of
-the Scriptures, may be real, as accepted by the reason and
-conscience of most men in civilized nations. It may have
-been within his power to raise his Son, Jesus Christ, from
-the dead; and there may have been sufficient reasons for the
-exercise of this power. He may have been able to do this,
-without violating, or suspending, any law of his universe.
-The resurrection may have been as conformable to law as the
-death of the body. The law of gravitation is neither violated
-nor suspended, but merely overcome, in numberless instances
-every day, by the introduction of what is, under the circumstances,
-a greater force; and it may be a universal <i>law</i> that
-the greater force (other things being equal) shall overcome
-the less. If it were true that the like had never occurred, it
-cannot be maintained that God has not in any instance done
-something which he had not done before, and of which consequently
-there had been no previous experience. “Men,”
-says Dr. Taylor,<a id="FNanchor_108" href="#Footnote_108" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> “are continually reaching results which the
-forces of nature, left to themselves, never could have caused;
-and if this be so with men, why should we deny to God the
-possibility of intervening in a similar way, and so producing
-effects that are not merely supernatural, but superhuman?”
-And why, we ask, should we deny to him the possibility of
-doing something which he has not done before; “My Father
-<i>worketh</i> hitherto,” said Jesus, “and I work.”</p>
-
-<p>“The<a id="FNanchor_109" href="#Footnote_109" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> affirmation of the impossibility of a miracle carries
-with it the elimination of God out of the universe.” There is
-no escape from this conclusion; and consequently there are<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_112"></a>[112]</span>
-those who admit the possibility<a id="FNanchor_110" href="#Footnote_110" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> of miracles, even while denying
-that they can be proved.</p>
-
-<p>The event, then, <i>may</i> have occurred. <i>It is a question of
-evidence</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Again, if Christ did rise from the dead, he would give his
-disciples sufficient evidence of it. He could give to the bodily
-senses and perceptive powers which they had as other men
-have (and which “experience” tells us, may be trusted when
-they have a fair chance), such proofs of his resurrection that
-they could believe it, and rationally believe it. This may be
-said to be almost a truism. To concede that God could, and
-did, raise Jesus Christ from the dead, and deny that he could,
-or would, afford evidence of it, if not an utter absurdity, is in
-the highest degree unreasonable, and we are not trying to
-convince any but reasonable men. To what end should he
-perform this miracle, and yet afford no evidence of it? The
-question right here is not whether <i>we</i> have sufficient evidence
-for our assurance, but whether his <i>disciples</i> could reasonably
-be convinced of his resurrection, assuming that it really took
-place.</p>
-
-<p>Then if <i>they</i> might rationally believe what actually occurred,
-upon evidence furnished <i>them</i>, those to whom they declared
-it, and we to whom their testimony has come, may <i>also</i>
-believe it. If they were not bound to reject the evidence
-of their own senses, because of previous experience or the
-want of it, neither were those to whom they preached, nor we
-ourselves, bound to reject it.</p>
-
-<p>In other words, assuming that Christ did rise from the
-dead, and assuming that satisfactory proofs of his resurrection
-were given to his disciples, it is not <i>impossible</i> that sufficient
-evidence of both of these facts may be accessible to us. To
-deny this, is to say that Christ must die and rise again, in
-every age, and in every place, where there are nations or
-persons, whether few or many, who have not before witnessed
-such events. Yet to this absurdity must Hume’s famous
-argument from experience come.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_113"></a>[113]</span></p>
-
-<p>If Jesus rose from the dead, the fact was susceptible of
-proof to his disciples. It was susceptible of proof to those
-who believed it on the testimony of his disciples. It is susceptible
-of proof to one to whom that testimony is transmitted.
-Assuming his resurrection to be true, it would be
-more wonderful than a miracle, if all means of a rational
-belief in the fact were the exclusive property of his immediate
-disciples; and their contemporaries and all after them,
-to the end of time, be compelled in the exercise of right
-reason to reject it, notwithstanding it is true. Hence we say
-as the basis of further argument that the resurrection <i>may</i>
-have occurred; and if it did occur, we undoubtedly have such
-evidence of it as may be accepted by a reasonable man.
-Leaving, then, the possible for the probable, in a matter that
-is but a question of evidence.</p>
-
-<h3>WHAT ARE THE PROOFS?</h3>
-
-<p>The fact of Christ’s resurrection was proclaimed by his
-Apostles and disciples from the beginning of their ministry,
-commencing on the Day of Pentecost, fifty days after the
-crucifixion. This fact was, as expressed by Paul, that Christ
-“died,” and was “buried,” and was “raised on the third
-day;” and by Luke that “he showed himself alive after his
-passion, by many proofs,” appearing unto the Apostles whom
-he had chosen<a id="FNanchor_111" href="#Footnote_111" class="fnanchor">[4]</a>, for forty days, “and speaking the things
-concerning the kingdom of God;” and by Peter, “whom
-God raised up, having loosed the pangs of death because it
-was not possible that he should be holden of it:” and “Ye
-killed the Prince of Life, whom God raised from the dead;
-whereof we are witnesses.”</p>
-
-<p>The evidence being conclusive that such was the proclamation,
-how is it to be accounted for? The obvious explanation
-is, that the Apostles so preached because they so believed,
-and because such was the fact, and they had sufficient evidence
-of it: and this has been accepted by the church these
-eighteen hundred years.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_114"></a>[114]</span></p>
-
-<p>How do infidels account for the preaching of the Resurrection
-within fifty days after the crucifixion? <i>Some</i> have claimed
-that his death was not real, and that he recovered from a
-swoon. This is disproved by the evidence to which we have
-referred<a href="#Footnote_111" class="fnanchor">[4]</a>, and, although once held by Paulus and others, has
-by later skeptical writers been “treated with contempt.”<a id="FNanchor_112" href="#Footnote_112" class="fnanchor">[5]</a>
-“The whole country-side,” says Strauss,<a id="FNanchor_113" href="#Footnote_113" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> “knew that he was
-dead.” Roman executioners made sure work. Pilate refused
-his consent to any removal until he had instituted an inquiry,
-and knew that Jesus was dead; nor is it possible to accept
-the hypothesis of a return from mere lethargy or trance,
-without destroying his moral character. This hypothesis may
-be put aside.</p>
-
-<p><i>Others</i> have claimed that the Apostles did not believe what
-they preached. To accept this view we must conclude that,
-without motive and against every motive, and “amidst sufferings
-the most grievous to flesh and blood, they persevered
-in a conspiracy to cheat the world into piety, honesty and
-benevolence.” Conscience and common sense revolt against
-such a theory, and it shares the fate of the other. It has,
-says Professor Milligan,<a id="FNanchor_114" href="#Footnote_114" class="fnanchor">[7]</a> “been abandoned by every inquirer
-to whom a moment’s attention is due.”</p>
-
-<p>The <i>final</i> refuge of most infidel writers, is the theory of
-visions. By this they mean that the appearances of our Lord
-were either optical illusions, or mere hallucinations.</p>
-
-<p>Some, like Dr. Hooykaas<a id="FNanchor_115" href="#Footnote_115" class="fnanchor">[8]</a> in Holland, and Judge Waite<a href="#Footnote_115" class="fnanchor">[8]</a>
-in this country, claim that the doctrine preached was <i>not</i>
-that Christ’s <i>body</i> was raised up, but that his <i>spirit</i> came back
-from Hades, or the place of departed spirits. We have before<a id="FNanchor_116" href="#Footnote_116" class="fnanchor">[9]</a>
-shown that such a conception is an entire perversion of
-the language of Paul, as well as of the Evangelists. And Mr.
-Hooykaas’ argument that we are never told that Jesus rose
-“from death,” far less “from the grave,” but always “from
-the dead,” does not agree with the record; and if it did, the
-inference would be unwarrantable. When the angel said to
-the woman, “Why seek ye the living among the dead? he is<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_115"></a>[115]</span>
-not here but is risen,” they were not looking for him in
-Hades! Peter, in the passage from which we have quoted,
-distinguishes between Hades and the grave, for he says, that
-David, “foreseeing, spoke of the resurrection of Christ, that
-neither was his soul left in Hades, nor did his flesh see corruption.
-This Jesus did God raise up.”</p>
-
-<p>Now, by what evidence is the theory of visions or optical
-illusions to be tested? By the <i>whole</i> evidence? By suppressing
-a part, and changing the rest? Judicial fairness
-requires that the whole be considered, just as it comes to us,
-reconciling such parts as may be reconciled, and adopting the
-more probable view in case of any seeming contradictions, if
-there <i>are</i> any. Yet those who deny the resurrection adopt a
-course that could not be tolerated in any judge or jury, or
-secular historian. They <i>suppress</i>, or <i>supply</i>, as best suits
-their theory.</p>
-
-<p>Thus some of them assume that there were no appearances
-at Jerusalem, although the contrary is plain in all the Evangelists.
-Even Mark, whom Strauss treats as giving the oldest
-tradition, represents the women as going to the sepulchre.
-This implies that they were at Jerusalem, if the sepulchre
-was at Jerusalem. Were they there alone? Mark, in saying
-that “the disciples left Jesus when he was arrested, and fled,”
-does <i>not</i> say that they fled from Jerusalem. On the contrary,
-he, in the same chapter, speaks of Peter as following Jesus
-afar off, and then denying him. And so in the Fourth Gospel,
-“the disciple whom Jesus loved” is said to have been so
-near to the cross, that Jesus could say unto him “Behold thy
-mother!” They would not leave Jerusalem till the end of
-the Feast. This continued one week, the first day and the
-last being “an holy convocation.” Although they fled at
-first, they rallied; and they did not leave Jerusalem till they
-had conformed to the requirements of the law. Mark also, in
-giving the direction, “Go tell his disciples and Peter,” “He
-goeth <i>before</i> you into Galilee,” implies that they had not yet
-gone into Galilee.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_116"></a>[116]</span></p>
-
-<p>They also assume that the Apostles believed because of
-Mary Magdalene’s faith. <i>This is pure fiction.</i> Peter and
-John knew that the tomb was empty, before the appearance
-to Mary Magdalene. Matthew does not mention her statement
-that she had seen the Lord, nor John the reception
-which she had. Mark<a id="FNanchor_117" href="#Footnote_117" class="fnanchor">[10]</a> says that they, when they heard that
-he was alive, and had been seen of her, “disbelieved;” and
-Luke<a id="FNanchor_118" href="#Footnote_118" class="fnanchor">[11]</a> (referring to all the women) says that their words
-“appeared in their sight as idle talk, and they disbelieved
-them.” There is not the slightest allusion to Mary Magdalene,
-or to the company of women, in the Acts of the Apostles,
-or either of the Epistles. How idle, then, is Renan’s boast,<a id="FNanchor_119" href="#Footnote_119" class="fnanchor">[12]</a>
-that “the glory of the Resurrection belongs to Mary of Magdala.”
-Indeed it might appear to us that there should have
-been some reference to her. The explanation, probably, is
-twofold: Among the Greeks,<a id="FNanchor_120" href="#Footnote_120" class="fnanchor">[13]</a> women were not competent
-witnesses; and Paul and the Apostles rested their faith upon
-appearances to Apostles, either alone or in company with
-others, they being the constituted witnesses. When one was to
-be substituted for Judas, Peter<a id="FNanchor_121" href="#Footnote_121" class="fnanchor">[14]</a> said that the choice must be
-made from those “which have companied with us all the time
-that the Lord Jesus went in and out among us, beginning
-from the baptism of John, unto the day that he was received
-up from us; of these must one become a witness with us of
-his resurrection.” And Paul makes no reference to the
-journey to Emmaus.</p>
-
-<p>They also assume that the Apostles were in a state of
-mind conducive to misleading fancies. The reverse of this
-is true. It must, however, be conceded that the idea of a
-restoration to life of one who had been dead was not strange
-to them; for three<a id="FNanchor_122" href="#Footnote_122" class="fnanchor">[15]</a> such instances were recorded in their
-Scriptures, and they had witnessed three miracles of the kind.
-But these were in respect to persons who, after they were
-raised up, lived and died as other men; and they were
-brought to life by some visible agency, as by a prophet in the
-name of the Lord, or Jesus by his own word. The resurrection<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_117"></a>[117]</span>
-which the disciples came to believe was, on the contrary,
-to a temporary sojourning with them, and then an ascension
-before their eyes; and it was accomplished by no visible
-hand.</p>
-
-<p>And although Jesus had predicted his death and resurrection,
-they could not understand the one, any more than the
-other, because they could not conceive how that their Messiah
-could suffer death at the hands of his enemies. The evidence
-upon this point is most conclusive; and its scope was
-admirably put by Gilbert West,<a id="FNanchor_123" href="#Footnote_123" class="fnanchor">[16]</a> four generations ago. “This,
-therefore, being their settled notion of the Messiah, can we
-wonder their former faith in him should be extinguished,
-when they saw him suffering, crucified, and dying, and, instead
-of saving others, not able to save himself? To prepare
-them for these events he had indeed most circumstantially
-foretold<a id="FNanchor_124" href="#Footnote_124" class="fnanchor">[17]</a> his own sufferings, death, and resurrection;
-but the Apostles themselves assure us that they did
-not understand those predictions till some time after their
-accomplishment; and they made this confession at a time
-when they were as sensible of their former dullness, and
-undoubtedly as much amazed at it as they now pretend to be
-who object to it against them; so that their veracity upon
-this point is not to be questioned.... They had conceived
-great expectations from the persuasion that he was the Christ
-of God; but these were all vanished; their promised deliverer,
-their expected king, was dead and buried, and no one
-left to call him from the grave as he did Lazarus. With
-his life, they might presume, ended his power of working
-miracles; and death, perhaps, was an enemy he could not
-subdue, since it was apparent he could not escape it, and
-hence their despair.”</p>
-
-<p>And hence we say, when the third day was ushered in
-there was no one of all his disciples at the sepulchre to welcome
-him. Those who loved him most, came but to embalm
-his body. Mary Magdalene beheld <i>not</i> her risen Saviour,
-but an empty tomb; and her hurried tidings were <i>not</i> that<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_118"></a>[118]</span>
-he is risen, but, “They have taken away the Lord out of the
-tomb, and we know not where they have laid him.” When
-Jesus even speaks to her, she at first supposes him to be the
-gardener, and says, “If thou hast borne him hence, tell me
-where thou hast laid him, and I will take him away.” Peter
-and John beheld no vision, but only “the linen clothes lying,
-and the napkin, that was upon his head, not lying with the
-linen clothes, but rolled up in a place by itself.” The other
-women do not see Jesus until after they have found that the
-sepulchre is empty, and have been told by the angels, “He
-is risen, even as he said: <span class="smcap">Come see the place where<a id="FNanchor_125" href="#Footnote_125" class="fnanchor">[18]</a> the
-Lord lay</span>.” The two disciples, some hours after, had heard,
-not that he had been <i>seen</i>, but that certain women who were
-early at the tomb found not his body, and were told by
-angels that he was alive; and that the absence of the body
-had been confirmed by those of their company who visited the
-tomb. And finally, the Apostles, instead of <i>expecting</i> to see
-him, refused to believe upon the testimony of the women, and
-were only convinced by the evidence of their own senses.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_108" href="#FNanchor_108" class="label">[1]</a> Taylor on the Gospel Miracles (1881), p. 17.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_109" href="#FNanchor_109" class="label">[2]</a> Id., p. 25.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_110" href="#FNanchor_110" class="label">[3]</a> “We do not say a miracle is impossible; we say there has been no
-instance, up to this time, of a proved miracle.”—Renan’s Life of Jesus,
-etc., p. 57.</p>
-
-<p>“What I insist on is, that a miracle cannot be established by human testimony.”—Ingersoll,
-<i>North American Review</i> for November, 1881, p. 514.
-The skeptical author of <i>Supernatural Religion</i> in defending himself
-against the criticism that upon his theory his historical argument is unnecessary,
-in his preface to the sixth edition, says: “The preliminary
-affirmation is not that miracles are impossible, but that they are antecedently
-incredible. The counter allegation is that although miracles may
-be antecedently incredible, they nevertheless actually took place. It is,
-therefore, necessary, not only to establish the antecedent incredibility,
-but to examine the validity of the allegation that certain miracles occurred,
-and this involves the historical inquiry into the evidence for the Gospels.
-Indeed many will not acknowledge the case to be complete until other
-witnesses are questioned. This would leave the question of Christ’s Resurrection
-to be determined as a matter of evidence; and of course evidence
-enough to induce a reasonable conviction would be sufficient to overcome
-the antecedent improbability.” But he dare not trust himself or his readers
-to an examination of the evidence upon this basis. For when he is
-pressed with the testimony of the Apostles to the Resurrection, and is
-compelled to concede their honesty, he says (p. 1050), “The belief
-that a dead man rose from the dead and appeared to several persons alive
-is at once disposed of upon abstract grounds.” That is, his pretended examination
-of the evidence is a sham, and when he cannot meet it, it is at
-once disposed of “upon abstract grounds!”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_119"></a>[119]</span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_111" href="#FNanchor_111" class="label">[4]</a> See chap. xvii. pp. 101-2, <i>ante</i>, <a href="#Page_101">pp. 101, 102</a>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_112" href="#FNanchor_112" class="label">[5]</a> Milligan on the Resurrection of Our Lord, p. 76; Strauss, Vol. II.,
-pp. 846-866.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_113" href="#FNanchor_113" class="label">[6]</a> The Old Faith and the New (1875), p. 80.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_114" href="#FNanchor_114" class="label">[7]</a> On the Resurrection, etc., p. 80.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_115" href="#FNanchor_115" class="label">[8]</a> The Bible for Learners, Vol. III., p. 464; Waite’s History, etc., p. 26.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_116" href="#FNanchor_116" class="label">[9]</a> See chap. xv, p. 85, <i>ante</i>, <a href="#Page_85">p. 85</a>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_117" href="#FNanchor_117" class="label">[10]</a> Mark xvi. 11.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_118" href="#FNanchor_118" class="label">[11]</a> Luke xxiv. 11.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_119" href="#FNanchor_119" class="label">[12]</a> The Apostles, by Ernest Renan (1866), p. 61.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_120" href="#FNanchor_120" class="label">[13]</a> Adams’ Roman Antiquities, p. 284; Condition of Women, by L.
-Maria Child, Vol. II., p. 3.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_121" href="#FNanchor_121" class="label">[14]</a> Acts i. 15, 21, 22.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_122" href="#FNanchor_122" class="label">[15]</a> 1 Kings xvii.; 2 Kings iv.; 2 Kings xiii. 21; Matthew ix.; Luke vii.;
-John xi.; Hebrews xi. 35.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_123" href="#FNanchor_123" class="label">[16]</a> Gilbert West on the History and Evidences of the Resurrection of
-Jesus Christ. Boston, 1834 (first published in England in 1747), p. 67.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_124" href="#FNanchor_124" class="label">[17]</a> See chap. xvi, p. 89, <i>ante</i>, <a href="#Page_89">p. 89</a>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_125" href="#FNanchor_125" class="label">[18]</a> “The cerements were there, but the body was gone. Whither? Had
-it been stolen and hidden? Who would have been the thieves? Friends
-or foes? Not friends; for how could their faith be made heroic for their
-crusade against the world’s unbelief by a theft and a carcase? Not foes;
-for it was their interest to prevent the disappearance of the body, that
-there might be ocular demonstration of the falsity of the predicted resurrection.
-The fact of the actual resurrection of our Lord is a rock-of-ages
-that never can be moved.”—Commentary on Mark, by James Morrison,
-D.D. (1882), p. 445.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_120"></a>[120]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIX">CHAPTER XIX.<br />
-<span class="smaller">SUFFICIENCY OF THE PROOFS (AFFIRMATIVE EVIDENCE).</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Holding, then, the objectors to the historical record, and
-keeping in mind that the question is narrowed down to the
-hypothesis of visions on the one hand, or to a true resurrection
-on the other, <i>what evidence had the Apostles and immediate
-disciples that they were not deceived</i>?</p>
-
-<p>First and foremost, they had the empty tomb. They knew<a id="FNanchor_126" href="#Footnote_126" class="fnanchor">[1]</a>
-that the body was neither left on the cross, in violation of the
-Jewish law, nor thrown to the “dust-heap,” in violation of
-the Roman law which required a delivery to the friends as
-soon as claimed, but was placed in the sepulchre, as attested
-by all the Evangelists, as also by Paul. They knew that <i>they</i>
-had not taken it away, and that if the Jews had, they would
-have been but too ready to produce it when, only a few days
-after, it was boldly proclaimed, that that Jesus whom they had
-crucified, God had raised from the dead. It was the absence
-of the body that first arrested the attention of the women,
-and also of Peter and John, and which, with the orderly
-arrangement of the grave clothes, induced a conviction of the
-truth in the mind of John, before Jesus appeared to any, and
-sent Peter to his home “wondering.” And these same facts
-(the good faith of the disciples themselves being undoubted),
-can never be explained, in any rational way, otherwise than
-by the fact of the Resurrection. There is a great truth in
-Professor Keim’s expression<a id="FNanchor_127" href="#Footnote_127" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> that: “It is upon an empty tomb
-that the Christian Church is founded.”</p>
-
-<p>They had <i>further</i> proof, in subsequent appearances to individuals
-singly, to the collective body of Apostles, and to the
-multitude of believers, under circumstances that satisfied
-them, and should convince us, that they were not deceived.</p>
-
-<p>There are several things to be considered, in determining<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_121"></a>[121]</span>
-whether they were deceived. First, in respect to time. There
-were no appearances till after the fact that the tomb was
-empty was fully understood, <i>nor till some hours after</i>. This
-lapse of time has been overlooked by most writers; and, from
-want of attention to it, inconsistencies as to occurrences at
-the sepulchre, as to the number and appearance of angels,
-the companies of women, the persons composing them, the
-messages received and carried, and the appearances to them,
-of our risen Lord, have been imagined, that are easily explained,
-upon the very natural hypothesis of several transactions
-of like character during the six hours or more<a id="FNanchor_128" href="#Footnote_128" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> which
-elapsed before the journey to Emmaus. At that time no one
-had seen the Lord; for it cannot be doubted that his appearance
-would be reported as soon as possible after its occurrence.
-When Jesus joined the two disciples, their eyes were
-“holden,” until in a long discourse he had prepared them for a
-revelation of himself. Peter must have meditated some hours
-upon the absence of the body, before Jesus showed himself to
-him. It was not till after this, and after the return of the
-disciples from Emmaus, that he said to the others, “Peace be
-unto you.” Then a whole week, before he returns. Then,
-probably after a longer interval (for they returned to Galilee),
-he shows himself at the Sea of Tiberias. Then, after some
-days, to above five hundred brethren, at a place to which they
-had been directed to go by the angels, and by Jesus both
-before and after his resurrection. Then to James. And then
-at Jerusalem to the Apostles, whom he led out over against
-Bethany; and while he blessed them, he parted from them
-and was carried up into heaven.</p>
-
-<p>In all this, we see how they were prepared to exercise a
-sober and intelligent judgment, so that neither they, nor we,
-should be in doubt whether what they beheld was their risen
-Lord, or a phantom of their own imagination.</p>
-
-<p>And will any one tell us, right here, what better proof Jesus
-<i>could</i> have given his disciples, of his Resurrection? If the
-evidence was sufficient for them, it may be sufficient for us,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_122"></a>[122]</span>
-unless we are prepared to say that the miracle shall <i>be repeated
-whenever it is challenged</i>! Was it essential to a reasonable
-conviction on their part that the Scribes and Pharisees should
-also be convinced? (Nicodemus, and Joseph of Arimathea,
-<i>were</i> convinced.) It must be admitted that the disciples, of
-all others, were qualified to judge, if any persons could be
-qualified. What force could the belief of the Sanhedrim have
-added to the testimony of their own senses?</p>
-
-<p>Assume, as a hypothesis, the reality of Christ’s resurrection,
-we again ask, What proof of it <i>should</i> have been given his
-disciples that was not given? They had the same kind of
-proof, during forty days, that they had before his crucifixion.
-He walked with them, talked with them, instructed them, ate
-before them, and with them (Acts. x. 41), called things to
-their remembrance, opened to them the Scriptures, and gave
-them their great commission to disciple all nations; and, to
-preclude all questioning, said, “See my hands and my feet,
-that it is I myself; handle me and see; for a spirit hath not
-flesh and bones, as ye behold me have. And when he had
-said this, he showed them his hands and his feet.” And to
-Thomas, eight days after, he said, “Reach hither thy finger
-and see my hands; and reach thy hand and put it into my side:
-and be not faithless but believing.”</p>
-
-<p>We do not accept Origen’s<a id="FNanchor_129" href="#Footnote_129" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> view that Jesus after his resurrection
-and before his ascension “existed in a body intermediate,
-as it were, between the grossness of that which he had
-before his suffering and the appearance of a soul uncovered by
-such a body,” although it now has the support of able writers.
-The general<a id="FNanchor_130" href="#Footnote_130" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> sentiment of the Church from the beginning has
-been against it. It is not warranted by the record, and it
-involves more mysteries and difficulties than it escapes. We
-fully agree with Judge Waite<a id="FNanchor_131" href="#Footnote_131" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> that, according to the Canonical
-Gospels, “The very body in which Jesus was crucified, and
-which was buried by Joseph of Arimathea, is raised from the
-dead, appears to the disciples, is not only seen but felt, and
-Jesus himself, in the flesh, as he was before he was crucified,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_123"></a>[123]</span>
-calls for fish to eat to satisfy his disciples that he was not a
-spirit; that his body was not spiritual, but material and human
-like theirs;” and also with a very different man (Mr. Barnes),
-who, with his usual good sense, says: “It was necessary <i>first</i>
-to establish the proof of his resurrection, and that could be
-done <i>only</i> by his appearing <i>as he was</i> when he died;” and also
-with Drs. McClintock and Strong in their invaluable Cyclopedia,
-that: “According to the Scriptures the disciples were
-assured by the testimony of their own senses that the body of
-Christ after his resurrection was the same identical body of
-human flesh and bones which had been crucified and laid
-in the sepulchre.” (Vol. VIII., A.D. 1879.) Peter’s testimony
-(as recorded in Acts x. 41) that Jesus after he was
-raised up was made manifest, not to all the people, but unto
-witnesses that were chosen before of God, even to us “who
-did eat and drink with him after he rose from the dead,” seems
-just as decisive as the Canonical Gospels. And so of John’s
-testimony (1 John i. 1), “that which we beheld, and our hands
-handled.”</p>
-
-<p>Our Lord was in the tomb less than thirty-six hours, and
-his flesh “did not see corruption.” His body, apparently, was
-as human as that of Lazarus after he was raised. The criticism
-that it is not said that there was <i>blood</i> seems frivolous,
-for there could be no living flesh or bones without blood-vessels
-and blood. Although for the time he forbade Mary Magdalene
-to touch, or rather to detain him, he permitted the
-other women to take hold of his feet, and directed the Apostles
-to handle him. Mary Magdalene saw him as a man, and
-supposed him to be the gardener, until he called her by name.
-The two disciples conversed with him as a man; and that
-they did not know him was only because their eyes were
-“holden.” His sudden disappearance after the repast, and
-equally sudden appearance in the midst of the Apostles, at
-most present no greater difficulties than his transfiguration,
-his walking upon the sea, his passing through his enemies
-when they were about to throw him down the cliff (all before<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_124"></a>[124]</span>
-his crucifixion), or the opening of the prison doors to two of
-the Apostles. The doors, even if bolted and barred, may
-have opened as to Peter, or those present may have been so
-preoccupied that a perfectly natural but silent withdrawal in
-the one case, and entrance in the other, were simply unnoticed.</p>
-
-<p>As the man Christ Jesus, he rose from the dead, and
-angels, as porters, having rolled away the stone, he came
-forth in visible human form, and with the same body that was
-crucified. He would have been seen by his disciples, if they
-had been “watching and waiting” for him, and by the guard,
-if they had not become “as dead men;” perhaps in order
-that they might not behold him, for he had said, “Yet a
-little while and the world beholdeth me no more.” (John
-xiv. 19.)</p>
-
-<p>As the man Christ Jesus, he showed himself to his disciples
-forty days; and then, with a body, until then, of
-flesh and blood, as human as that of Elijah, before <i>he</i> was
-taken up, ascended into the heavens.</p>
-
-<p>Thus, in his rising from the dead, and in the change <i>at his
-ascension</i>, he typified both the dead who shall be raised, and
-the living who shall be “changed.”</p>
-
-<p>And any conception of him as less corporeal from his resurrection
-to his ascension than before, does not conform to
-the record, and, by so much as it makes him less corporeal
-and tangible, it impairs the force of the evidence.</p>
-
-<p>Each one of the Apostles had as much evidence that Jesus
-was alive after his crucifixion, as he had that Peter or John
-or Thomas was alive, and evidence of just as high a character.
-And this proof by facts addressed to their own intelligence
-and bodily senses of sight, and hearing, and feeling, was continued
-forty days. There is no conflict in the evidence on
-this point.</p>
-
-<p>Every lawyer knows that omission is not contradiction.
-Even when witnesses profess to give the whole, it rarely or
-never happens that some will not state something which<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_125"></a>[125]</span>
-others omit, and not unfrequently a witness is called to testify
-to a part only, and does not undertake to give the whole.</p>
-
-<p>This is the precise truth in respect to the Evangelists.
-Not one of them professes to state all that occurred after the
-crucifixion, or all the instances of our Lord’s appearing to
-his disciples. Each writes for the particular object he has
-in view. And there is a great liability to mistake, if one forgets
-that it is true in narratives in respect to transactions
-subsequent to the crucifixion, as well as before, that there is
-often a passing from one event to another with nothing to indicate
-but that they were immediately connected in point of
-time, when, in fact, there was a considerable interval between
-them.<a id="FNanchor_132" href="#Footnote_132" class="fnanchor">[A]</a></p>
-
-<p>Of the ten specified instances of his appearing, Matthew
-speaks of two, Mark of three, Luke of three, John of
-four, and Paul of five, or seven;<a id="FNanchor_133" href="#Footnote_133" class="fnanchor">[7]</a> but neither contradicts the
-other, nor Luke’s statement in his subsequent “treatise,”
-that Jesus showed himself alive after his passion “forty
-days, and speaking the things concerning the kingdom of
-God.”</p>
-
-<p>The instances were sufficiently numerous, the time long
-enough, and the acts tangible enough, to afford as undoubted
-proof as that which they had of the existence and bodily
-presence of each other. Peter might as well have doubted
-the denial of which he had so bitterly repented, as to have
-doubted that it was his Master who said unto him the third
-time, “Simon, son of John, lovest thou me?” and all of them
-might as well have doubted that they had ever listened to
-his teaching, as to have doubted the commission which they
-received from him.</p>
-
-<p>The evidence that was personal to themselves we cannot
-have. We know they had it, and were capable of judging<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_126"></a>[126]</span>
-concerning it, and we can see that it was of a character that
-might be justly deemed conclusive.</p>
-
-<p>There is, besides, much that is common to us with them.
-The judgment was not of one but of many, and not from a
-single appearance to one of their number, but from many
-appearances to different persons, at various times, and under
-circumstances most favorable to a true apprehension, usually
-in open day; and it would be passing strange if each and all
-were deceived by their own senses.</p>
-
-<p>These appearances were never repeated after the ascension.
-None of the disciples under any excitement ever again
-saw their Lord as the man Christ Jesus walking the earth as
-before; or saw him coming to the earth, although they all
-believed that he would speedily return in like manner as they
-beheld him going into heaven. Stephen saw him not upon the
-earth, but “standing on the right hand of God.” Paul saw
-him, and “was not disobedient unto the heavenly vision”
-(Acts xxvi. 19). John saw him, in vision, not only as “the
-Son of Man” in glorious array, but as “the Lion of the tribe
-of Judah,” and also as a “Lamb standing as though it had
-been slain,” in the “midst of the throne” (Revelation i.
-12-20, and v. 5-8).</p>
-
-<p>Their subsequent experience is consistent, if they had
-been dealing with realities. But if all their interviews
-during those forty days were a delusion, and the ascension
-a delusion, it is wholly inexplicable that their imagination
-or senses never played them false afterward. They
-believed that he would soon return, just as strongly as
-they believed that he had ascended, and yet they never saw
-him returning, or as having returned.</p>
-
-<p>If delusions created the faith, how much more should the
-faith multiply the delusions, and such appearances (as Godet<a id="FNanchor_134" href="#Footnote_134" class="fnanchor">[8]</a>
-has well put it) “go on increasing as the square of the belief
-itself.” Yet at the very time when they should have multiplied,
-if they were <i>not</i> real, they ceased altogether!</p>
-
-<p>We have, as the disciples had, our Lord’s predictions<a id="FNanchor_135" href="#Footnote_135" class="fnanchor">[9]</a> of his<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_127"></a>[127]</span>
-death <i>and</i> resurrection (for the two events were generally
-referred to in the same discourse), and the prophecies concerning
-him.</p>
-
-<p>The greatest obstacle to their acceptance of his resurrection
-was their inability to comprehend his death if he were
-indeed the true Messiah. And hence we find that Jesus
-in the walk to Emmaus, opens to the disciples the Scriptures
-concerning himself, and says, “Behoved it not the Christ to
-suffer these things, and to enter into his glory?” We may
-well suppose that with other prophecies, he interpreted to
-them what Daniel had said (c. ix. 26) that “after three score
-and two weeks, shall Messiah be cut off, but not for himself;”
-and that wonderful chapter in Isaiah (the fifty-third) so descriptive
-of his passion, that it seems “as if written at the
-foot of the cross;” and all the sacrifices for fifteen hundred
-years; and that it was not possible “that the blood of bulls
-and goats should take away sins;” and as Moses lifted up
-the serpent in the wilderness, even so was the Son of Man
-“lifted up.” And so to the Apostles he explained the Scriptures,
-and said to them, “Thus it is written that the Christ
-should suffer, and rise again from the dead the third day.”
-(Luke xxiv. 45, 46). He reminds them what he had said,
-that all things must needs be fulfilled which were written in
-the law of Moses and in the Prophets and in the Psalms concerning
-himself (Luke xxiv. 44). The angels say to the
-women, “Tell his disciples and Peter he goeth before you
-into Galilee, and there shall ye see him as he said unto you”
-(Mark xvi. 7); and also, “Remember how he spake unto you
-when he was yet in Galilee, saying that the Son of Man
-must be delivered up into the hands of sinful men, and be
-crucified, and the third day rise again” (Luke xxiv. 6, 7).
-And we find that when the disciples understood the mystery
-of his death, they joyfully accepted the proofs of his resurrection;
-and Peter, who had said, “Be it far from thee, Lord,
-this shall never be unto thee” (Matthew xvi. 23), on the day
-of Pentecost could explain that Jesus (whom God had “raised<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_128"></a>[128]</span>
-up, having loosed the pangs of death”), was delivered up to
-be crucified and slain “by the determinate counsel and foreknowledge
-of God”; and that David spake of his resurrection.
-(Acts ii. 22-31.)</p>
-
-<p>Not only do the prophecies point to his resurrection, but
-as already<a href="#Footnote_135" class="fnanchor">[9]</a> shown, Jesus himself foretold it as well as the
-manner and circumstances of his death; and it is more
-rational to accept it, than to believe that such an One as is
-portrayed in the Gospels was either false or mistaken.
-“Which of you convicteth me of sin?” has found none to
-accept the challenge in eighteen hundred years! On the contrary,
-as Dr. Taylor has said,<a id="FNanchor_136" href="#Footnote_136" class="fnanchor">[10]</a> “Before the portraiture which
-the Evangelists have painted, men of every age have stood
-in rooted admiration.” And as J. S. Mill concedes,<a id="FNanchor_137" href="#Footnote_137" class="fnanchor">[11]</a> “It is
-of no use to say that Christ, as exhibited in the Gospels, is
-not historical: for none of his disciples or their proselytes
-were capable of inventing the sayings ascribed to him, or
-imagining the life and character revealed in the Gospels.”</p>
-
-<p>His resurrection was a moral necessity from his own character
-as delineated in the Gospels, even our enemies themselves
-being judges. His could not have been “the richest of
-human lives,” as declared by Hooykaas,<a id="FNanchor_138" href="#Footnote_138" class="fnanchor">[12]</a> nor his utterances
-“the most beautiful moral teaching that humanity has received,”
-as avowed by Renan, if his power to lay down his
-life and “to take it again” were at the best a mere delusion.</p>
-
-<p>His predictions of his death and resurrection, as we have
-before shown, are so interwoven with the entire narrative, that
-it is impossible to set them aside and leave anything to which
-we can assent as true, of all his recorded acts and words; and
-there is no alternative except to believe that he uttered them,
-or else to arbitrarily set aside the testimony of the four Evangelists,
-as well as that of Paul.</p>
-
-<p><i>That the Christ of the Gospels</i> should rise from the dead, as
-he said, <i>is in the highest degree probable</i>. Only by his resurrection
-could he vindicate himself from the charge of blasphemy.
-Without it, the cross was a gibbet, a monument of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_129"></a>[129]</span>
-folly if not of crime. Without it, the sacrament which he instituted
-on the eve of his crucifixion, keeps in perpetual remembrance
-the falsity of his pretensions, his impotency to save
-himself from his enemies. Without it, the taunt of those
-who mocked him, “He saved others, himself he cannot save,”
-was merited. Without it, while one might pity him for his
-sufferings, we should the more sympathize with the Sanhedrim
-in protecting the people from a visionary enthusiast, if
-not a wilful impostor, and inflicting (although by irregular
-methods) the penalty for blasphemy expressly commanded by
-the Mosaic Law.</p>
-
-<p>It cannot be too strongly stated that there is no middle
-ground. If he was what he claimed, his resurrection was
-already assured. If he was not what he claimed, he could
-not have been the exalted character eulogized by those who
-deny his resurrection, and before which the world bows in
-reverence.</p>
-
-<p>If he was what he claimed, we can see a grand and
-all-sufficient reason <i>why</i> God (if there <i>be</i> a God) should by
-miracle give the highest possible authentication to his mission.</p>
-
-<p>He said, “I am the light of the world;” and the world
-was in darkness. He said that he came forth from God, and
-he ought to show his credentials. He said he was the Son
-of God, and that he always did those things that pleased
-Him; which he could not do, if he set up claims destitute of
-foundation. He said, “As Moses lifted up the serpent in the
-wilderness, even so must the Son of Man be lifted up; that
-whosoever believeth, may have in him eternal life. For God
-so loved the world that He gave His only begotten Son, that
-whosoever believeth on him should not perish, but have
-eternal life.”</p>
-
-<p>The great central truths which he declared in all his teachings,
-were the <i>fact</i> of sin, the need of a Saviour, and that he
-is a Saviour.</p>
-
-<p>If sin, as all experience testifies, is universal, always<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_130"></a>[130]</span>
-downward, and its end when finished death, the redemption
-of multitudes<a id="FNanchor_139" href="#Footnote_139" class="fnanchor">[B]</a> of the human race from its power to holiness,
-and bliss, and endless progress, as “heirs of God, and joint
-heirs with Christ,” was an object <i>worthy</i> of divine interposition,
-and only an atheist should look upon such a miracle of
-redemption as impossible or improbable.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“’Twas great to speak a world from naught,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">’Twas greater to redeem.”</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Christ’s resurrection being established, the darkness over
-the land, the rending of the veil, the coming<a id="FNanchor_140" href="#Footnote_140" class="fnanchor">[13]</a> out of the
-tombs, the ministry of the angels in the garden before his
-betrayal, and at the sepulchre, the earthquake, the rolling
-away of the stone, and the fear that came upon the watchers,
-were fitting accompaniments of the transactions which they
-surrounded.</p>
-
-<p>Nor, if some of them are not mentioned by other historians,
-are they overthrown, for omission is not contradiction, in
-history any more than in courts. Why should Josephus, who
-was not born till some years after the crucifixion, and not a
-Christian, be expected to mention them? And as to Greek
-and Roman writers, even Renan<a id="FNanchor_141" href="#Footnote_141" class="fnanchor">[14]</a> says that “it is not surprising
-that they paid little attention to a movement which
-was going on within a narrow space foreign to them. Christianity
-was lost to their vision upon the dark background of
-Judaism.”</p>
-
-<p>And so his being seen by Stephen the first martyr, by
-John in the Apocalypse, and by Paul on the way to Damascus,
-are in harmony with the record of his resurrection and
-ascension, and may be said to confirm them.</p>
-
-<p>Yet it may be questioned if Paul would have been so absolutely
-certain that Jesus (against whose followers he was
-breathing out threatening and slaughter) said to him, “Saul,
-Saul, why persecutest thou me?” but for the previous
-appearances. If he would, he does not rest the case upon<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_131"></a>[131]</span>
-the one to himself. He gives the others first, and then adds,
-“And last of all ... to me also.” While there is a mutual
-support, the most solid basis for <i>our</i> belief is, in the incontrovertible
-and tangible appearances which preceded Paul’s conversion;
-and when John would declare the <i>certainty</i> of their
-faith, he says, “That which we have heard, that which we
-have seen with our eyes, that which we have beheld, and our
-hands handled.” (1 John i. 1).</p>
-
-<p>And viewing the indubitable proofs of his resurrection, in
-their relation to the prophecies concerning him, the necessity
-for his advent, his predictions concerning himself, his
-character and works and teachings from his incarnation to
-his ascension, the lives and deaths of his Apostles, the wonderful
-enlargement of his little church, when the Apostles
-“with great power gave their witness of the resurrection of
-the Lord Jesus,” and its equally wonderful continuance, extension,
-moral influence, inspirations and hopes, they rise to the
-sublimity of moral certainty.</p>
-
-<p>These things cannot rationally be accounted for unless
-there is a God, and if there is a God, as all courts of justice
-everywhere assume, and universal conscience declares, to
-refuse assent to the conclusion to which they necessarily
-lead,—the Resurrection of Jesus Christ from the dead,—cannot
-be the exercise of right reason.</p>
-
-<p>Least of all should lawyers, accustomed to weigh evidence,
-refuse to believe upon the testimony of others. As Gibson,
-the great chief justice of Pennsylvania, said: “Give Christianity
-a common law trial; submit the evidence <i>pro</i> and
-<i>con</i> to an impartial jury under the direction of a competent
-court, and the verdict will assuredly be in its favor.”</p>
-
-<p>We have not the witnesses before us; but it is every day’s
-practice to prove historical facts by any approved and general
-history, and such are our Gospels and Epistles; and they are
-confirmed by sacraments and institutions that continue to
-our times, and will continue to the end of the world.</p>
-
-<p>Nor does the sufficiency of the proofs depend upon any<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_132"></a>[132]</span>
-question of the <i>precise</i> extent of the genuineness of the Gospels,
-or their <i>exact</i> agreement. Men accustomed to weigh
-evidence know that it is enough if the substance of the issue
-is proved, and that a literal agreement is never to be expected
-in honest witnesses. In all the great facts of the Resurrection,
-the Gospels and the Epistles concur. This has been
-found satisfactory to such standard authors in the legal profession
-as Blackstone and Kent and Story, such masters of
-the rules of evidence as Starkie and Greenleaf, and such
-giants as Lord Brougham, John Marshall, Theophilus Parsons,
-Jeremiah Mason and Daniel Webster, and many others
-both of the dead and the living, and no historical event rests
-on a firmer basis.</p>
-
-<p>Some of its logical results will be suggested in the concluding
-chapter.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_126" href="#FNanchor_126" class="label">[1]</a> See <i>ante</i>, c. 17, <a href="#Page_101">p. 101</a>, and Godet’s Defence, etc., 1881, p. 106.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_127" href="#FNanchor_127" class="label">[2]</a> As quoted by Godet, p. 49.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_128" href="#FNanchor_128" class="label">[3]</a> See <i>ante</i>, c. 17, <a href="#Page_101">p. 101</a>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_129" href="#FNanchor_129" class="label">[4]</a> Origen against Celsus, Book II., c. 42.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_130" href="#FNanchor_130" class="label">[5]</a> See editor’s note to Lange’s Life of Christ; McClintock and Strong, Vol.
-VIII., p. 1055; Abbott’s Dictionary of Religious Knowledge, p. 804;
-Barnes on John xx. 21; Scott on John xx. 19.</p>
-
-<p>An able article by Professor Robinson of the Union Theological Seminary,
-N. Y., on the Nature of Our Lord’s Resurrection-body will be found
-in the <i>Bibliotheca Sacra</i> for 1845, p. 292. He thus distributes the opinions
-on the subject: “On this subject three different opinions have prevailed
-more or less at various times in the church. Some have held that
-the body of Christ was changed at the resurrection as to its <i>substance</i>, so
-that it was in its substance a different and spiritual body. Others have
-regarded the Lord as having had after the resurrection the <i>same</i> body as
-before, but glorified; or, as the earliest writers express it, changed as to
-its qualities and attributes. The third and larger class have supposed that
-the body with which Christ rose from the dead was the same natural body
-of flesh and blood which had been taken down from the cross and laid in
-the sepulchre.”</p>
-
-<p>This article we had not read until after writing chapter 19, but our convictions
-are confirmed by his thorough discussion of the subject. He concludes
-that the evidence of the reality of our Lord’s human body, from the
-Resurrection to the Ascension, is even stronger than that for any other
-forty days, since Jesus was specially careful to assure his disciples of the
-fact.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_133"></a>[133]</span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_131" href="#FNanchor_131" class="label">[6]</a> History, etc., p. 335.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_132" href="#FNanchor_132" class="label">[A]</a> For example, it is an entire misconception of Luke’s Gospel to conclude
-from it that the ascension was the same day as the resurrection; and
-his account in Acts makes this certain, it being conceded that both works
-were by the same writer.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_133" href="#FNanchor_133" class="label">[7]</a> Paul seems to have grouped appearances. We may paraphrase thus:
-“And that he was seen of Cephas; then of the twelve <i>on three occasions</i>.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_134" href="#FNanchor_134" class="label">[8]</a> Defence, etc., p. 105.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_135" href="#FNanchor_135" class="label">[9]</a> See <i>ante</i>, c. 16, <a href="#Page_89">p. 89</a>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_136" href="#FNanchor_136" class="label">[10]</a> The Gospel Miracles, etc., p. 48.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_137" href="#FNanchor_137" class="label">[11]</a> As quoted by Dr. Taylor, p. 41.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_138" href="#FNanchor_138" class="label">[12]</a> The Bible, etc., p. 51; Renan, p. 135.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_139" href="#FNanchor_139" class="label">[B]</a> See Rev. vii. 9-17.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_140" href="#FNanchor_140" class="label">[13]</a> Those who came out of the tombs “after his resurrection,” it may be
-presumed, had recently deceased (for they were recognized, as it would
-seem), and they appeared only to those who, like Simeon and Anna the
-Prophetess, had been looking “for the consolation of Israel;” and not to
-those who had rejected him. Their coming was so overshadowed by the
-principal events to which it was merely an incident, that it is mentioned
-only by Matthew, and even he gives no information of who they were, or
-anything of their subsequent history.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_141" href="#FNanchor_141" class="label">[14]</a> The Apostles, by Ernest Renan, p. 227.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_134"></a>[134]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XX">CHAPTER XX.<br />
-<span class="smaller">LOGICAL RESULTS.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Of these we mention only the following:</p>
-
-<p><i>First.</i>—Since the proofs of Christ’s Resurrection are incomparably
-greater than those of any other miracle, and its
-consequences are beyond conception more glorious, it is the
-part of wisdom to force the issue upon it. The decisive battle
-of the world in respect to the miraculous in Christianity is
-to be fought right here, and all other engagements are mere
-skirmishes. It is well it is so. Christ’s Resurrection is our
-Gibraltar. If we cannot hold this position, we cannot hold
-any. But we do hold it, and with it the whole field of controversy
-upon the subject. Let any one who doubts or denies
-the reality of miracles, meet the overwhelming proofs of this
-the greatest of all miracles. If he cannot do it, he should
-yield; and it is no dishonor to be vanquished by the truth.
-If, after examining these proofs, he still imagines that he can
-overcome them, he is beyond the reach of argument.</p>
-
-<p><i>Second.</i>—As it is the central fact of Christianity, the keystone
-in the arch of the Christian Faith, those who reject it
-have no right to the Christian name. Strauss is so far to be
-commended that, when by his myths and sophistries he had
-brought himself to deny the one, he had the manliness not to
-appropriate the other. And of those of his fellows who still
-cling to it for its supposed advantages, he sarcastically says:
-“Reasons they may have, but reason they have none.” Chadwick,
-Hooykaas, Miln, Savage and others,<a id="FNanchor_142" href="#Footnote_142" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> who talk of their
-“Church of the Future,” may well follow his example. If
-they refuse, there is as little sense as piety in a recognition,
-or <i>quasi</i> recognition, of them as ministers of the Gospel, when
-at the best they are only popular lecturers to mere social or
-literary, if not infidel clubs, that choose to be called Churches<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_135"></a>[135]</span>
-or Religious Societies. This no doubt is distasteful to those
-who are looking for the time when all sects shall fraternize
-on a common level of skepticism and indifference. But if we
-have any colors we should stand by them. Fidelity to truth
-and to the Master requires a separation uncompromising and
-complete from all who deny Him. It is safe to be as tolerant
-as Jesus and his Apostles. (See John viii. 21; 2 Corinthians
-vi. 14, 15; Revelation i. 4, 5; 1 Corinthians xv. 16, 17, 18;
-1 John ii. 12, 23; 1 Peter i. 3, 4; 2 Peter ii. 1, 2; Revelation
-ii. 6; Acts v. 30-33; Acts iv. 11, 12.)</p>
-
-<p><i>Third.</i>—It authenticates his mission and vindicates his
-claims to the utmost. By it God affixed the seal of his
-approval, and evermore declares as by a voice from heaven,
-“This is my beloved Son in whom I am well pleased: hear
-ye Him.”</p>
-
-<p>His teachings are no longer opinions to be accepted or rejected
-as they meet with our approval, but authoritative and
-final. They are not the speculations of sages and philosophers,
-either of olden or recent times, to be weighed in
-the balance of human reason, but everlasting truth to be received
-and obeyed without doubting or questioning.</p>
-
-<p>Since Christ’s resurrection is assured, Webster well declared,<a id="FNanchor_143" href="#Footnote_143" class="fnanchor">[2]</a>
-as every man in the exercise of right reason must, “I
-hold it my duty to believe, not what I can comprehend or
-account for, but what my Master teaches me.”</p>
-
-<p>By this, of course, it is not intended that we are not to exercise
-our reason as to the genuineness of the teachings ascribed
-to him, or their proper meaning, or, in other words, as to textuality,
-inspiration, translation, and interpretation. In each of
-these departments there is and will be ample room for the
-greatest research, and the ripest scholarship. In respect to
-all these, is doubtless true now, as when spoken by Robinson,
-that, “The Lord has more truth yet to break forth out of his
-holy word.”</p>
-
-<p>But when in a teachable spirit, we know what Jesus taught,
-it is the end of controversy.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_136"></a>[136]</span></p>
-
-<p><i>Fourth.</i>—A necessary consequence from his Resurrection
-must be an undoubted assurance that we have the means of
-knowing what his teachings were, so far as they are essential
-to our guidance in this life and preparation for that which is
-to come. The very idea of a revelation is that it shall be so
-made known, that it can be understood, trusted in, and
-obeyed, by those to whom it is given, and for whom it is intended,
-so far at least, as shall be necessary for the regulation
-of their own conduct.</p>
-
-<p><i>Beyond this</i>, we cannot claim, as a logical result of Christ’s
-Resurrection, and do not now inquire. And we find that
-through all the years since our Lord’s ascension, while the
-church has had essential truth, and there has been substantial<a id="FNanchor_144" href="#Footnote_144" class="fnanchor">[3]</a>
-agreement in different copies and versions, there have
-always been and still are, unsolved questions of genuineness,
-translation, interpretation, and inspiration. In respect to the
-last, Ingersoll’s demand<a id="FNanchor_145" href="#Footnote_145" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> that if the writers of the Gospels
-were inspired there should be but one account, or, if more
-than one, there should be <i>no</i> contradiction, is unwarrantable;
-and his own concession proves it. “As a rule,” he says,
-“where several persons testify to the same transaction, while
-agreeing in the main points they will disagree upon many
-minor things, and such disagreement upon minor matters is
-generally considered as evidence that the witnesses have not
-agreed among themselves upon the story they should tell.
-These differences in statement are accounted for from the
-facts that all did not see alike, and that all did not have the
-same opportunity for seeing, and that all had not equally good
-memories. But when we claim that the witnesses were inspired,
-we admit that he who inspired them did know exactly
-what occurred, and consequently there should be no contradiction
-in the minutest detail.” This is very poor logic. For
-although “He who inspired” did know exactly what occurred,
-there may have been the best of reasons for not inspiring a
-full record of all that occurred, or an exact record in all respects
-of what is recorded; and it must be presumed that<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_137"></a>[137]</span>
-such an inspiration would be given as would be most conducive
-to the end in view. And a like answer disposes of his
-confident assertion, that “<i>one</i> inspired record of all that happened
-ought to be enough.” <i>He</i> would have Divine wisdom
-sacrifice everything else for the sake of uniformity and precise
-accuracy in incidental and immaterial matters. In other
-words he would tithe “mint and anise and cummin,” at the
-expense of “weightier matters.” The Gospels were separately
-written at different times, according to the needs in the first instance
-of the particular classes for which they were immediately
-intended, and ultimately for the wants of the whole world.
-Each by itself was as complete and accurate as it was best
-it should be; and the whole taken together are as full and
-exact, as it is best they should be. And looking beyond the
-particular classes to whom they were first given, to all generations
-and peoples, it was of supreme importance that they
-should be <i>believed</i>; and in order to this, that they should be
-so written as not to carry suspicion of collusion or fabrication
-upon their face. Mr. Ingersoll knows that the testimony of
-four witnesses agreeing in the main points, while differing in
-minor matters, is more satisfactory than the testimony of one.
-If there were nothing to be counted but numbers, the evidence
-would be four times as strong. It is more than four
-times as strong. For, as Mr. Starkie says,<a id="FNanchor_146" href="#Footnote_146" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> and every lawyer
-knows, “The credibility of testimony frequently depends
-upon the exercise of reason, on the effect of <i>coincidences in
-testimony</i>, which, if collusion be excluded, cannot be accounted
-for but upon the supposition that the testimony of
-concurring witnesses is true; so much so that their individual
-character for veracity is frequently but of secondary importance.”
-But to have this effect it is <i>indispensable</i> that <i>collusion</i>
-be excluded. And it is of vastly greater consequence
-that we be certain that we have (as it is conceded we have)
-independent accounts of the crucifixion than it is, for instance,
-that the inscriptions over the cross as given by the
-four Evangelists should precisely agree, or that either should<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_138"></a>[138]</span>
-have been the exact words that were written. In fact, while
-they all agree that the accusation was “<i>The King of the
-Jews</i>” (which is all that is material), no two of them agree
-with each other. But as Professor Greenleaf says, no greater
-certainty is called for. “The same<a id="FNanchor_147" href="#Footnote_147" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> verbal exactness is
-not necessary in historians whose aim is religious instruction,
-as in recorders of public inscriptions.”</p>
-
-<p>If but one account, there would be the absence of that personality
-and variety, which we now have, and more especially
-the want of that conclusive proof which comes from independent
-witnesses.</p>
-
-<p>If the Gospels had been written as Mr. Ingersoll says they
-should have been if inspired, the objections against them, if
-not insurmountable, would have been tenfold stronger. And
-why should not Divine wisdom so inspire as to secure the best
-possible results? And although two of the writers were
-Apostles, and to the Apostles was the Holy Spirit given to
-teach them “all things,” and bring to their remembrance “all
-things” which Jesus had said unto them (John xiv. 26), this
-does not necessarily imply an exact transmission of all the
-words spoken. Regard should be had to the substance of
-things in this, as in other matters, and not to mere verbal
-accuracy, except in those rare cases in which it is important
-to know the precise language used.</p>
-
-<p>It may safely be affirmed that there is <i>no</i> discrepancy in
-relation to any essential fact, or important doctrine or duty.
-And it is just this degree of certainty and accuracy, that we
-should expect from our Lord’s true Messiahship as proved by
-his Resurrection.</p>
-
-<p><i>Fifth</i>.—By it, we know that he had power to impart to his
-Apostles to whom he entrusted the establishment of his
-church, and to Paul whom he especially selected as an Apostle
-to the Gentiles, inspiration and the gift of miracles. As
-the Father sent him into the world, even so he sent them
-into the world (John xviii. 18); and what things soever they
-should bind, or loose, on earth, should be bound or loosed<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_139"></a>[139]</span>
-in heaven (Luke xxi. 14-16). Miracles were attestations of
-their Apostleship, “God also bearing witness with them, both
-by signs and wonders, and by manifold powers and by gifts of
-the Holy Ghost, according to his own will.” (Hebrews ii. 4.)</p>
-
-<p>With the writings of John the volume of inspiration was
-complete. If any miracles were wrought after his time
-(which is questioned by many<a id="FNanchor_148" href="#Footnote_148" class="fnanchor">[7]</a>), there are none sufficiently
-authenticated to be of any evidential value to us.</p>
-
-<p>But there is in every true Church, and will be to the end
-of time, what is of greater importance than the working of
-miracles, the convicting and transforming power of the Holy
-Ghost; and any community, by whatever name it may be
-called, that has not this attestation is not a true Church of the
-Lord Jesus Christ. The promise of the Comforter who shall
-“convict the world of sin and of righteousness and of judgment;”
-and “Lo! I am with you alway, even unto the end
-of the world,” are as immutable as the throne of God.</p>
-
-<p>If the Gospel had been only a “civilization,” as Mr. Chadwick
-terms it, it had never been known outside of Judea. It
-is because it is the “wisdom of God, and the power of God
-unto salvation to every one that believeth,” that it has gained
-its marvellous victories, overturning Pagan Rome, and in
-these later days transforming even Madagascar, the Sandwich
-Islands, and the cannibals<a id="FNanchor_149" href="#Footnote_149" class="fnanchor">[8]</a> of the Fiji Islands into Christian
-communities.</p>
-
-<p><i>Sixth</i>.—In our conception of Jesus as our Saviour, we
-should not separate his death from his resurrection and ascension.
-If he died for our sins, he rose again for our justification.
-He is now exalted as a Prince and a Saviour at the right
-hand of the Father, to give repentance and the remission of
-sins. United to him by faith, and changed into his image,
-our resurrection is assured by his, and because he lives we
-shall live also. As oft as we “eat this bread and drink
-this cup,” we do show forth his death <span class="smcap">till he come</span>.
-“Henceforth,” (said<a id="FNanchor_150" href="#Footnote_150" class="fnanchor">[9]</a> the great Apostle) “there is laid up
-for me the crown of righteousness which the Lord, the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_140"></a>[140]</span>
-righteous judge, shall give to me at that day, and not only
-to me, <i>but also to all them that leave loved his appearing</i>.”
-“And<a id="FNanchor_151" href="#Footnote_151" class="fnanchor">[10]</a> the Spirit and the Bride say, Come; and he that
-heareth let him say, Come; and he that is athirst let him
-come; he that will, let him take the water of Life freely.”</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_142" href="#FNanchor_142" class="label">[1]</a> It is one of the marvels of sin and shows the effrontery of Satan, that
-Hooykaas, who is about as rank an infidel as Strauss himself, should be
-pastor at Rotterdam, a Doctor of Divinity, and entitle his book, which
-laboriously excludes everything miraculous or supernatural in relation to
-Jesus, “The Bible for Learners.” Mr. Chadwick, while admitting that he
-is not a Christian in the original sense of the word, argues against Strauss
-(with whom he agrees in sentiment) the right to apply the term to himself,
-but meaning by it only “a stream of tendency,” “freedom, progress and
-civilization.” “It may be,” he says, “that some of you conceive that my
-definition of Christianity does worse than include those who are at pains
-to prove themselves not Christians. It includes the dangerous classes of
-society; it includes the men of vice and crime. There is no doubt of it.”
-(See <i>Free Religious Index</i> for March 17, 1881, March 24, 1881, and March
-31, 1881.) Mr. Miln recently <i>preached a sermon</i> upon “The Church of
-the Future,” from which he said all speculative beliefs as a condition of
-membership will be excluded, even the belief in a personal Deity. (See
-<i>Index</i> for February 23, 1882.) He does not believe in prayer other than
-communion with himself. (See <i>New York Observer</i> of February 23, 1882.)
-If Mr. Savage has not yet gone as far, he stops but little short of it.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_143" href="#FNanchor_143" class="label">[2]</a> So expressed in a creed drawn up by him in 1807. (See <i>Congregationalist</i>
-of February 15, 1882.) A copy of this creed was read at the centennial
-anniversary of his birth (January 18, 1882) by the Congregational
-Church of Salisbury, New Hampshire. He joined this church on profession
-of faith September 13, 1807, and never removed his connection. (See
-<i>New Hampshire Journal</i> of January 28, 1882.)</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_144" href="#FNanchor_144" class="label">[3]</a> See chap. xiii. <a href="#Page_67">p. 67</a>, <i>ante</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_145" href="#FNanchor_145" class="label">[4]</a> In the <i>North American Review</i> for August, 1881, p. 118.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_146" href="#FNanchor_146" class="label">[5]</a> Starkie on Evidence, Vol. II., Sec. 10, and note upon Hume.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_147" href="#FNanchor_147" class="label">[6]</a> Greenleaf’s Testimony of the Evangelists, p. 478.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_148" href="#FNanchor_148" class="label">[7]</a> History of God’s Church, by Enoch Pond, D.D., p. 606. And as to
-Judge Waite’s “many cases of resurrection from the dead, handed down in
-the ancient mythologies” and by heathen writers, it will be soon enough
-to notice them whenever there shall be a serious attempt to run a parallel
-between the evidence in support of them, and that which proves the resurrection
-of our Lord. And so of the whole swarm of lying wonders,
-whether found in heathen writers, the Apocryphal Gospels, or exhibited by
-modern conjurors or spiritualists,—senseless, frivolous, for no worthy
-object, and, beyond the mystery accompanying them, supported by no reasonable
-<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">proof. Our Saviour told his disciples “beforehand” that “there</span><br />
-shall arise false Christs and false prophets, and shall show great signs and
-wonders, so as to lead astray, if possible, even the elect.” (Matthew xxiv.
-24.) Paul told Timothy that “the Spirit saith expressly that in later
-times some shall fall away from the faith, giving heed to seducing spirits
-and doctrines of demons, through the hypocrisies of men that speak lies,
-branded in their own conscience as with a hot iron.” (1 Timothy iv. 1,
-2.) This will be strange to any modern Sadducee who believes there is
-“neither angel nor Spirit,” but the Christian will do well to give heed.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_141"></a>[141]</span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_149" href="#FNanchor_149" class="label">[8]</a> Within the last thirty years, through the labors of English Wesleyan
-missionaries, there has been an entire moral renovation of cannibals, once
-revelling and rioting in every excess of atrocity and bestial shame. Now
-there are nine thousand churches and thousands of communicants, fourteen
-thousand schools and nearly fifty thousand scholars: and out of a population
-of about one hundred and twenty thousand, over one hundred thousand
-are reckoned as regular attendants at the churches. Cannibalism has
-been voluntarily abandoned, save by a single tribe, in eighty inhabited
-islands: idolatry has been abjured, and all traces of it swept away. And
-to-day a gentle and refined English woman, as Miss Gordon-Cumming in
-her book, At Home in Fiji, testifies, can travel these islands alone,
-mingling with the people, rambling through their villages, sleeping in
-their huts and eating at their tables, with none to molest her or make her
-afraid. (See Rev. Edward Abbott, in <i>Congregationalist</i> of February 15,
-1882.)</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_150" href="#FNanchor_150" class="label">[9]</a> 2 Timothy iv. 8.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_151" href="#FNanchor_151" class="label">[10]</a> Revelation xxii. 17.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_142"></a>[142]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDEX_A">INDEX A.<br />
-<span class="smaller">ALPHABETICAL INDEX TO SUBJECTS AND ANCIENT
-AUTHORS AND WRITINGS.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<ul>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Absence of the body of Jesus. See <a href="#Empty_Tomb">Empty Tomb</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Acts and Luke, have one author, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Acts, quoted from, by Justin, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">when written, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Acts of Peter and Paul (Apocryphal), <a href="#Page_37">37</a>, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Acts of Pilate (Apocryphal), <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Admissions and Presumptions, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">See, also, <a href="#Renan">Renan</a>, <a href="#Strauss">Strauss</a>, <a href="#Waite">Waite</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">After-thought, Resurrection is not an, <a href="#Page_6">6</a>, <a href="#Page_86">86</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aged disciples, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_59">59</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_62">62, note 4</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Agrippa Castor, testimony of, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alexandrian Codex, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 10</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alogi, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, with <a href="#Page_62">62, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ambrose, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ancient Deeds and Records, are evidence, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="#Page_59">59</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Andrew, the Apostle, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Angels, as porters, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">at the Sepulchre, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Announcement, to Mary, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41, note 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Antoninus, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Apelles, testimony of, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Apocalypse">Apocalypse, authorship of, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80, note 4</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Quotations from, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Apocryphal Gospels, <a href="#Page_34">34-42</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 7</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Justin did not use, <a href="#Page_34">34-42</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Apologies">Apologies of Justin Martyr, <a href="#Page_18">18-67</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">dates of, <a href="#Page_5">5</a>, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_11">11, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Apollinaris, testimony of, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Apostles, sincerity of, <a href="#Page_74">74</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>, <a href="#Page_86">86</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Apostleship, requisite for, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119, note 14</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Appearances">Appearances, of the Risen Lord, <a href="#Page_7">7</a>, <a href="#Page_81">81-89</a>, <a href="#Page_105">105-109</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115-126</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">corporeal and material, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a>, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122-124</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132, note 5</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Jerusalem, <a href="#Page_105">105-108</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">none such after Ascension, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>,</li>
-<li class="isub1">on the mountain, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 10</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Paul’s enumeration of, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133, note 7</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">sea of Galilee, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">to James, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">to Mary Magdalene, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_117">117</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">to Peter, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1"><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_143"></a>[143]</span>to the Eleven, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 10</a>, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">to the five hundred, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 10</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">to the two disciples, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">to the women, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, notes 5 and 7</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">to Thomas, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">why not to Sanhedrim, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Appearance, to Paul, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">in the Apocalypse, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">to Stephen, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aretus, the King, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aristion, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_16">16, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ascending the Stream, <a href="#Page_50">50-66</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ascension, change at, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Luke’s, account of, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Athenagoras, testimony of, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Authority of Jesus, vindicated, <a href="#Page_135">135</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Authorship of Acts, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">of Apocalypse, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">of the Fourth Gospel. See <a href="#Fourth_Gospel">same</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst" id="Barnabas">Barnabas and Titus, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Barnabas, Epistle of, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Date of, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 1</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Quotes Matthew as Scripture, <a href="#Page_22">22, note 4</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Uses the Fourth Gospel, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bar-Salibi, on Tatian, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bartholomew, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Basilides, used the Fourth Gospel, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_11">11, note 4</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">time of, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Begging the question, <a href="#Page_7">7</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Best evidence, what is, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Blasphemy, or a true Resurrection, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bodily senses may be trusted, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Brethren of Jesus, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Burial of Jesus, certainty of, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 2</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Cæsarea Philippi, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Caius, of Rome, testimony of, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Canon of Muratori, see <a href="#Muratori_Canon">Muratori Canon</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cappadocia and Pontus to Gaul, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_50">50</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cave, birth of Jesus in, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41, note 4</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Celsus, first Heathen writer against Christianity, <a href="#Page_45">45-48</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Date of his writing, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 6</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Quoted our Gospels, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Theory of, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88, note 1</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Makes no reference to Cyrenius, <a href="#Page_79">79, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Census in Judea, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41, note 8</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42</a>, <a href="#Page_79">79, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Central Fact of Christianity, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Central Truths of the Gospel, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cerinthians, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cerinthus and John, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66, note 3</a>. time of, <a href="#Page_66">66, note 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Certainty in courts, <a href="#Page_99">99</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Children of Joseph, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Christian Era, true date of, <a href="#Page_11">11, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Christianity, supposed extinction of, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">not a mere civilization, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Chronology of the Gospels, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Church at Lyons, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Church at Vienne, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">of Rome to Corinth, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>. See <a href="#Clement_of_Rome">Clement of Rome</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">“Church of the future,” <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Chuza, Herod’s Steward, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Chrysostom, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Citations by Justin and others, <a href="#Page_23">23-40</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Claudius Apollinaris, testimony of, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Clement of Alexandria, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Clementine Homilies, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Clement_of_Rome"><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_144"></a>[144]</span>Clement of Rome, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_59">59</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 2</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">date of his Epistle, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">quotations in, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 2</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">upon the Resurrection, <a href="#Page_66">66, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cleopas and Luke, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cock-crowing, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100, note 4</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Codex, Alexandrian, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 10</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Sinaitic, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 10</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 7</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Vatican, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 10</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 7</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Commentaries and Harmonies, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Coming of Christ, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Coming out of the tombs, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133, note 13</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Confucius, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Constantine, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Copies, multiplication of, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Coptic Version, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Corporeal Resurrection, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132, notes 4, 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Corinthian church, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>. See <a href="#Clement_of_Rome">Clement of Rome</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Corinthians, Epistles to,</li>
-<li class="isub1">conceded to be genuine, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_86">86</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">quotations from, <a href="#Page_16">16</a>, <a href="#Page_17">17</a>, <a href="#Page_18">18, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_81">81-87</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">upon the Resurrection, <a href="#Page_81">81-87</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">when written, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88, note 2</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Corpus Juris Civilis (Body of the Civil Law), <a href="#Page_72">72</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Credibility">Credibility of the Evangelists, <a href="#Page_74">74-81</a>, <a href="#Page_99">99</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_136">136</a>, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Of witnesses, tests of, <a href="#Page_75">75</a>, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>, <a href="#Page_99">99</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_136">136</a>, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cross, inscription upon, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Crucifixion of Jesus—conceded, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">differing accounts of, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Crucifixion of Jesus, surrounding circumstances, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133, notes 13, 14</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cursive manuscripts, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 10</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cyrenius, taxing under, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41, note 8</a>, <a href="#Page_79">79, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Damascus, Paul at, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Darkness over the land, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133, note 14</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Day, how reckoned, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100, notes 2, 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Death of Jesus, certainty of, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_117">117</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Denial of Peter, predicted, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_98">98</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Destruction of copies, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 9</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">of Jerusalem, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Diatessaron">Diatessaron of Tatian, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Diocletian, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Diognetus, letter to, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dionysius of Corinth, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Disagreement of witnesses against Jesus, <a href="#Page_89">89</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Docetæ, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Domitian, persecutions under, <a href="#Page_11">11</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Earlier writings, use of in Gospels, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ebionites, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Elders or Presbyters, testimony of, <a href="#Page_17">17, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80, note 2</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Elijah’s ascension, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">His coming, <a href="#Page_92">92</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Emmaus, locality of, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 9</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">journey to, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">was late in the day, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Empty_Tomb">Empty Tomb, must be accounted for, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119, note 18</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132, note 2</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ephesus, tombs at, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ephræm (the Syrian Father), <a href="#Page_47">47</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Epistles, that are conceded, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_84">84</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">quotations from, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_81">81-87</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">when written, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Epistle of John, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Epistles of Paul, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_81">81-87</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Errors in copying, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1"><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_145"></a>[145]</span>of witnesses. See <a href="#Credibility">Credibility</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Eusebius, fifty copies by, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on different subjects, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_16">16, note 2</a>, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88, note 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Evidence, rules of, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>, <a href="#Page_136">136</a>, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Experience, reasoning from, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">False Assumptions, corrected, <a href="#Page_110">110-117</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Fifty copies by Eusebius, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Fire in the Jordan, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Flesh, implies blood, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Flight into Egypt, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Forgery of John’s Gospel, absurdity of, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Fourth_Gospel">Fourth Gospel, early use of, by or in,</li>
-<li class="isub1">Agrippa, Castor, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Alogi, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, with <a href="#Page_62">62, note 5</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Apelles, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Apollinaris, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Athenagoras, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Barnabas, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Basilides, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_11">11, note 4</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Caius, of Rome, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Canon of Muratori, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Celsus, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 6</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Church of Lyons and Vienne, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Claudius Apollinaris, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Clement of Alexandria, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Clementine Homilies, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Commentaries and Harmonies, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Coptic Version, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Diatessaron of Tatian, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Diognetus, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Dionysius of Corinth, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Elders at Ephesus, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Hegesippus, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Heracleon, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_49">49, note 8</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Hermas, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Hippolytus, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Irenæus, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Justin Martyr, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="#Page_34">34-67</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Leonides, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Melito of Sardis, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Muratori Canon, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Origen, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Pantænus, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Papias, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_16">16, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Polycarp, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Polycrates, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Pothinus, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Serapion, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Tatian, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Tertullian, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Theophilus of Antioch, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Translations, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Valentinus, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Victor of Rome, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Galatians, conceded genuineness of, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">evidential value of, <a href="#Page_82">82-87</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">quotations from, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80-87</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">when written, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88, note 2</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Galicinium or cock-crowing, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100, note 4</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Galilee, appearances, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133, note 7</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">meeting in, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 10</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">predictions of His death, <a href="#Page_93">93 to 100</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gelasius, Decree of Canonicity, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Genuineness of Canonical Gospels, <a href="#Page_67">67-73</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">legal presumption of, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_63">63</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">See, also, <a href="#Credibility">Credibility</a>, <a href="#Memoirs">Memoirs</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gnostic Heretics, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Good Shepherd, <a href="#Page_93">93</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx"><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_146"></a>[146]</span>Going up to Jerusalem, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gospel of Nicodemus (Apocryphal), <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gospel of Hebrews (Apocryphal), <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>, <a href="#Page_40">40</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Grand motive for Resurrection of Christ, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Grave clothes, evidence from, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 6</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119, note 18</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Greek Classics, manuscripts of, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 11</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Greek and Roman historians, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_11">11</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>, with <a href="#Page_133">133, note 14</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Greeks, interview of, with Jesus, <a href="#Page_95">95</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Guard of soldiers, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, notes 3 and 4</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Hades not the grave, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hebrew, Matthew written in, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hebrews, (Apocryphal), Gospel of, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>, <a href="#Page_40">40</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42, note 10</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hegesippus, testimony of, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Heracleon, testimony of, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_49">49, note 8</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Heretics, testimony of, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Hermas">Hermas, authorship of, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">citations in, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">date of, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">used John’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hermas, Bishop of Rome, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hippolytus, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Historical difficulties, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_79">79, note 1</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">See, also, <a href="#Credibility">Credibility</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Historical facts, how proved, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">See, also, <a href="#Legal_Presumptions">Legal Presumption</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Ignatius, Epistles of, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Inspiration, extent of, <a href="#Page_75">75</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_136">136</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Irenæus, testimony of, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_16">16, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on Papias, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_16">16, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on Presbyters, <a href="#Page_16">16, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">to John’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Integrity of the Gospels, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Intervals between appearances, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">James, appearance to, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">James, the Apostle, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">James, the Lord’s brother, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jairus’ daughter, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jerome’s translation, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">testimony of, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jerusalem, appearances at, <a href="#Page_105">105-108</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jewish Sabbath, displaced by Lord’s Day, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Jewish Passover, displaced by Lord’s Supper, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Joanna, wife of Chuza, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">John and Cerinthus, <a href="#Page_66">66, note 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">John, the Apostle, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, and <i>passim</i>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">at the Cross, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">at the Sepulchre, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">time of his death, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">See <a href="#Apocalypse">Apocalypse</a> and <a href="#Fourth_Gospel">Fourth Gospel</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">John, the Baptist, <a href="#Page_92">92</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">John, the Presbyter, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_17">17, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88, note 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">John’s Epistle, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">John’s Gospel, character of, <a href="#Page_75">75</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">See <a href="#Fourth_Gospel">Fourth Gospel</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Josephus, testimony from, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">compared with Luke, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">silence of, no proof, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">when born, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Joseph of Arimathea, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Justin_Martyr">Justin Martyr’s writings, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">birth, character and martyrdom, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Justin Martyr, on the Apocalypse, <a href="#Page_80">80, note 4</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">does not quote Epistles, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on Cyrenius, <a href="#Page_79">79, note 1</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on guard of soldiers, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 4</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1"><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_147"></a>[147]</span>used the Fourth Gospel, <a href="#Page_30">30-67</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Justin’s Apologies. See <a href="#Apologies">Apologies</a>, etc., and <a href="#Memoirs">Memoirs Intended</a>, by Justin.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Lactantius, time of, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lapse of time as evidence, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Latin Version, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Law, the Resurrection conformable to, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lawyers should investigate, <a href="#PREFACE">preface</a> and <a href="#Page_131">131</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Laying down His life, <a href="#Page_93">93</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Legal_Presumptions">Legal presumptions,</li>
-<li class="isub1">of genuineness, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">of permanency, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_50">50</a>, <a href="#Page_59">59</a>, <a href="#Page_62">62, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">of rightfulness, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Leonides the martyr, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lifting up the Serpent, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_89">89</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lineage of David, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42, note 9</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Literal Resurrection, <a href="#Page_66">66, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Logical Results of the Resurrection, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lord’s Day, evidential value of, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">displaced the Jewish Sabbath, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lord’s Supper, evidential value of, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>, <a href="#Page_96">96</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">displaced the Passover, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lost Tributaries, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lucius, time of, <a href="#Page_61">61, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Luke’s qualifications as a witness, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">compared with Josephus, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">was a companion of Paul, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Luke’s Gospel, character of, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">was mutilated by Marcion, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 7</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">quotations from, by Justin, <a href="#Page_25">25</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>. See <a href="#Memoirs">Memoirs, etc.</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lyons and Vienne, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Manuscript copies of Gospels, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Marcion, time of, <a href="#Page_61">61, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">“Wolf of Pontus,” <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 7</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Marcion’s Gospel, date of, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">an abridgment of Luke’s, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 7</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">proves genuineness of Luke, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mark as Peter’s interpreter, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">character of his Gospel, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">See <a href="#Memoirs">Memoirs, etc.</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Material Resurrection, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Martha and Lazarus, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Matthew’s qualifications, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_75">75</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">character of his Gospel, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76 to 78</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80, note 6</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">first in Hebrew, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">See <a href="#Memoirs">Memoirs, etc.</a></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mary Magdalen, not mentioned by Paul, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">at the Sepulchre, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">beholds the Risen Lord, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_117">117</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">but disciples incredulous, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Renan’s empty boast, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119, note 12</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mary the Mother of James, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Maximian, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Melito of Sardis, testimony of, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Memoirs">Memoirs Intended by Justin, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_50">50-67</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">of the year one hundred and eighty, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">no others proved, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">no others substituted, <a href="#Page_50">50 to 57</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">summary of evidence, <a href="#Page_63">63</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">were Our Gospels, <a href="#Page_18">18 to 67</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx"><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_148"></a>[148]</span>Miracles, cessation of, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 7</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">are not impossible, <a href="#Page_7">7</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118, note 2</a>, <a href="#Page_3">3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">conformable to law, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">gift of, to the Apostles, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">grand motive for, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">may be proved, <a href="#Page_8">8</a>, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118, note 2</a>, <a href="#Page_3">3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mythological resurrections, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 7</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Moral necessity of Christ’s Resurrection, <a href="#Page_128">128</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Multiplication of copies, insures correctness, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Muratori_Canon">Muratori Canon, date of, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">where found, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">what it is, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Myths and Legends, disproved, <a href="#Page_86">86</a>, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Nazarenes, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nero’s Persecution, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_11">11</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nicodemus, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_89">89</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nicomedia, Persecution at, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 9</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Omission is not Contradiction, <a href="#Page_16">16</a>, <a href="#Page_16">16, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Opening of prison doors, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Order of Events, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Origen, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_49">49</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132, note 4</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">against Celsus, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_49">49</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132, note 4</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">against “Peter’s Gospel,” <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on genuineness of Our Gospels, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on Resurrection Body, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132, note 4</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Pagan Nations, Christianized, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>, <a href="#Page_141">141, note 8</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pagan Persecutions. See <a href="#Ten_Persecutions">Ten Persecutions</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pantænus, testimony of, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Papias, character and martyrdom, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Papias, fragments of his writings, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, and <a href="#Page_16">note 3 on pp. 16-17</a>, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on Mark’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on Matthew’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">probably used John’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_16">16, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Passover and the Lord’s Supper, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Passover week, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pastor Hermas, see <a href="#Hermas">Hermas</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Part of a day for the whole, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100, notes 2, 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Paul’s conversion, date of, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88, note 2</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">testimony to the Resurrection, <a href="#Page_81">81 to 87</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">visits to Jerusalem, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Paul’s conceded Epistles, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_84">84</a>, <a href="#Page_86">86</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">when written, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88, note 2</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">their great value as evidence of Christ’s Resurrection, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_81">81 to 88</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Peter’s change of character, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_128">128</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">at the tomb, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">charge to, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">denial, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_98">98</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">rebuked, <a href="#Page_92">92</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">See <a href="#Appearances">Appearances</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Peter’s Gospel (Apocryphal), <a href="#Page_20">20</a>, with <a href="#Page_22">22, note 2</a>, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_40">40</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42, note 14</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, with <a href="#Page_48">48, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_62">62, note 6</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Philip, the Apostle, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Philippians, Epistle to, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Physical cause of Christ’s death, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pilate, assured of Christ’s death, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pliny’s Letter to Trojan, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_59">59</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ploughs and Yokes, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Polycarp, testimony of, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">his Epistle, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1"><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_149"></a>[149]</span>his martyrdom, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Polycrates, Bishop of Ephesus, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Positive and Negative Evidence, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pothinus, testimony of, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Preaching">Preaching of the Resurrection,</li>
-<li class="isub1">as early as Day of Pentecost, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_84">84</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">disproves Myths or Legends, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_86">86</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">must be accounted for, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">theories upon, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Preaching of Paul, (Apocryphal,) <a href="#Page_37">37</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Predictions">Predictions of His Death and Resurrection,</li>
-<li class="isub1">by Himself, <a href="#Page_89">89 to 97</a>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_128">128</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">by the Prophets, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_128">128</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">why not understood, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">their great force as evidence, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Preface, <a href="#Page_5">5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Presumptions, see <a href="#Legal_Presumptions">Legal Presumption</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Presentation at the Temple, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Previous Resurrections, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_117">117</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Proclamation of the Resurrection. See <a href="#Preaching">Preaching</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Proof of the Resurrection possible, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">and sufficient, <a href="#Page_115">115 to 133</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Prophecies of the Resurrection. See <a href="#Predictions">Predictions</a>, etc.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Protevangelium (Apocryphal), <a href="#Page_34">34 to 42</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Public Ministry, termination of, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80, note 5</a>, <a href="#Page_96">96</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Quotations in the Second Century,</li>
-<li class="isub1">from Old Testament, not exact, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">from Gospels, not exact, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">name of writer not given in quoting, before Theophilus, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">See <a href="#Barnabas">Barnabas</a>, <a href="#Clement_of_Rome">Clement</a>, <a href="#Hermas">Hermas</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Quotations by Justin Martyr,</li>
-<li class="isub1">from Acts, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">from John, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">from Luke, <a href="#Page_23">23 to 27</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">from Mark, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">from Matthew, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Quotations, by Irenæus, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">by Origen, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">by Papias, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="#Page_16">16, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">by Presbyters, <a href="#Page_16">16, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">by Theophilus, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">by Tertullian, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Relation of Gospel to Epistles, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Reminiscences, and not connected Histories, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rending the Veil, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Repositories for the Gospel, <a href="#Page_63">63</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Resurrection of Jesus Christ, antecedently probable, <a href="#Page_128">128</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">sufficiently proved, <a href="#Page_112">112 to 133</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Resurrection Body, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132, notes 4, 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Revelations, generally conceded, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">quotations from, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">style differs from Gospel, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80, note 4</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">sufficiently accounted for, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80, note 4</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Revised Version, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 7</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Roman Civil Law, text of, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 13</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Romans, Epistle to, conceded, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">quotations from, <a href="#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_81">81 to 87</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">when written, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Salome, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sanhedrim, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>, <a href="#Page_98">98</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx"><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_150"></a>[150]</span>Saturn-day, Sunday, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Septuagint, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Serapion, testimony of, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Severus, persecution under, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Slaying of the children, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Shepherds, visit of, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sinaitic Codex, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 10</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 7</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sincerity of the witnesses conceded, <a href="#Page_74">74</a>, <a href="#Page_86">86</a>, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sign of Jonah, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100, notes 2, 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">of temple of his body, <a href="#Page_89">89</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">of Brazen Serpent, <a href="#Page_89">89</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Silence not contradiction, <a href="#Page_16">16</a>, <a href="#Page_16">16, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Socrates, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Soldiers’, fabrication, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 4</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sources of Evidence, <a href="#Page_7">7 to 10</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Spear of the Soldier, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stephen’s vision of Christ, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Substitution of Gospels, disproved, <a href="#Page_50">50 to 67</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sufficiency of the Proofs, <a href="#Page_110">110 to 130</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Superscription on the Cross, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 6</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Suppression of Evidence, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Survival of the fittest, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sybilline writings, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Synoptics, meaning of, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80, note 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Syria and Cilicia, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Syriac Version, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Tabernacle predictions, <a href="#Page_93">93</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tacitus, the Historian, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tatian, the Heretic, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>. See <a href="#Diatessaron">Diatessaron</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Ten_Persecutions">Ten Persecutions, <a href="#Page_11">11</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tertullian, the distinguished Lawyer, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Theophilus of Antioch, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Theophilus of Antioch, quoted John by name, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Theophilus, the friend of Luke, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Thessalonians, Epistles to, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Thomas the Apostle, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tiberias, appearances at, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133, note 7</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Time, how reckoned by the Jews, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100, note 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Titus and Barnabas, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>. See <a href="#Barnabas">Barnabas</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Toleration, rule for, <a href="#Page_135">135</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tombs, at Ephesus, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tradition, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Trajan, persecution under, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_59">59</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Transfiguration, <a href="#Page_92">92</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Translations, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Trypho the Jew, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="#Page_20">20</a>, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 4</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">See <a href="#Justin_Martyr">Justin Martyr</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Uncial manuscripts, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 10</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Unity of Gospels, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Usages in Justin’s time, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Valentinus, evidence from, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vatican Codex, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 10</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 7</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Victor, Bishop of Rome, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vienne and Lyons, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Vision, theory stated, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">disproved, <a href="#Page_114">114 to 132</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Walking on the Sea, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wise men of the East, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Witnesses in Court,—see <a href="#Credibility">Credibility</a>, etc.</li>
-<li class="isub1">women not competent, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119, note 13</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Women at the Sepulchre, <a href="#Page_104">104 to 106</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 5</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Yielding up the Ghost, <a href="#Page_99">99</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Zebedee’s Sons, <a href="#Page_42">42, note 14</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90 to 100</a>.</li>
-
-</ul>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_151"></a>[151]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDEX_B">INDEX B.<br />
-<span class="smaller">ALPHABETICAL INDEX TO MODERN AUTHORS, EVENTS,
-AND WRITINGS.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<ul>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Abbot, E. A., D.D., on date of Muratori Canon, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Abbott, Rev. Edward, on Fijis, <a href="#Page_141">141, note 8</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Abbot, The Authorship of the Fourth Gospel by Ezra Abbot, D.D., LL.D. (Boston, 1880.) Frequent citations from, <a href="#Page_10">10 to 48</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Abbott, Cyclopædia of Religious Knowledge, by Lyman Abbott, D.D., LL.D., cited, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132, note 5</a>, with <a href="#Page_122">122</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Adams’ Roman Antiquities, <a href="#Page_119">119, note 13</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alford (Dean) 103, <a href="#Page_108">108, note 1</a>, with <a href="#Page_102">102</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ambrosian Library, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ante-Nicene Christian Library, <a href="#Page_16">16, notes 1, 3</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Arnold">Arnold, Matthew, on Basilides, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, with <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, and <a href="#Page_11">11, note 4</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst" id="Bampton_Lectures">Bampton Lectures, <a href="#Page_40">40</a> with <a href="#Page_42">42, note 17</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a> with <a href="#Page_72">72, note 6</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Barnes, Albert, on site of Emmaus, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 9</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on the Resurrection Body, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bartlett, Pres., on the slight historical errors, <a href="#Page_79">79, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Baur, J. C., on Fourth Gospel, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bentley, on genuineness of Gospels, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Blackstone, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bleek, on date of Muratori Canon, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Buck’s Theological Dictionary, <a href="#Page_11">11, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Cannibals Christianized, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>, <a href="#Page_141">141, note 8</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Canonicity,—See <a href="#Charteris">Charteris</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Chadwick’s Views of Christianity, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Charteris">Charteris, Prof. A. H., D.D., on Basilides, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">date of Celsus, <a href="#Page_49">49, note 6</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">date of Justin’s Apology, <a href="#Page_61">61, note 1</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">early universal use of Gospels, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Fourth Gospel, <a href="#Page_17">17</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Marcion’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 7</a>, with <a href="#Page_69">69</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Papias, <a href="#Page_17">17</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Pastor Hermas, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Child, L. Maria, <a href="#Page_119">119, note 13</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Congregationalist, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, note, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 2</a>, <a href="#Page_141">141, note 8</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Conybeare and Howson’s Life of Paul, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, with <a href="#Page_88">88, notes 2,4</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx"><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_152"></a>[152]</span>Credner, on date of Muratori Canon, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Curtiss, Prof. Samuel Ives, D.D., on Apocryphal Gospels, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, and <a href="#Page_40">40</a> with <a href="#Page_42">42, notes 15, 16</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">date of Celsus, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 6</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">date of Muratori Canon, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 6</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Judge Waite, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 6</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cursive manuscripts of Gospels, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 10</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Davidson, Samuel, cited by Waite, <a href="#Page_29">29, note 4</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">De Soto, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Donaldson and Roberts, <a href="#Page_16">16, notes 1, 3</a>, <a href="#Page_20">20</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dorner on use by Papias of John’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_17">17</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Drummond, Prof., on Justin’s use of John’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Early settlements in New Hampshire, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Farrar, (Canon), <a href="#Page_100">100, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Fisher, Prof. George P., D.D., on Alogi, <a href="#Page_62">62, note 5</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">date of Apocryphal Gospels, <a href="#Page_41">41, note 2</a>, with <a href="#Page_34">34</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">date of Celsus, <a href="#Page_49">49, note 6</a>, with <a href="#Page_46">46</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">date of Justin’s Apology, <a href="#Page_61">61, note 1</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">date of Muratori Canon, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">genuineness of text of Gospels, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 4</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 12</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">John’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_29">29, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33, note 3</a>, with <a href="#Page_30">30</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Justin’s Quotations, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48, notes 2, 4</a>, <a href="#Page_62">62, note 5</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 4</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Marcion’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 4</a>, with <a href="#Page_68">68</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Theophilus, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 4</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Free Religious Index, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Friedlieb, on physical Cause of Death, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Geikie, The Life and Words of Christ, by Cunningham Geikie, D.D., (1880), cited page <a href="#Page_109">109, note 10</a>, with page <a href="#Page_108">108</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gibbon’s Rome, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gibson, Ch. Justice, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gilbert West,—See <a href="#West">West</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Godet, Prof. F., D.D., <a href="#Page_88">88, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132, notes 1, 2</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133, note 8</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">upon Possibility of Miracles, <a href="#Page_132">132, notes 1, 2</a>, with <a href="#Page_111">111</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">upon Sign of Jonah, <a href="#Page_88">88, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">upon Vision Theory, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133, note 8</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gordon-Cumming, in Fiji, <a href="#Page_141">141, note 8</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Granite Monthly, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Greenleaf, Prof. Simon, LL.D., on cock-crowing, <a href="#Page_100">100, note 4</a>, with <a href="#Page_97">97</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">credibility of witnesses, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140, notes 3, 6</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">genuineness of Gospels, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 13</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">presumption of Permanency, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_44">44, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">presumption of Rightfulness, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_44">44, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">sign of Jonah, <a href="#Page_100">100, note 3</a>, with page <a href="#Page_90">90</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">superscription on the Cross, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 6</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">truth of Christianity, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 6</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Hanna, Rev. William, LL.D., on cause of death, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 1</a>, with <a href="#Page_102">102</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">empty tomb, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 6</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Galilee meeting, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 10</a>, with <a href="#Page_108">108</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hilgenfeld on Justin’s use of John’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on date of Muratori Canon, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx"><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_153"></a>[153]</span>Hooykaas and his Bible for Learners, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119, note 8</a>, <a href="#Page_128">128</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133, note 12</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Holtzmann, on Apocryphal Gospels, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hume’s argument from experience, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Ingersoll on inspiration, <a href="#Page_136">136</a>, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on miracles, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118, note 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Inter-Ocean (Chicago), <a href="#Page_41">41, note 2</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42, note 15</a>, <a href="#Page_16">16</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Kent, Chancellor, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Keim, Dr., on date of Celsus, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_49">49, note 6</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on the empty tomb, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132, note 2</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Lafayette’s visit, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_62">62, note 2</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Landing of the Pilgrims, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lange’s Life of Jesus, on cause of death, <a href="#Page_108">108, note 1</a>, with <a href="#Page_102">102</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Cleopas and Luke, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 8</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Galilee meeting, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 10</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">guard of Soldiers, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 3</a>, with <a href="#Page_103">103</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">journey to Emmaus, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 8</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">lifting up the Serpent, <a href="#Page_89">89</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100, note 1</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">locality of Emmaus, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 9</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">sign of Jonah, <a href="#Page_100">100, notes 2, 3</a>, with <a href="#Page_90">90</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">women at the Sepulchre, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lemisch on date of Justin’s Apology, <a href="#Page_61">61, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Light Infantry Poor, <a href="#Page_62">62, note 2</a>, with <a href="#Page_57">57</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lipsius, Prof. of Jena, on date of Apocryphal Gospels, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">that Justin did not use them, <a href="#Page_40">40</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42, note 15</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lord Brougham, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Madagascar Christianized, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mason, Jeremiah, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Marshall, Ch. Justice, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Matthew Arnold. See <a href="#Arnold">Arnold</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">McClintock and Strong’s Cyclopedia, on Cerinthus, <a href="#Page_66">66, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Pagan Persecutions, <a href="#Page_11">11, note 5</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 9</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Resurrection Body of Christ, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Meyer’s Lexicon, on date of Apocryphal Gospels, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mill, J. S. concedes, Christ Historical, <a href="#Page_128">128</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133, note 11</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">miracles possible, <a href="#Page_8">8</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Miln, on “Church of the Future,” <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Milligan, The Resurrection of Our Lord, by William Milligan, D.D., Prof. etc. in the University of Aberdeen. (London, 1881), Cited, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119, notes 5, 7</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Morrison, James, D.D., on Empty Tomb, <a href="#Page_119">119, note 18</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">New Hampshire Journal, <a href="#PREFACE">Preface</a> and <a href="#Page_140">140, note 2</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">New York Observer, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Neander, on the date of Justin’s Apology, <a href="#Page_61">61, note 1</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">destruction of Church, etc., at Nicomedia, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 9</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">New Revision, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">North American Review, <a href="#Page_118">118, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 4</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Norton, on Peter’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42, note 12</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56, note 2</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on Genuineness of Our Gospels, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80, note 6</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on number of Copies of Gospels, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 8</a>, with <a href="#Page_70">70</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Page on date of Justin’s Apology, <a href="#Page_61">61, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Parker, Joel, Ch. Justice, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Parmelee, Dr. Simeon, great age of, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx"><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_154"></a>[154]</span>Parsons, Theophilus, Ch. Justice, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Patten’s Diaries, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Paulus, Theory of, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Phillips, on Presumptions, <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_44">44, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pond, Dr. Enoch, as to cessation of Miracles, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 7</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Princeton Review, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 4</a>, <a href="#Page_79">79, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst" id="Renan">Renan, Ernest, admissions by, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_13">13, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_84">84</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133, notes 12 and 14</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">demands expert testimony, <a href="#Page_7">7</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">denials, <a href="#Page_7">7</a>, <a href="#Page_11">11, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">idle boasting, <a href="#Page_84">84</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119, note 12</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">upon Christ’s teachings, <a href="#Page_128">128</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133, note 12</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">upon silence of Historians as to occurrences at the Crucifixion, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133, note 14</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Reuss, on date of Muratori Canon, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Riggenback, on use by Papias of John’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_17">17</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Roberts and Donaldson, <a href="#Page_16">16, notes 1 and 3</a>, <a href="#Page_20">20</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61, note 1</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">that Justin did not cite Peter’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_20">20</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Robinson’s Holy Land, <a href="#Page_109">109, note 9</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Robinson, John, the Pilgrim Father, <a href="#Page_135">135</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Robinson, Prof., on the Resurrection Body, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Routh, on Papias’ use of John’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_17">17</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Rowe, Prof. See <a href="#Bampton_Lectures">Bampton Lectures</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Salisbury Church. See <a href="#Webster">Webster</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sanday, Dr., on quotations by Justin, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">by Irenæus, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">dates of Celsus, Muratori Canon, <a href="#Page_48">48</a> and <a href="#Page_49">49, notes 5, 6</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">that Marcion’s Gospel is an abridgment of Luke, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 7</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sandwich Islands Christianized, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Savage, on the “Church of the Future,” <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Schleiermacher, theory of, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Schenkel’s Lexicon, on date of Apocryphal Gospels, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Scott, Thomas, D.D., that part of the day is counted for the whole, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">upon Resurrection Body, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Scribner’s Monthly, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 12</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sears’ “Heart of Christ,” <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_49">49, note 6</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80, note 4</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Smith and Wace’s Dictionary, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Spiritualists, <a href="#Page_140">140</a>, <a href="#Page_141">141, note 7</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stanley (Dean) as to date of Polycarp’s Epistle, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Starkie, on coincidences, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 5</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on Christianity, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stier, that part of a day is counted for the whole, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100, note 2</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Story, Judge, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stowe, Prof. C. E., on Apocryphal Gospels, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41, note 2</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Elders at Ephesus, <a href="#Page_56">56, note 4</a>, with <a href="#Page_55">55</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Gospel to Hebrews, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42, note 10</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Greek Classic Copies, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 11</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">John’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 4</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Theophilus, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 4</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Strauss">Strauss, David, Admissions by:</li>
-<li class="isub1">actual death of Jesus, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119, note 6</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">sincerity of witnesses, <a href="#Page_86">86</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">universal use of the Gospels, by the end of the Second Century, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1"><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_155"></a>[155]</span>false theories of, <a href="#Page_7">7</a>, <a href="#Page_8">8</a>, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">became an atheist, <a href="#Page_8">8</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">how far commended, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">more candid than Waite, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Stroud, on physical cause of Death, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Supernatural Religion. An Inquiry into The Reality of Divine Revelation. (Anonymous.) Referred to pp. <a href="#Page_17">17</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42, note 14</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, with <a href="#Page_118">118, note 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Taylor, William, D.D., on Miracles, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_128">128</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133, note 10</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Thomson’s “Land and Book,” <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41, note 4</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tischendorf, Constantine, discoverer of the Sinaitic Codex, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on Commentary of Heracleon, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_49">49, note 8</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on difference in Manuscripts, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 10</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on number of manuscript copies, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 10</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on quotations by Irenæus, <a href="#Page_56">56, note 3</a>, with <a href="#Page_55">55</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">on use, by Papias, of John’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_17">17</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tübingen School, <a href="#Page_8">8</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Uncials, number of, <a href="#Page_73">73, note 10</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst" id="Waite">Waite, History of the Christian Religion to the year Two Hundred. By Charles B. Waite, A. M. Second Edition, Chicago (1881), <a href="#Page_34">34</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Waite, C. B., admits Gospels do not copy from each other, <a href="#Page_74">74</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Waite, C. B., his mistakes as to Apocalypse, <a href="#Page_88">88, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Apocryphal Gospels, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41, note 5</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Basilides, <a href="#Page_29">29, note 4</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Clement of Rome, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 2</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Celsus, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 6</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Cerinthus, <a href="#Page_66">66, note 3</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Justin Martyr, <a href="#Page_5">5</a>, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_11">11, note 3</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61, note 1</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Marcion’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_72">72, note 7</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Muratori Canon, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Peter’s Gospel, <a href="#Page_20">20, note 2</a>, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_40">40</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42, note 14</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_62">62, note 6</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">Resurrection body, and Paul, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119, note 8</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">with other matters too numerous to mention.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Walker, Timothy, Diaries of, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="Webster">Webster, Daniel, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_135">135</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 2</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">his creed, <a href="#Page_135">135</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 2</a>.</li>
-<li class="isub1">his church membership, <a href="#Page_140">140, note 2</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Warrenton, on quotations from O. T., <a href="#Page_80">80, note 1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Weiseler, on date of Muratori Canon, <a href="#Page_48">48, note 5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Westcott, <a href="#Page_17">17</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80, note 6</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wesleyan Missionaries, <a href="#Page_141">141, note 8</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx" id="West">West, Gilbert, on resurrection, <a href="#Page_117">117</a>, <a href="#Page_119">119, note 16</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Whitby, that a part of a day is put for the whole, <a href="#Page_100">100, note 3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Whittier’s Poem, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Wright. The Logic of Christian Evidences. By Rev. G. Frederick Wright, Andover, Mass. (1880), cited or quoted, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28, note 1</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56, notes</a>, and <a href="#Page_80">80, note 6</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Yorktown Scammel, <a href="#Page_62">62, note 2</a>.</li>
-
-</ul>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<p class="center larger">ANDOVER PUBLICATIONS.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">W. F. DRAPER, Publisher</span>,<br />
-ANDOVER, MASS.</p>
-
-<p>Among the Andover Publications will be found choice and
-valuable books for intelligent readers; also works for the
-special use of Theological Students and Clergymen. The
-Catalogue embraces works on the Evidences and Defences
-of Christianity, Devotional books, Essays in Philosophy and
-Theology, Church History, Discrepancies of the Bible, Hermeneutics,
-Commentaries on various books of the Old and
-New Testaments, Harmonies of the New Testament in
-Greek and in English, Grammars of the New Testament
-Greek, Hebrew Lexicon and Grammars, etc.</p>
-
-<p>Descriptive Catalogues sent free on application. All books
-sent by mail postpaid, at the prices annexed. A special discount
-of twenty per cent is given to clergymen and theological
-students, excepting on the “Bibliotheca Sacra” and those
-books which are marked by a *.</p>
-
-<p>Address</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">W. F. DRAPER, Publisher</span>,<br />
-ANDOVER, MASS.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<p class="center"><i>Books Published by W. F. Draper.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging"><b>Remarks on the Internal Evidence for the Truth of Revealed
-Religion.</b> By <span class="smcap">Thomas Erskine</span>, Esq., Advocate. Third American,
-from the Fifth Edinburgh Edition. 16mo. 75 cents.</p>
-
-<div class="smaller">
-
-<p>“The entire treatise cannot fail to commend the positions which it advocates to
-intelligent and considerate minds. It is one of the best, perhaps <i>the</i> best, of all
-the discussions of this momentous subject.”—<i>Congregationalist.</i></p>
-
-<p>“This argument of Erskine for the Internal Evidence of the Truth of Revealed
-Religion, is the most compact, natural, and convincing we have ever read from
-any author.”—<i>Christian Chronicle.</i></p>
-
-<p>“No man ought to consider himself as having studied theology unless he has read
-and pondered and read again ‘Erskine on the Internal Evidence.’”—<i>Independent.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging"><b>Five Discourses on St. Paul.</b> To which is added a Discourse on
-Fatalism. By <span class="smcap">Adolphe Monod</span>. Translated from the French
-by Rev. <span class="smcap">J. H. Myers</span>, D.D. 12mo. 90 cents.</p>
-
-<div class="smaller">
-
-<p>“The aim of the author is to present an estimate of the character, labors, and
-writings of the Apostle Paul in the light of an example, and to apply the principles
-which actuated him, and which he maintained, to Christians of the present day.”—<i>Boston
-Journal.</i></p>
-
-<p>“A book unsurpassed in its department, in any language, for manly eloquence,
-thorough research, profound reflection, a most earnest, glowing, winning Christian
-spirit, united with an exact appreciation of the great Apostle’s character and work,
-and a wise, cautious, but bold and unflinching, application of his teachings to the
-times in which we live.”—<i>The Translator.</i></p>
-
-<p>“A masterly and most eloquent delineation of the inner life of the great Apostle.”—<i>Evangelical
-Quarterly.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging"><b><i>Writings of Archbishop Whately.</i></b> Published under the sanction
-of the author, from the latest revised edition; viz.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging"><b>Essays on some of the Difficulties in the Writings of St. Paul.</b>
-12mo. Cloth extra, gilt tops. $1.50</p>
-
-<div class="smaller">
-
-<p>“Dr. Whately’s writings are characterized by sound thought and solid judgment.
-Clear and solid sense is his peculiar characteristic. He is often ingenious, generally
-candid, almost always plain and transparent.”—<i>Bibliotheca Sacra.</i></p>
-
-<p>“An excellent work.”—<i>New York Evangelist.</i></p>
-
-<p>“The Archbishop’s writings are a part of the sterling theological letters of the
-age, and ought to be possessed by all the studious and thoughtful.”—<i>Journal and
-Messenger.</i></p>
-
-<p>“This book had passed through at least eight editions in England before its
-publication in this country. Dr. Whately is always entitled to a hearing. Never
-profound, he is always clear; never very original, he is always instructive; never
-disgustingly dogmatic, he always seems to feel a serene assurance that he has
-exhausted the whole subject, and that his verdict is final; always positive and
-didactic, he is yet never extreme, but always takes the middle and moderate view.”—<i>Watchman
-and Reflector.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging"><b>Essays on some of the Peculiarities of the Christian Religion,
-and Historic Doubts concerning Napoleon.</b> 12mo. pp. 264
-and 48. Bound in 1 vol. Cloth extra, gilt tops. $1.50</p>
-
-<p class="hanging"><b>Historic Doubts concerning Napoleon.</b> 12mo. Paper covers.
-25 cents; cloth, 40 cents.</p>
-
-<div class="smaller">
-
-<p>About the year 1821 Whately published this Essay anonymously. It was
-designed as an answer to Hume’s objections to the credibility of the Christian
-miracles. Following Hume’s method, Whately gravely argued the improbability
-of the existence of the first Napoleon, and demonstrated that, on Hume’s principles,
-the testimony in relation thereto could not be credited.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging"><b>The Contemplations and Letters of Henry Dorney of Uley,
-Gloucestershire.</b> 12mo. $1.00</p>
-
-<div class="smaller">
-
-<p>The Contemplations and Letters of Henry Dorney were held in high estimation
-by Madam Phebe Phillips. The copy which she used, came down to her as an
-heirloom from her pious ancestors, and was ranked, on her private table, next to
-her Bible and hymn-book. So highly did she esteem the work, that she copied
-out, with her own hand, a large part of the volume for the use of a friend. It
-is now reprinted as a precious memorial of one of the honored founders of the
-Theological Institution.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging"><b>Bible History of Prayer.</b> By <span class="smcap">C. A. Goodrich</span>. 12mo. $1.25</p>
-
-<div class="smaller">
-
-<p>“The aim of this little volume is to embody an account of the delightful and
-successful intercourse of believers with heaven for some four thousand years. The
-author has indulged a good deal in narrative, opening and explaining the circumstances
-which gave birth to the several prayers.</p>
-
-<p>“The author does not aim to write a treatise on prayer, or to comment on all the
-references to prayer in chronological order, but to dwell on its nature and importance,
-and make suggestions on the most important allusions to prayer, as indicated
-all along for four thousand years. He explains the circumstances connected
-with the prayers of these holy men.”—<i>Religious Union.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging"><b>Messianic Prophecy and the Life of Christ.</b> By Rev. <span class="smcap">W. S.
-Kennedy</span>. 12mo. $1.25</p>
-
-<div class="smaller">
-
-<p>“The plan of the author is to collect all the prophecies of the Old Testament
-referring to the Messiah, with appropriate comments and reflections, and then to
-pursue the subject through the New Testament in the life of Christ as he appeared
-among men. The reader will find the results of Hengstenberg and Neander here
-gathered up, and presented in a readable shape.”—<i>The Presbyterian.</i></p>
-
-<p>“This work exhibits the prophetic element in the Messianic argument in an
-analytical shape, and with peculiar force.”—<i>Episcopal Recorder.</i></p>
-
-<p>“The general idea of the book is a very happy one, and it has, on the whole
-been well wrought out.”—<i>The Lutheran.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging"><b>Theologia Germanica.</b> Which setteth forth many fair Lineaments
-of Divine Truth, and saith very lofty and lovely things touching a
-Perfect Life. Edited by <span class="smcap">Dr. Pfeiffer</span>, from the only complete
-Manuscript yet known. Translated from the German by <span class="smcap">Susanna
-Winkworth</span>. With a Preface by the Rev. <span class="smcap">Charles Kingsley</span>,
-Rector of Eversley; and a Letter to the Translator, by the <span class="smcap">Chevalier
-Bunsen</span>, D.D., D.C.L., etc.; and an Introduction by <span class="smcap">Prof.
-Calvin E. Stowe</span>, D.D. 16mo. Cloth, $1.25; calf, $2.50</p>
-
-<div class="smaller">
-
-<p>This treatise was discovered by Luther, who first brought it into notice by an
-edition which he published in 1516, of which he says: “And I will say, though it
-be boasting of myself, and ‘I speak as a fool,’ that, next to the Bible and St.
-Augustine, no book hath ever come into my hands whence I have learnt, or
-would wish to learn, more of what God and Christ, and man, and all things, are.”
-“A precious lump of pure gold in a flag of earth and stone.”</p>
-
-<p>“This little volume which is brought out in antique style, is, apart from its
-intrinsic value, a curiosity of literature. It may be regarded as the harbinger of
-the Protestant Reformation. No fewer than seventeen editions of this book appeared
-in his lifetime, and up to the present day it has continued to be a favorite
-manual of devotion in Germany, where it has passed through certainly as many
-as sixty editions.”—<i>Evening Traveller.</i></p>
-
-<p>“I value it <i>exceedingly</i>, so vivid and so rich is it, on the great ideas of <i>sin</i>, and
-<i>salvation through Christ</i>.”—<i>Congregational Herald.</i></p>
-
-<p>“A most valuable, interesting, and instructive volume, upon the most vital points
-of Christianity.”—<i>Lutheran Standard.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging"><i><b>Haley. An Examination of the Alleged Discrepancies of the
-Bible.</b></i> By John W. Haley, M.A. With an Introduction by Alvah
-Hovey, D.D., Professor in the Newton Theological Institution.
-Crown 8vo. pp. xii and 473. $1.75</p>
-
-<div class="smaller">
-
-<p><b>From Professor Edwards A. Park.</b>—“I do not know any volume which
-gives to the English reader such a compressed amount of suggestion and instruction
-on this theme as is given in this volume.”</p>
-
-<p><b>From the Presbyterian Quarterly.</b>—“The book is honest, candid, and
-painstaking. It will be found useful to all students of the sacred volume.”</p>
-
-<p>“An able book, containing a clear and dispassionate discussion of a momentous
-subject. It stands unique in a field of its own.”—<i>Independent.</i></p>
-
-<p>“As an example of thorough and painstaking scholarship, as a serviceable handbook
-for all Bible students, and as a popular defence of revealed truth, it will take
-high rank, and fill an important place which up to this time has been conspicuously
-vacant.”—<i>Congregationalist.</i></p>
-
-<p>“It would be difficult, by any amount of labor, to produce anything more convincing
-and satisfactory.”—The <i>Interior.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging"><i><b>Haley. The Hereafter of Sin</b></i>: What it will be; with Answers to
-Certain Questions and Objections. By Rev. John W. Haley, author
-of “Alleged Discrepancies of the Bible.” 16mo. 75 cents.</p>
-
-<div class="smaller">
-
-<p>“It presents, in a calm and admirable manner, the Scriptural doctrine of future
-retribution, divested, indeed, of the literalism with which it is sometimes presented,
-and showing its accordance with the deductions of a sound philosophy.”—<i>Zion’s
-Herald.</i></p>
-
-<p>“It is a scholarly, clear, dispassionate, and conclusive argument in favor of what
-is known as the common or orthodox view of future punishment. The whole discussion
-is conducted in a spirit of courtesy and fairness towards all opponents
-which does credit to our current controversial literature.”—<i>The Interior.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging"><i><b>Wright. The Logic of Christian Evidences.</b></i> By Rev. G. Frederick
-Wright. 16mo. $1.50</p>
-
-<div class="smaller">
-
-<p>“Beginning with a general statement of the principles of inductive and deductive
-logic, which are illustrated by ample examples drawn from the whole field of
-modern science, it advances to the consideration of the personality, wisdom, and
-benevolence of the Creator, as seen in nature; to the place of miracles in the Christian
-system; to the specific evidences of Christianity as discerned in the early history
-of the New Testament, and in the characteristics of the Christians of the first
-and second centuries; and to the historical probability of Jesus and his immediate
-followers having been either impostors or deluded enthusiasts.”—<i>Literary World.</i></p>
-
-<p>“The book would form an admirable text-book for Bible-classes or college classes,
-and will give solid comfort and strength to all readers who have any desire to be
-able to give a reason for believing.”—<i>Rev. Dr. Thomas Hill in the Bibliotheca Sacra.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging"><i><b>Wright. Studies in Science and Religion.</b></i> By Prof. G. Frederick
-Wright, author of “The Logic of Christian Evidences.” 16mo. $1.50</p>
-
-<div class="smaller">
-
-<p>“The chapter on inductive reasoning, with which the book opens, is as full, explanatory,
-and convincing as any one could wish, despite the fact it occupies only
-twenty-six pages.... The grand point contended for and carried is that ‘Christianity,
-in its appeal to historical evidence, allies itself with modern science rather
-than with the glittering generalities of transcendentalism,’ and that in its beginnings
-science has no advantage over religion in solidity of basis.”—<i>The Leader.</i></p>
-
-<p>“The article on Prehistoric Man, now appears for the first time. It is illustrated
-by a number of maps and cuts which enhance the interest of the story. The
-southern limit of the ice of the Glacial Epoch in North America is traced, and the
-connection of human implements therewith is shown.”—<i>Oberlin Review.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE PROOFS OF CHRIST'S RESURRECTION; FROM A LAWYER'S STANDPOINT ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/67151-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/67151-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 4d315ef..0000000
--- a/old/67151-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67151-h/images/title.jpg b/old/67151-h/images/title.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index cab5f23..0000000
--- a/old/67151-h/images/title.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ